11168 lines
505 KiB
Plaintext
11168 lines
505 KiB
Plaintext
**The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Return of Tarzan by Burroughs
|
|
*******This file should be named tarz210.txt or tarz210.zip*******
|
|
|
|
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, tarz211.txt.
|
|
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, tarz210a.txt.
|
|
|
|
September, 1993 Etext #81
|
|
|
|
This etext was typed by Judy Boss in Omaha, Nebraska.
|
|
And proofread by some of our anonymous volunteers.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
|
|
|
|
We produce about one million dollars for each hour we work. One
|
|
hundred hours is a conservative estimate for how long it we take
|
|
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
|
|
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
|
|
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
|
|
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce a
|
|
million dollars per hour; next year we will have to do four text
|
|
files per month, thus upping our productivity to two million/hr.
|
|
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
|
|
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
|
|
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers.
|
|
|
|
We need your donations more than ever!
|
|
|
|
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
|
|
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
|
|
to IBC, too)
|
|
|
|
For these and other matters, please mail to:
|
|
|
|
David Turner, Project Gutenberg
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College
|
|
5700 College Road
|
|
Lisle, IL 60532-0900
|
|
|
|
Email requests to:
|
|
Internet: chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
|
|
Compuserve: chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
|
|
Attmail: internet!chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu (David Turner)
|
|
MCImail: (David Turner)
|
|
ADDRESS TYPE: MCI / EMS: INTERNET / MBX:chipmonk@eagle.ibc.edu
|
|
|
|
We would prefer to send you this information by email
|
|
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
|
|
|
|
******
|
|
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please:
|
|
|
|
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
|
|
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
login: anonymous
|
|
password: your@login
|
|
cd etext/etext91
|
|
or cd etext92 [for new books] [now also cd etext/etext92]
|
|
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
|
|
dir [to see files]
|
|
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
|
|
get gutmon.yr to get Newsletters [mon = month, yr = year]
|
|
for a list of books inside the Newsletter
|
|
and
|
|
GET NEW GUT for general information
|
|
and
|
|
MGET GUT* for newsletters.
|
|
|
|
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
|
|
(Three Pages)
|
|
|
|
****START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START****
|
|
|
|
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
|
|
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
|
|
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
|
|
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
|
|
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
|
|
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
|
|
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
|
|
|
|
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
|
|
|
|
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext,
|
|
you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive a
|
|
refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by sending
|
|
a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person you got
|
|
it from. If you received this etext on a physical medium (such
|
|
as a disk), you must return it with your request.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
|
|
|
|
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
|
|
etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
|
|
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association (the
|
|
"Project"). Among other things, this means that no one owns a
|
|
United States copyright on or for this work, so the Project (and
|
|
you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
|
|
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special
|
|
rules, set forth below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute
|
|
this etext under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
|
|
|
|
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable efforts
|
|
to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain works.
|
|
Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any medium they
|
|
may be on may contain "Defects". Among other things, Defects
|
|
may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data,
|
|
transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property
|
|
infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other etext medium,
|
|
a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be
|
|
read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
DISCLAIMER
|
|
|
|
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
|
|
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this etext
|
|
from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all liability to
|
|
you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees, and
|
|
[2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR UNDER STRICT LIABILI-
|
|
TY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL
|
|
DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
|
|
DAMAGES.
|
|
|
|
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
|
|
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you
|
|
paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that time to
|
|
the person you received it from. If you received it on a
|
|
physical medium, you must return it with your note, and such
|
|
person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement copy.
|
|
If you received it electronically, such person may choose to
|
|
alternatively give you a second opportunity to receive it elec-
|
|
tronically.
|
|
|
|
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
|
|
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
|
|
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
|
|
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
|
|
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
|
|
may have other legal rights.
|
|
|
|
INDEMNITY
|
|
|
|
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
|
|
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
|
|
and expense, including legal fees, that arise from any
|
|
distribution of this etext for which you are responsible, and
|
|
from [1] any alteration, modification or addition to the etext
|
|
for which you are responsible, or [2] any Defect.
|
|
|
|
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
|
|
|
|
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
|
|
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this "Small
|
|
Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg, or:
|
|
|
|
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this re-
|
|
quires that you do not remove, alter or modify the etext or
|
|
this "small print!" statement. You may however, if you
|
|
wish, distribute this etext in machine readable binary,
|
|
compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form, including any
|
|
form resulting from conversion by word processing or hyper-
|
|
text software, but only so long as *EITHER*:
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable. We
|
|
consider an etext *not* clearly readable if it
|
|
contains characters other than those intended by the
|
|
author of the work, although tilde (~), asterisk (*)
|
|
and underline (_) characters may be used to convey
|
|
punctuation intended by the author, and additional
|
|
characters may be used to indicate hypertext links.
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at no
|
|
expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent form
|
|
by the program that displays the etext (as is the
|
|
case, for instance, with most word processors).
|
|
|
|
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at no
|
|
additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the etext
|
|
in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC or
|
|
other equivalent proprietary form).
|
|
|
|
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement.
|
|
|
|
[3] Pay a trademark license fee of 20% (twenty percent) of the
|
|
net profits you derive from distributing this etext under
|
|
the trademark, determined in accordance with generally
|
|
accepted accounting practices. The license fee:
|
|
[*] Is required only if you derive such profits. In
|
|
distributing under our trademark, you incur no
|
|
obligation to charge money or earn profits for your
|
|
distribution.
|
|
|
|
[*] Shall be paid to "Project Gutenberg Association /
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College" (or to such other person
|
|
as the Project Gutenberg Association may direct)
|
|
within the 60 days following each date you prepare (or
|
|
were legally required to prepare) your year-end tax
|
|
return with respect to your income for that year.
|
|
|
|
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
|
|
|
|
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
|
|
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
|
|
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
|
|
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
|
|
Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
|
|
|
|
WRITE TO US! We can be reached at:
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg Director of Communications (PGDIRCOM)
|
|
Internet: pgdircom@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
Bitnet: pgdircom@uiucvmd
|
|
CompuServe: >internet:pgdircom@.vmd.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
Attmail: internet!vmd.cso.uiuc.edu!pgdircom
|
|
|
|
Drafted by CHARLES B. KRAMER, Attorney
|
|
CompuServe: 72600,2026
|
|
Internet: 72600.2026@compuserve.com
|
|
Tel: (212) 254-5093
|
|
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.07.02.92*END*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
*The Project Gutenberg Etext of Burroughs' The Return of Tarzan*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Return Of Tarzan by Edgar Rice Burroughs
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CONTENTS
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER
|
|
1 The Affair on the Liner
|
|
2 Forging Bonds of Hate and ----?
|
|
3 What Happened in the Rue Maule
|
|
4 The Countess Explains
|
|
5 The Plot That Failed
|
|
6 A Duel
|
|
7 The Dancing Girl of Sidi Aissa
|
|
8 The Fight in the Desert
|
|
9 Numa "El Adrea"
|
|
10 Through the Valley of the Shadow
|
|
11 John Caldwell, London
|
|
12 Ships That Pass
|
|
13 The Wreck of the "Lady Alice"
|
|
14 Back to the Primitive
|
|
15 From Ape to Savage
|
|
16 The Ivory Raiders
|
|
17 The White Chief of the Waziri
|
|
18 The Lottery of Death
|
|
19 The City of Gold
|
|
20 La
|
|
21 The Castaways
|
|
22 The Treasure Vaults of Opar
|
|
23 The Fifty Frightful Men
|
|
24 How Tarzan Came Again to Opar
|
|
25 Through the Forest Primeval
|
|
26 The Passing of the Ape-Man
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter I
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Affair on the Liner
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Magnifique!" ejaculated the Countess de Coude, beneath
|
|
her breath.
|
|
|
|
"Eh?" questioned the count, turning toward his young wife.
|
|
"What is it that is magnificent?" and the count bent his eyes
|
|
in various directions in quest of the object of her admiration.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, nothing at all, my dear," replied the countess, a slight
|
|
flush momentarily coloring her already pink cheek. "I was but
|
|
recalling with admiration those stupendous skyscrapers, as
|
|
they call them, of New York," and the fair countess settled
|
|
herself more comfortably in her steamer chair, and resumed
|
|
the magazine which "nothing at all" had caused her to let
|
|
fall upon her lap.
|
|
|
|
Her husband again buried himself in his book, but not
|
|
without a mild wonderment that three days out from New
|
|
York his countess should suddenly have realized an
|
|
admiration for the very buildings she had but recently
|
|
characterized as horrid.
|
|
|
|
Presently the count put down his book. "It is very tiresome,
|
|
Olga," he said. "I think that I shall hunt up some
|
|
others who may be equally bored, and see if we cannot find
|
|
enough for a game of cards."
|
|
|
|
"You are not very gallant, my husband," replied the young
|
|
woman, smiling, "but as I am equally bored I can forgive you.
|
|
Go and play at your tiresome old cards, then, if you will."
|
|
|
|
When he had gone she let her eyes wander slyly to the figure
|
|
of a tall young man stretched lazily in a chair not far distant.
|
|
|
|
"MAGNIFIQUE!" she breathed once more.
|
|
|
|
The Countess Olga de Coude was twenty. Her husband forty.
|
|
She was a very faithful and loyal wife, but as she had had
|
|
nothing whatever to do with the selection of a husband,
|
|
it is not at all unlikely that she was not wildly and
|
|
passionately in love with the one that fate and her titled
|
|
Russian father had selected for her. However, simply because
|
|
she was surprised into a tiny exclamation of approval at sight
|
|
of a splendid young stranger it must not be inferred therefrom
|
|
that her thoughts were in any way disloyal to her spouse.
|
|
She merely admired, as she might have admired a particularly
|
|
fine specimen of any species. Furthermore, the young man
|
|
was unquestionably good to look at.
|
|
|
|
As her furtive glance rested upon his profile he rose to leave
|
|
the deck. The Countess de Coude beckoned to a passing steward.
|
|
"Who is that gentleman?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"He is booked, madam, as Monsieur Tarzan, of Africa,"
|
|
replied the steward.
|
|
|
|
"Rather a large estate," thought the girl, but now her
|
|
interest was still further aroused.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan walked slowly toward the smoking-room he
|
|
came unexpectedly upon two men whispering excitedly just
|
|
without. He would have vouchsafed them not even a passing
|
|
thought but for the strangely guilty glance that one of them
|
|
shot in his direction. They reminded Tarzan of melodramatic
|
|
villains he had seen at the theaters in Paris. Both were very
|
|
dark, and this, in connection with the shrugs and stealthy
|
|
glances that accompanied their palpable intriguing, lent still
|
|
greater force to the similarity.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan entered the smoking-room, and sought a chair a
|
|
little apart from the others who were there. He felt in no
|
|
mood for conversation, and as he sipped his absinth he let
|
|
his mind run rather sorrowfully over the past few weeks of
|
|
his life. Time and again he had wondered if he had acted
|
|
wisely in renouncing his birthright to a man to whom he
|
|
owed nothing. It is true that he liked Clayton, but--ah, but
|
|
that was not the question. It was not for William Cecil Clayton,
|
|
Lord Greystoke, that he had denied his birth. It was for
|
|
the woman whom both he and Clayton had loved, and whom a
|
|
strange freak of fate had given to Clayton instead of to him.
|
|
|
|
That she loved him made the thing doubly difficult to bear,
|
|
yet he knew that he could have done nothing less than he
|
|
did do that night within the little railway station in the far
|
|
Wisconsin woods. To him her happiness was the first consideration
|
|
of all, and his brief experience with civilization and civilized
|
|
men had taught him that without money and position life to
|
|
most of them was unendurable.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter had been born to both, and had Tarzan taken
|
|
them away from her future husband it would doubtless have
|
|
plunged her into a life of misery and torture. That she would
|
|
have spurned Clayton once he had been stripped of both his
|
|
title and his estates never for once occurred to Tarzan, for
|
|
he credited to others the same honest loyalty that was so
|
|
inherent a quality in himself. Nor, in this instance, had he erred.
|
|
Could any one thing have further bound Jane Porter to her
|
|
promise to Clayton it would have been in the nature
|
|
of some such misfortune as this overtaking him.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan's thoughts drifted from the past to the future.
|
|
He tried to look forward with pleasurable sensations to his
|
|
return to the jungle of his birth and boyhood; the cruel, fierce
|
|
jungle in which he had spent twenty of his twenty-two years.
|
|
But who or what of all the myriad jungle life would there
|
|
be to welcome his return? Not one. Only Tantor, the elephant,
|
|
could he call friend. The others would hunt him or
|
|
flee from him as had been their way in the past.
|
|
|
|
Not even the apes of his own tribe would extend the hand
|
|
of fellowship to him.
|
|
|
|
If civilization had done nothing else for Tarzan of the
|
|
Apes, it had to some extent taught him to crave the society
|
|
of his own kind, and to feel with genuine pleasure the
|
|
congenial warmth of companionship. And in the same ratio
|
|
had it made any other life distasteful to him. It was difficult
|
|
to imagine a world without a friend--without a living thing
|
|
who spoke the new tongues which Tarzan had learned to
|
|
love so well. And so it was that Tarzan looked with little
|
|
relish upon the future he had mapped out for himself.
|
|
|
|
As he sat musing over his cigarette his eyes fell upon a
|
|
mirror before him, and in it he saw reflected a table at which
|
|
four men sat at cards. Presently one of them rose to leave,
|
|
and then another approached, and Tarzan could see that he
|
|
courteously offered to fill the vacant chair, that the game
|
|
might not be interrupted. He was the smaller of the two whom
|
|
Tarzan had seen whispering just outside the smoking-room.
|
|
|
|
It was this fact that aroused a faint spark of interest in
|
|
Tarzan, and so as he speculated upon the future he watched
|
|
in the mirror the reflection of the players at the table
|
|
behind him. Aside from the man who had but just entered the
|
|
game Tarzan knew the name of but one of the other players.
|
|
It was he who sat opposite the new player, Count Raoul
|
|
de Coude, whom at over-attentive steward had pointed out as
|
|
one of the celebrities of the passage, describing him as a
|
|
man high in the official family of the French minister of war.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly Tarzan's attention was riveted upon the picture
|
|
in the glass. The other swarthy plotter had entered, and was
|
|
standing behind the count's chair. Tarzan saw him turn and
|
|
glance furtively about the room, but his eyes did not rest for
|
|
a sufficient time upon the mirror to note the reflection of
|
|
Tarzan's watchful eyes. Stealthily the man withdrew something
|
|
from his pocket. Tarzan could not discern what the object was,
|
|
for the man's hand covered it.
|
|
|
|
Slowly the hand approached the count, and then, very deftly,
|
|
the thing that was in it was transferred to the count's pocket.
|
|
The man remained standing where he could watch the
|
|
Frenchman's cards. Tarzan was puzzled, but he was all
|
|
attention now, nor did he permit another detail of the
|
|
incident to escape him.
|
|
|
|
The play went on for some ten minutes after this, until
|
|
the count won a considerable wager from him who had
|
|
last joined the game, and then Tarzan saw the fellow back
|
|
of the count's chair nod his head to his confederate.
|
|
Instantly the player arose and pointed a finger at the count.
|
|
|
|
"Had I known that monsieur was a professional card sharp
|
|
I had not been so ready to be drawn into the game," he said.
|
|
|
|
Instantly the count and the two other players were upon
|
|
their feet.
|
|
|
|
De Coude's face went white.
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean, sir?" he cried. "Do you know to whom
|
|
you speak?"
|
|
|
|
"I know that I speak, for the last time, to one who cheats
|
|
at cards," replied the fellow.
|
|
|
|
The count leaned across the table, and struck the man full
|
|
in the mouth with his open palm, and then the others closed
|
|
in between them.
|
|
|
|
"There is some mistake, sir," cried one of the other players.
|
|
"Why, this is Count de Coude, of France."
|
|
"If I am mistaken," said the accuser, "I shall gladly apologize;
|
|
but before I do so first let monsieur le count explain
|
|
the extra cards which I saw him drop into his side pocket."
|
|
|
|
And then the man whom Tarzan had seen drop them there
|
|
turned to sneak from the room, but to his annoyance he
|
|
found the exit barred by a tall, gray-eyed stranger.
|
|
|
|
"Pardon," said the man brusquely, attempting to pass to one side.
|
|
|
|
"Wait," said Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"But why, monsieur?" exclaimed the other petulantly.
|
|
"Permit me to pass, monsieur."
|
|
|
|
"Wait," said Tarzan. "I think that there is a matter in here
|
|
that you may doubtless be able to explain."
|
|
|
|
The fellow had lost his temper by this time, and with a low
|
|
oath seized Tarzan to push him to one side. The ape-man
|
|
but smiled as he twisted the big fellow about and, grasping
|
|
him by the collar of his coat, escorted him back to the table,
|
|
struggling, cursing, and striking in futile remonstrance.
|
|
It was Nikolas Rokoff's first experience with the muscles that
|
|
had brought their savage owner victorious through encounters
|
|
with Numa, the lion, and Terkoz, the great bull ape.
|
|
|
|
The man who had accused De Coude, and the two others who
|
|
had been playing, stood looking expectantly at the count.
|
|
Several other passengers had drawn toward the scene of the
|
|
altercation, and all awaited the denouement.
|
|
|
|
"The fellow is crazy," said the count. "Gentlemen, I implore
|
|
that one of you search me."
|
|
|
|
"The accusation is ridiculous." This from one of the players.
|
|
|
|
"You have but to slip your hand in the count's coat pocket
|
|
and you will see that the accusation is quite serious," insisted
|
|
the accuser. And then, as the others still hesitated to do so:
|
|
"Come, I shall do it myself if no other will," and he stepped
|
|
forward toward the count.
|
|
|
|
"No, monsieur," said De Coude. "I will submit to a search
|
|
only at the hands of a gentleman."
|
|
|
|
"It is unnecessary to search the count. The cards are in
|
|
his pocket. I myself saw them placed there."
|
|
|
|
All turned in surprise toward this new speaker, to behold
|
|
a very well-built young man urging a resisting captive toward
|
|
them by the scruff of his neck.
|
|
|
|
"It is a conspiracy," cried De Coude angrily. "There are no
|
|
cards in my coat," and with that he ran his hand into his
|
|
pocket. As he did so tense silence reigned in the little group.
|
|
The count went dead white, and then very slowly he withdrew
|
|
his hand, and in it were three cards.
|
|
|
|
He looked at them in mute and horrified surprise, and slowly
|
|
the red of mortification suffused his face. Expressions of
|
|
pity and contempt tinged the features of those who looked
|
|
on at the death of a man's honor.
|
|
|
|
"It is a conspiracy, monsieur." It was the gray-eyed stranger
|
|
who spoke. "Gentlemen," he continued, "monsieur le count
|
|
did not know that those cards were in his pocket. They were
|
|
placed there without his knowledge as he sat at play.
|
|
From where I sat in that chair yonder I saw the reflection of it
|
|
all in the mirror before me. This person whom I just intercepted
|
|
in an effort to escape placed the cards in the count's pocket."
|
|
|
|
De Coude had glanced from Tarzan to the man in his grasp.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU, Nikolas!" he cried. "You?"
|
|
|
|
Then he turned to his accuser, and eyed him intently for a moment.
|
|
|
|
"And you, monsieur, I did not recognize you without your
|
|
beard. It quite disguises you, Paulvitch. I see it all now.
|
|
It is quite clear, gentlemen."
|
|
|
|
"What shall we do with them, monsieur?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
"Turn them over to the captain?"
|
|
|
|
"No, my friend," said the count hastily. "It is a personal
|
|
matter, and I beg that you will let it drop. It is sufficient
|
|
that I have been exonerated from the charge. The less we have
|
|
to do with such fellows, the better. But, monsieur, how can
|
|
I thank you for the great kindness you have done me?
|
|
Permit me to offer you my card, and should the time come
|
|
when I may serve you, remember that I am yours to command."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had released Rokoff, who, with his confederate,
|
|
Paulvitch, had hastened from the smoking-room. Just as he
|
|
was leaving, Rokoff turned to Tarzan. "Monsieur will have
|
|
ample opportunity to regret his interference in the affairs
|
|
of others."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan smiled, and then, bowing to the count, handed him
|
|
his own card.
|
|
|
|
The count read:
|
|
|
|
M. JEAN C. TARZAN
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur Tarzan," he said, "may indeed wish that he had
|
|
never befriended me, for I can assure him that he has won
|
|
the enmity of two of the most unmitigated scoundrels in all
|
|
Europe. Avoid them, monsieur, by all means."
|
|
|
|
"I have had more awe-inspiring enemies, my dear count," replied
|
|
Tarzan with a quiet smile, "yet I am still alive and unworried.
|
|
I think that neither of these two will ever find the means to harm me."
|
|
|
|
"Let us hope not, monsieur," said De Coude; "but yet it will
|
|
do no harm to be on the alert, and to know that you have made
|
|
at least one enemy today who never forgets and never forgives,
|
|
and in whose malignant brain there are always hatching new
|
|
atrocities to perpetrate upon those who have thwarted or
|
|
offended him. To say that Nikolas Rokoff is a devil would
|
|
be to place a wanton affront upon his satanic majesty."
|
|
|
|
That night as Tarzan entered his cabin he found a folded
|
|
note upon the floor that had evidently been pushed beneath
|
|
the door. He opened it and read:
|
|
|
|
M. TARZAN:
|
|
|
|
Doubtless you did not realize the gravity of your offense,
|
|
or you would not have done the thing you did today.
|
|
I am willing to believe that you acted in ignorance and
|
|
without any intention to offend a stranger. For this reason
|
|
I shall gladly permit you to offer an apology, and on receiving
|
|
your assurances that you will not again interfere in affairs
|
|
that do not concern you, I shall drop the matter.
|
|
|
|
Otherwise--but I am sure that you will see the wisdom of
|
|
adopting the course I suggest.
|
|
Very respectfully,
|
|
NIKOLAS ROKOFF.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Tarzan permitted a grim smile to play about his lips for a
|
|
moment, then he promptly dropped the matter from his mind,
|
|
and went to bed.
|
|
|
|
In a nearby cabin the Countess de Coude was speaking to her husband.
|
|
|
|
"Why so grave, my dear Raoul?" she asked. "You have been
|
|
as glum as could be all evening. What worries you?"
|
|
|
|
"Olga, Nikolas is on board. Did you know it?"
|
|
|
|
"Nikolas!" she exclaimed. "But it is impossible, Raoul.
|
|
It cannot be. Nikolas is under arrest in Germany."
|
|
|
|
"So I thought myself until I saw him today--him and that
|
|
other arch scoundrel, Paulvitch. Olga, I cannot endure his
|
|
persecution much longer. No, not even for you. Sooner or later
|
|
I shall turn him over to the authorities. In fact, I am half
|
|
minded to explain all to the captain before we land. On a
|
|
French liner it were an easy matter, Olga, permanently to
|
|
settle this Nemesis of ours."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no, Raoul!" cried the countess, sinking to her knees
|
|
before him as he sat with bowed head upon a divan. "Do not
|
|
do that. Remember your promise to me. Tell me, Raoul, that
|
|
you will not do that. Do not even threaten him, Raoul."
|
|
|
|
De Coude took his wife's hands in his, and gazed upon
|
|
her pale and troubled countenance for some time before he
|
|
spoke, as though he would wrest from those beautiful eyes
|
|
the real reason which prompted her to shield this man.
|
|
|
|
"Let it be as you wish, Olga," he said at length. "I cannot
|
|
understand. He has forfeited all claim upon your love, loyalty,
|
|
or respect. He is a menace to your life and honor, and the
|
|
life and honor of your husband. I trust you may never regret
|
|
championing him."
|
|
|
|
"I do not champion him, Raoul," she interrupted vehemently.
|
|
"I believe that I hate him as much as you do, but--Oh, Raoul,
|
|
blood is thicker than water."
|
|
|
|
"I should today have liked to sample the consistency of
|
|
his," growled De Coude grimly. "The two deliberately
|
|
attempted to besmirch my honor, Olga," and then he told her
|
|
of all that had happened in the smoking-room. "Had it
|
|
not been for this utter stranger, they had succeeded, for who
|
|
would have accepted my unsupported word against the damning
|
|
evidence of those cards hidden on my person? I had almost
|
|
begun to doubt myself when this Monsieur Tarzan dragged
|
|
your precious Nikolas before us, and explained the
|
|
whole cowardly transaction."
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur Tarzan?" asked the countess, in evident surprise.
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Do you know him, Olga?"
|
|
|
|
"I have seen him. A steward pointed him out to me."
|
|
|
|
"I did not know that he was a celebrity," said the count.
|
|
|
|
Olga de Coude changed the subject. She discovered suddenly
|
|
that she might find it difficult to explain just why
|
|
the steward had pointed out the handsome Monsieur Tarzan
|
|
to her. Perhaps she flushed the least little bit, for was
|
|
not the count, her husband, gazing at her with a strangely
|
|
quizzical expression. "Ah," she thought, "a guilty
|
|
conscience is a most suspicious thing."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 2
|
|
|
|
|
|
Forging Bonds of Hate and ----?
|
|
|
|
|
|
It was not until late the following afternoon that Tarzan
|
|
saw anything more of the fellow passengers into the midst
|
|
of whose affairs his love of fair play had thrust him.
|
|
And then he came most unexpectedly upon Rokoff and Paulvitch
|
|
at a moment when of all others the two might least
|
|
appreciate his company.
|
|
|
|
They were standing on deck at a point which was temporarily
|
|
deserted, and as Tarzan came upon them they were in
|
|
heated argument with a woman. Tarzan noted that she was
|
|
richly appareled, and that her slender, well-modeled figure
|
|
denoted youth; but as she was heavily veiled he could not
|
|
discern her features.
|
|
|
|
The men were standing on either side of her, and the
|
|
backs of all were toward Tarzan, so that he was quite close
|
|
to them without their being aware of his presence.
|
|
He noticed that Rokoff seemed to be threatening, the woman
|
|
pleading; but they spoke in a strange tongue, and he could
|
|
only guess from appearances that the girl was afraid.
|
|
|
|
Rokoff's attitude was so distinctly filled with the threat of
|
|
physical violence that the ape-man paused for an instant just
|
|
behind the trio, instinctively sensing an atmosphere of danger.
|
|
Scarcely had he hesitated ere the man seized the woman
|
|
roughly by the wrist, twisting it as though to wring a promise
|
|
from her through torture. What would have happened next
|
|
had Rokoff had his way we may only conjecture, since he
|
|
did not have his way at all. Instead, steel fingers gripped his
|
|
shoulder, and he was swung unceremoniously around, to meet
|
|
the cold gray eyes of the stranger who had thwarted him
|
|
on the previous day.
|
|
|
|
"SAPRISTI!" screamed the infuriated Rokoff. "What do you
|
|
mean? Are you a fool that you thus again insult Nikolas Rokoff?"
|
|
|
|
"This is my answer to your note, monsieur," said Tarzan,
|
|
in a low voice. And then he hurled the fellow from him with
|
|
such force that Rokoff lunged sprawling against the rail.
|
|
|
|
"Name of a name!" shrieked Rokoff. "Pig, but you shall die
|
|
for this," and, springing to his feet, he rushed upon Tarzan,
|
|
tugging the meanwhile to draw a revolver from his hip
|
|
pocket. The girl shrank back in terror.
|
|
|
|
"Nikolas!" she cried. "Do not--oh, do not do that. Quick,
|
|
monsieur, fly, or he will surely kill you!" But instead of
|
|
flying Tarzan advanced to meet the fellow. "Do not make a
|
|
fool of yourself, monsieur," he said.
|
|
|
|
Rokoff, who was in a perfect frenzy of rage at the humiliation
|
|
the stranger had put upon him, had at last succeeded in drawing
|
|
the revolver. He had stopped, and now he deliberately raised
|
|
it to Tarzan's breast and pulled the trigger. The hammer fell
|
|
with a futile click on an empty chamber--the ape-man's hand
|
|
shot out like the head of an angry python; there was a quick
|
|
wrench, and the revolver sailed far out across the ship's
|
|
rail, and dropped into the Atlantic.
|
|
|
|
For a moment the two men stood there facing one another. Rokoff
|
|
had regained his self-possession. He was the first to speak.
|
|
|
|
"Twice now has monsieur seen fit to interfere in matters
|
|
which do not concern him. Twice he has taken it upon himself
|
|
to humiliate Nikolas Rokoff. The first offense was overlooked
|
|
on the assumption that monsieur acted through ignorance,
|
|
but this affair shall not be overlooked. If monsieur
|
|
does not know who Nikolas Rokoff is, this last piece of
|
|
effrontery will insure that monsieur later has good reason
|
|
to remember him."
|
|
|
|
"That you are a coward and a scoundrel, monsieur," replied
|
|
Tarzan, "is all that I care to know of you," and he
|
|
turned to ask the girl if the man had hurt her, but she had
|
|
disappeared. Then, without even a glance toward Rokoff and
|
|
his companion, he continued his stroll along the deck.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan could not but wonder what manner of conspiracy
|
|
was on foot, or what the scheme of the two men might be.
|
|
There had been something rather familiar about the
|
|
appearance of the veiled woman to whose rescue he had just
|
|
come, but as he had not seen her face he could not be sure
|
|
that he had ever seen her before. The only thing about her
|
|
that he had particularly noticed was a ring of peculiar
|
|
workmanship upon a finger of the hand that Rokoff had
|
|
seized, and he determined to note the fingers of the women
|
|
passengers he came upon thereafter, that he might discover
|
|
the identity of her whom Rokoff was persecuting, and learn
|
|
if the fellow had offered her further annoyance.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had sought his deck chair, where he sat speculating
|
|
on the numerous instances of human cruelty, selfishness, and
|
|
spite that had fallen to his lot to witness since that day in
|
|
the jungle four years since that his eyes had first fallen
|
|
upon a human being other than himself--the sleek, black
|
|
Kulonga, whose swift spear had that day found the vitals of
|
|
Kala, the great she-ape, and robbed the youth, Tarzan, of
|
|
the only mother he had ever known.
|
|
|
|
He recalled the murder of King by the rat-faced Snipes;
|
|
the abandonment of Professor Porter and his party by the
|
|
mutineers of the ARROW; the cruelty of the black warriors
|
|
and women of Mbonga to their captives; the petty jealousies of
|
|
the civil and military officers of the West Coast colony that
|
|
had afforded him his first introduction to the civilized world.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU!" he soliloquized, "but they are all alike.
|
|
Cheating, murdering, lying, fighting, and all for things that
|
|
the beasts of the jungle would not deign to possess--money
|
|
to purchase the effeminate pleasures of weaklings. And yet
|
|
withal bound down by silly customs that make them slaves to
|
|
their unhappy lot while firm in the belief that they be the
|
|
lords of creation enjoying the only real pleasures of existence.
|
|
In the jungle one would scarcely stand supinely aside while
|
|
another took his mate. It is a silly world, an idiotic world,
|
|
and Tarzan of the Apes was a fool to renounce the freedom and
|
|
the happiness of his jungle to come into it."
|
|
|
|
Presently, as he sat there, the sudden feeling came over
|
|
him that eyes were watching from behind, and the old
|
|
instinct of the wild beast broke through the thin veneer of
|
|
civilization, so that Tarzan wheeled about so quickly that the
|
|
eyes of the young woman who had been surreptitiously regarding
|
|
him had not even time to drop before the gray eyes
|
|
of the ape-man shot an inquiring look straight into them.
|
|
Then, as they fell, Tarzan saw a faint wave of crimson creep
|
|
swiftly over the now half-averted face.
|
|
|
|
He smiled to himself at the result of his very uncivilized and
|
|
ungallant action, for he had not lowered his own eyes when
|
|
they met those of the young woman. She was very young,
|
|
and equally good to look upon. Further, there was something
|
|
rather familiar about her that set Tarzan to wondering
|
|
where he had seen her before. He resumed his former position,
|
|
and presently he was aware that she had arisen and was
|
|
leaving the deck. As she passed, Tarzan turned to watch her,
|
|
in the hope that he might discover a clew to satisfy his mild
|
|
curiosity as to her identity.
|
|
|
|
Nor was he disappointed entirely, for as she walked away
|
|
she raised one hand to the black, waving mass at the nape
|
|
of her neck--the peculiarly feminine gesture that admits
|
|
cognizance of appraising eyes behind her--and Tarzan saw
|
|
upon a finger of this hand the ring of strange workmanship
|
|
that he had seen upon the finger of the veiled woman a short
|
|
time before.
|
|
|
|
So it was this beautiful young woman Rokoff had been
|
|
persecuting. Tarzan wondered in a lazy sort of way whom
|
|
she might be, and what relations one so lovely could have
|
|
with the surly, bearded Russian.
|
|
|
|
After dinner that evening Tarzan strolled forward, where
|
|
he remained until after dark, in conversation with the second
|
|
officer, and when that gentleman's duties called him elsewhere
|
|
Tarzan lolled lazily by the rail watching the play of
|
|
the moonlight upon the gently rolling waters. He was
|
|
half hidden by a davit, so that two men who approached
|
|
along the deck did not see him, and as they passed Tarzan
|
|
caught enough of their conversation to cause him to fall in
|
|
behind them, to follow and learn what deviltry they were up
|
|
to. He had recognized the voice as that of Rokoff, and had
|
|
seen that his companion was Paulvitch.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had overheard but a few words: "And if she screams
|
|
you may choke her until--" But those had been enough to
|
|
arouse the spirit of adventure within him, and so he kept the
|
|
two men in sight as they walked, briskly now, along the deck.
|
|
To the smoking-room he followed them, but they merely
|
|
halted at the doorway long enough, apparently, to assure
|
|
themselves that one whose whereabouts they wished to
|
|
establish was within.
|
|
|
|
Then they proceeded directly to the first-class cabins upon
|
|
the promenade deck. Here Tarzan found greater difficulty
|
|
in escaping detection, but he managed to do so successfully.
|
|
As they halted before one of the polished hardwood doors,
|
|
Tarzan slipped into the shadow of a passageway not a dozen
|
|
feet from them.
|
|
|
|
To their knock a woman's voice asked in French: "Who is it?"
|
|
|
|
"It is I, Olga--Nikolas," was the answer, in Rokoff's now
|
|
familiar guttural. "May I come in?"
|
|
|
|
"Why do you not cease persecuting me, Nikolas?" came
|
|
the voice of the woman from beyond the thin panel.
|
|
"I have never harmed you."
|
|
|
|
"Come, come, Olga," urged the man, in propitiary tones;
|
|
"I but ask a half dozen words with you. I shall not harm you,
|
|
nor shall I enter your cabin; but I cannot shout my message
|
|
through the door."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan heard the catch click as it was released from the
|
|
inside. He stepped out from his hiding-place far enough to
|
|
see what transpired when the door was opened, for he could
|
|
not but recall the sinister words he had heard a few moments
|
|
before upon the deck, "And if she screams you may choke her."
|
|
|
|
Rokoff was standing directly in front of the door. Paulvitch
|
|
had flattened himself against the paneled wall of the corridor
|
|
beyond. The door opened. Rokoff half entered the room, and
|
|
stood with his back against the door, speaking in a low whisper
|
|
to the woman, whom Tarzan could not see. Then Tarzan heard the
|
|
woman's voice, level, but loud enough to distinguish her words.
|
|
|
|
"No, Nikolas," she was saying, "it is useless. Threaten as you
|
|
will, I shall never accede to your demands. Leave the room,
|
|
please; you have no right here. You promised not to enter."
|
|
|
|
"Very well, Olga, I shall not enter; but before I am done
|
|
with you, you shall wish a thousand times that you had
|
|
done at once the favor I have asked. In the end I shall win
|
|
anyway, so you might as well save trouble and time for me,
|
|
and disgrace for yourself and your--"
|
|
|
|
"Never, Nikolas!" interrupted the woman, and then Tarzan
|
|
saw Rokoff turn and nod to Paulvitch, who sprang quickly
|
|
toward the doorway of the cabin, rushing in past Rokoff, who
|
|
held the door open for him. Then the latter stepped quickly out.
|
|
The door closed. Tarzan heard the click of the lock as
|
|
Paulvitch turned it from the inside. Rokoff remained standing
|
|
before the door, with head bent, as though to catch the words
|
|
of the two within. A nasty smile curled his bearded lip.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan could hear the woman's voice commanding the fellow to
|
|
leave her cabin. "I shall send for my husband," she cried.
|
|
"He will show you no mercy."
|
|
|
|
Paulvitch's sneering laugh came through the polished panels.
|
|
|
|
"The purser will fetch your husband, madame," said the man.
|
|
"In fact, that officer has already been notified that you
|
|
are entertaining a man other than your husband behind the
|
|
locked door of your cabin."
|
|
|
|
"Bah!" cried the woman. "My husband will know!"
|
|
|
|
"Most assuredly your husband will know, but the purser
|
|
will not; nor will the newspaper men who shall in some
|
|
mysterious way hear of it on our landing. But they will
|
|
think it a fine story, and so will all your friends when they
|
|
read of it at breakfast on--let me see, this is Tuesday--yes,
|
|
when they read of it at breakfast next Friday morning.
|
|
Nor will it detract from the interest they will all feel when
|
|
they learn that the man whom madame entertained is a Russian
|
|
servant--her brother's valet, to be quite exact."
|
|
|
|
"Alexis Paulvitch," came the woman's voice, cold and fearless,
|
|
"you are a coward, and when I whisper a certain name
|
|
in your ear you will think better of your demands upon me
|
|
and your threats against me, and then you will leave my
|
|
cabin quickly, nor do I think that ever again will you, at
|
|
least, annoy me," and there came a moment's silence in
|
|
which Tarzan could imagine the woman leaning toward the
|
|
scoundrel and whispering the thing she had hinted at into
|
|
his ear. Only a moment of silence, and then a startled oath
|
|
from the man--the scuffling of feet--a woman's scream--
|
|
and silence.
|
|
|
|
But scarcely had the cry ceased before the ape-man had
|
|
leaped from his hiding-place. Rokoff started to run, but
|
|
Tarzan grasped him by the collar and dragged him back.
|
|
Neither spoke, for both felt instinctively that murder was
|
|
being done in that room, and Tarzan was confident that Rokoff
|
|
had had no intention that his confederate should go that
|
|
far--he felt that the man's aims were deeper than that--deeper
|
|
and even more sinister than brutal, cold-blooded murder.
|
|
Without hesitating to question those within, the ape-man
|
|
threw his giant shoulder against the frail panel, and in a
|
|
shower of splintered wood he entered the cabin, dragging
|
|
Rokoff after him. Before him, on a couch, the woman lay,
|
|
and on top of her was Paulvitch, his fingers gripping the
|
|
fair throat, while his victim's hands beat futilely at his face,
|
|
tearing desperately at the cruel fingers that were forcing the
|
|
life from her.
|
|
|
|
The noise of his entrance brought Paulvitch to his feet,
|
|
where he stood glowering menacingly at Tarzan. The girl
|
|
rose falteringly to a sitting posture upon the couch.
|
|
One hand was at her throat, and her breath came in little gasps.
|
|
Although disheveled and very pale, Tarzan recognized her
|
|
as the young woman whom he had caught staring at him on
|
|
deck earlier in the day.
|
|
|
|
"What is the meaning of this?" said Tarzan, turning to Rokoff,
|
|
whom he intuitively singled out as the instigator of the outrage.
|
|
The man remained silent, scowling. "Touch the button, please,"
|
|
continued the ape-man; "we will have one of the ship's
|
|
officers here--this affair has gone quite far enough."
|
|
|
|
"No, no," cried the girl, coming suddenly to her feet.
|
|
"Please do not do that. I am sure that there was no real
|
|
intention to harm me. I angered this person, and he lost
|
|
control of himself, that is all. I would not care to have the
|
|
matter go further, please, monsieur," and there was such a
|
|
note of pleading in her voice that Tarzan could not press
|
|
the matter, though his better judgment warned him that
|
|
there was something afoot here of which the proper
|
|
authorities should be made cognizant.
|
|
|
|
"You wish me to do nothing, then, in the matter?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Nothing, please," she replied.
|
|
|
|
"You are content that these two scoundrels should continue
|
|
persecuting you?"
|
|
|
|
She did not seem to know what answer to make, and
|
|
looked very troubled and unhappy. Tarzan saw a malicious
|
|
grin of triumph curl Rokoff's lip. The girl evidently was in
|
|
fear of these two--she dared not express her real desires
|
|
before them.
|
|
|
|
"Then," said Tarzan, "I shall act on my own responsibility.
|
|
To you," he continued, turning to Rokoff, "and this includes
|
|
your accomplice, I may say that from now on to the end of
|
|
the voyage I shall take it upon myself to keep an eye on
|
|
you, and should there chance to come to my notice any
|
|
act of either one of you that might even remotely annoy this
|
|
young woman you shall be called to account for it directly
|
|
to me, nor shall the calling or the accounting be pleasant
|
|
experiences for either of you.
|
|
|
|
"Now get out of here," and he grabbed Rokoff and
|
|
Paulvitch each by the scruff of the neck and thrust them
|
|
forcibly through the doorway, giving each an added impetus
|
|
down the corridor with the toe of his boot. Then he turned
|
|
back to the stateroom and the girl. She was looking at him
|
|
in wide-eyed astonishment.
|
|
|
|
"And you, madame, will confer a great favor upon me if you
|
|
will but let me know if either of those rascals troubles
|
|
you further."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, monsieur," she answered, "I hope that you will not
|
|
suffer for the kind deed you attempted. You have made a
|
|
very wicked and resourceful enemy, who will stop at nothing
|
|
to satisfy his hatred. You must be very careful indeed,
|
|
Monsieur--"
|
|
|
|
"Pardon me, madame, my name is Tarzan."
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur Tarzan. And because I would not consent to
|
|
notify the officers, do not think that I am not sincerely
|
|
grateful to you for the brave and chivalrous protection you
|
|
rendered me. Good night, Monsieur Tarzan. I shall never
|
|
forget the debt I owe you," and, with a most winsome smile
|
|
that displayed a row of perfect teeth, the girl curtsied to
|
|
Tarzan, who bade her good night and made his way on deck.
|
|
|
|
It puzzled the man considerably that there should be two
|
|
on board--this girl and Count de Coude--who suffered
|
|
indignities at the hands of Rokoff and his companion, and yet
|
|
would not permit the offenders to be brought to justice.
|
|
Before he turned in that night his thoughts reverted many
|
|
times to the beautiful young woman into the evidently tangled
|
|
web of whose life fate had so strangely introduced him.
|
|
It occurred to him that he had not learned her name.
|
|
That she was married had been evidenced by the narrow gold
|
|
band that encircled the third finger of her left hand.
|
|
Involuntarily he wondered who the lucky man might be.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan saw nothing further of any of the actors in the
|
|
little drama that he had caught a fleeting glimpse of until
|
|
late in the afternoon of the last day of the voyage. Then he
|
|
came suddenly face to face with the young woman as the
|
|
two approached their deck chairs from opposite directions.
|
|
She greeted him with a pleasant smile, speaking almost
|
|
immediately of the affair he had witnessed in her cabin two
|
|
nights before. It was as though she had been perturbed by a
|
|
conviction that he might have construed her acquaintance
|
|
with such men as Rokoff and Paulvitch as a personal
|
|
reflection upon herself.
|
|
|
|
"I trust monsieur has not judged me," she said, "by the
|
|
unfortunate occurrence of Tuesday evening. I have suffered
|
|
much on account of it--this is the first time that I
|
|
have ventured from my cabin since; I have been ashamed,"
|
|
she concluded simply.
|
|
|
|
"One does not judge the gazelle by the lions that attack
|
|
it," replied Tarzan. "I had seen those two work before--in
|
|
the smoking-room the day prior to their attack on you, if I
|
|
recollect it correctly, and so, knowing their methods, I am
|
|
convinced that their enmity is a sufficient guarantee of the
|
|
integrity of its object. Men such as they must cleave only
|
|
to the vile, hating all that is noblest and best."
|
|
|
|
"It is very kind of you to put it that way," she replied,
|
|
smiling. "I have already heard of the matter of the card
|
|
game. My husband told me the entire story. He spoke
|
|
especially of the strength and bravery of Monsieur Tarzan,
|
|
to whom he feels that he owes an immense debt of gratitude."
|
|
|
|
"Your husband?" repeated Tarzan questioningly.
|
|
|
|
"Yes. I am the Countess de Coude."
|
|
|
|
"I am already amply repaid, madame, in knowing that I
|
|
have rendered a service to the wife of the Count de Coude."
|
|
|
|
"Alas, monsieur, I already am so greatly indebted to you
|
|
that I may never hope to settle my own account, so pray
|
|
do not add further to my obligations," and she smiled so
|
|
sweetly upon him that Tarzan felt that a man might easily
|
|
attempt much greater things than he had accomplished, solely
|
|
for the pleasure of receiving the benediction of that smile.
|
|
|
|
He did not see her again that day, and in the rush of
|
|
landing on the following morning he missed her entirely,
|
|
but there had been something in the expression of her eyes
|
|
as they parted on deck the previous day that haunted him.
|
|
It had been almost wistful as they had spoken of the
|
|
strangeness of the swift friendships of an ocean crossing,
|
|
and of the equal ease with which they are broken forever.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan wondered if he should ever see her again.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 3
|
|
|
|
|
|
What Happened in the Rue Maule
|
|
|
|
|
|
On his arrival in Paris, Tarzan had gone directly to
|
|
the apartments of his old friend, D'Arnot, where the
|
|
naval lieutenant had scored him roundly for his decision
|
|
to renounce the title and estates that were rightly his
|
|
from his father, John Clayton, the late Lord Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
"You must be mad, my friend," said D'Arnot, "thus lightly
|
|
to give up not alone wealth and position, but an opportunity
|
|
to prove beyond doubt to all the world that in your veins
|
|
flows the noble blood of two of England's most honored
|
|
houses--instead of the blood of a savage she-ape. It is
|
|
incredible that they could have believed you--Miss Porter
|
|
least of all.
|
|
|
|
"Why, I never did believe it, even back in the wilds of
|
|
your African jungle, when you tore the raw meat of your
|
|
kills with mighty jaws, like some wild beast, and wiped your
|
|
greasy hands upon your thighs. Even then, before there was
|
|
the slightest proof to the contrary, I knew that you were
|
|
mistaken in the belief that Kala was your mother.
|
|
|
|
"And now, with your father's diary of the terrible life
|
|
led by him and your mother on that wild African shore;
|
|
with the account of your birth, and, final and most
|
|
convincing proof of all, your own baby finger prints upon the
|
|
pages of it, it seems incredible to me that you are willing
|
|
to remain a nameless, penniless vagabond."
|
|
|
|
"I do not need any better name than Tarzan," replied the
|
|
ape-man; "and as for remaining a penniless vagabond, I
|
|
have no intention of so doing. In fact, the next, and let us
|
|
hope the last, burden that I shall be forced to put upon your
|
|
unselfish friendship will be the finding of employment for me."
|
|
|
|
"Pooh, pooh!" scoffed D'Arnot. "You know that I did not
|
|
mean that. Have I not told you a dozen times that I have
|
|
enough for twenty men, and that half of what I have is
|
|
yours? And if I gave it all to you, would it represent even
|
|
the tenth part of the value I place upon your friendship,
|
|
my Tarzan? Would it repay the services you did me in Africa?
|
|
I do not forget, my friend, that but for you and your
|
|
wondrous bravery I had died at the stake in the village
|
|
of Mbonga's cannibals. Nor do I forget that to your self-
|
|
sacrificing devotion I owe the fact that I recovered from the
|
|
terrible wounds I received at their hands--I discovered later
|
|
something of what it meant to you to remain with me in the
|
|
amphitheater of apes while your heart was urging you on to
|
|
the coast.
|
|
|
|
"When we finally came there, and found that Miss Porter
|
|
and her party had left, I commenced to realize something of
|
|
what you had done for an utter stranger. Nor am I trying to
|
|
repay you with money, Tarzan. It is that just at present you
|
|
need money; were it sacrifice that I might offer you it were
|
|
the same--my friendship must always be yours, because our
|
|
tastes are similar, and I admire you. That I cannot command,
|
|
but the money I can and shall."
|
|
|
|
"Well," laughed Tarzan, "we shall not quarrel over the money.
|
|
I must live, and so I must have it; but I shall be more
|
|
contented with something to do. You cannot show me your
|
|
friendship in a more convincing manner than to find
|
|
employment for me--I shall die of inactivity in a short while.
|
|
As for my birthright--it is in good hands. Clayton is not
|
|
guilty of robbing me of it. He truly believes that he
|
|
is the real Lord Greystoke, and the chances are that he will
|
|
make a better English lord than a man who was born and
|
|
raised in an African jungle. You know that I am but half
|
|
civilized even now. Let me see red in anger but for a moment,
|
|
and all the instincts of the savage beast that I really
|
|
am, submerge what little I possess of the milder ways of
|
|
culture and refinement.
|
|
|
|
"And then again, had I declared myself I should have
|
|
robbed the woman I love of the wealth and position that
|
|
her marriage to Clayton will now insure to her. I could
|
|
not have done that--could I, Paul?
|
|
|
|
"Nor is the matter of birth of great importance to me,"
|
|
he went on, without waiting for a reply. "Raised as I have
|
|
been, I see no worth in man or beast that is not theirs by
|
|
virtue of their own mental or physical prowess. And so I
|
|
am as happy to think of Kala as my mother as I would be
|
|
to try to picture the poor, unhappy little English girl who
|
|
passed away a year after she bore me. Kala was always kind
|
|
to me in her fierce and savage way. I must have nursed at
|
|
her hairy breast from the time that my own mother died.
|
|
She fought for me against the wild denizens of the forest,
|
|
and against the savage members of our tribe, with the
|
|
ferocity of real mother love.
|
|
|
|
"And I, on my part, loved her, Paul. I did not realize
|
|
how much until after the cruel spear and the poisoned arrow
|
|
of Mbonga's black warrior had stolen her away from me. I
|
|
was still a child when that occurred, and I threw myself
|
|
upon her dead body and wept out my anguish as a child
|
|
might for his own mother. To you, my friend, she would
|
|
have appeared a hideous and ugly creature, but to me she
|
|
was beautiful--so gloriously does love transfigure its object.
|
|
And so I am perfectly content to remain forever the son of
|
|
Kala, the she-ape."
|
|
|
|
"I do not admire you the less for your loyalty," said
|
|
D'Arnot, "but the time will come when you will be glad
|
|
to claim your own. Remember what I say, and let us hope
|
|
that it will be as easy then as it is now. You must bear in
|
|
mind that Professor Porter and Mr. Philander are the only
|
|
people in the world who can swear that the little skeleton
|
|
found in the cabin with those of your father and mother was
|
|
that of an infant anthropoid ape, and not the offspring of
|
|
Lord and Lady Greystoke. That evidence is most important.
|
|
They are both old men. They may not live many years longer.
|
|
And then, did it not occur to you that once Miss Porter
|
|
knew the truth she would break her engagement with Clayton?
|
|
You might easily have your title, your estates, and the
|
|
woman you love, Tarzan. Had you not thought of that?"
|
|
|
|
Tarzan shook his head. "You do not know her," he said.
|
|
"Nothing could bind her closer to her bargain than some
|
|
misfortune to Clayton. She is from an old southern family in
|
|
America, and southerners pride themselves upon their loyalty."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan spent the two following weeks renewing his former
|
|
brief acquaintance with Paris. In the daytime he haunted
|
|
the libraries and picture galleries. He had become an
|
|
omnivorous reader, and the world of possibilities that were
|
|
opened to him in this seat of culture and learning fairly
|
|
appalled him when he contemplated the very infinitesimal
|
|
crumb of the sum total of human knowledge that a single
|
|
individual might hope to acquire even after a lifetime of
|
|
study and research; but he learned what he could by day,
|
|
and threw himself into a search for relaxation and amusement
|
|
at night. Nor did he find Paris a whit less fertile field
|
|
for his nocturnal avocation.
|
|
|
|
If he smoked too many cigarettes and drank too much
|
|
absinth it was because he took civilization as he found it,
|
|
and did the things that he found his civilized brothers
|
|
doing. The life was a new and alluring one, and in addition
|
|
he had a sorrow in his breast and a great longing which he
|
|
knew could never be fulfilled, and so he sought in study and
|
|
in dissipation--the two extremes--to forget the past and
|
|
inhibit contemplation of the future.
|
|
|
|
He was sitting in a music hall one evening, sipping his
|
|
absinth and admiring the art of a certain famous Russian
|
|
dancer, when he caught a passing glimpse of a pair of evil
|
|
black eyes upon him. The man turned and was lost in the
|
|
crowd at the exit before Tarzan could catch a good look at
|
|
him, but he was confident that he had seen those eyes before
|
|
and that they had been fastened on him this evening
|
|
through no passing accident. He had had the uncanny feeling
|
|
for some time that he was being watched, and it was in
|
|
response to this animal instinct that was strong within him
|
|
that he had turned suddenly and surprised the eyes in the
|
|
very act of watching him.
|
|
|
|
Before he left the music hall the matter had been forgotten,
|
|
nor did he notice the swarthy individual who stepped
|
|
deeper into the shadows of an opposite doorway as Tarzan
|
|
emerged from the brilliantly lighted amusement hall.
|
|
|
|
Had Tarzan but known it, he had been followed many times
|
|
from this and other places of amusement, but seldom if
|
|
ever had he been alone. Tonight D'Arnot had had another
|
|
engagement, and Tarzan had come by himself.
|
|
|
|
As he turned in the direction he was accustomed to taking
|
|
from this part of Paris to his apartments, the watcher across
|
|
the street ran from his hiding-place and hurried on ahead
|
|
at a rapid pace.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had been wont to traverse the Rue Maule on his
|
|
way home at night. Because it was very quiet and very
|
|
dark it reminded him more of his beloved African jungle
|
|
than did the noisy and garish streets surrounding it.
|
|
If you are familiar with your Paris you will recall the
|
|
narrow, forbidding precincts of the Rue Maule. If you are
|
|
not, you need but ask the police about it to learn that in
|
|
all Paris there is no street to which you should give a
|
|
wider berth after dark.
|
|
|
|
On this night Tarzan had proceeded some two squares through
|
|
the dense shadows of the squalid old tenements which line
|
|
this dismal way when he was attracted by screams and cries
|
|
for help from the third floor of an opposite building.
|
|
The voice was a woman's. Before the echoes of her first
|
|
cries had died Tarzan was bounding up the stairs and
|
|
through the dark corridors to her rescue.
|
|
|
|
At the end of the corridor on the third landing a door
|
|
stood slightly ajar, and from within Tarzan heard again the
|
|
same appeal that had lured him from the street.
|
|
Another instant found him in the center of a dimly-lighted room.
|
|
An oil lamp burned upon a high, old-fashioned mantel, casting
|
|
its dim rays over a dozen repulsive figures. All but one
|
|
were men. The other was a woman of about thirty. Her face,
|
|
marked by low passions and dissipation, might once have
|
|
been lovely. She stood with one hand at her throat, crouching
|
|
against the farther wall.
|
|
|
|
"Help, monsieur," she cried in a low voice as Tarzan
|
|
entered the room; "they were killing me."
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan turned toward the men about him he saw the
|
|
crafty, evil faces of habitual criminals. He wondered that
|
|
they had made no effort to escape. A movement behind him
|
|
caused him to turn. Two things his eyes saw, and one of
|
|
them caused him considerable wonderment. A man was
|
|
sneaking stealthily from the room, and in the brief glance
|
|
that Tarzan had of him he saw that it was Rokoff.
|
|
But the other thing that he saw was of more immediate interest.
|
|
It was a great brute of a fellow tiptoeing upon him from
|
|
behind with a huge bludgeon in his hand, and then, as
|
|
the man and his confederates saw that he was discovered,
|
|
there was a concerted rush upon Tarzan from all sides.
|
|
Some of the men drew knives. Others picked up chairs, while the
|
|
fellow with the bludgeon raised it high above his head in a
|
|
mighty swing that would have crushed Tarzan's head had it
|
|
ever descended upon it.
|
|
|
|
But the brain, and the agility, and the muscles that had coped
|
|
with the mighty strength and cruel craftiness of Terkoz and
|
|
Numa in the fastness of their savage jungle were not to be so
|
|
easily subdued as these apaches of Paris had believed.
|
|
|
|
Selecting his most formidable antagonist, the fellow with
|
|
the bludgeon, Tarzan charged full upon him, dodging the
|
|
falling weapon, and catching the man a terrific blow on the
|
|
point of the chin that felled him in his tracks.
|
|
|
|
Then he turned upon the others. This was sport. He was
|
|
reveling in the joy of battle and the lust of blood. As though
|
|
it had been but a brittle shell, to break at the least rough
|
|
usage, the thin veneer of his civilization fell from him, and
|
|
the ten burly villains found themselves penned in a small
|
|
room with a wild and savage beast, against whose steel
|
|
muscles their puny strength was less than futile.
|
|
|
|
At the end of the corridor without stood Rokoff, waiting
|
|
the outcome of the affair. He wished to be sure that Tarzan
|
|
was dead before he left, but it was not a part of his plan to
|
|
be one of those within the room when the murder occurred.
|
|
|
|
The woman still stood where she had when Tarzan entered,
|
|
but her face had undergone a number of changes with
|
|
the few minutes which had elapsed. From the semblance of
|
|
distress which it had worn when Tarzan first saw it, it had
|
|
changed to one of craftiness as he had wheeled to meet the
|
|
attack from behind; but the change Tarzan had not seen.
|
|
|
|
Later an expression of surprise and then one of horror
|
|
superseded the others. And who may wonder. For the
|
|
immaculate gentleman her cries had lured to what was to have
|
|
been his death had been suddenly metamorphosed into a
|
|
demon of revenge. Instead of soft muscles and a weak
|
|
resistance, she was looking upon a veritable Hercules gone mad.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU!" she cried; "he is a beast!" For the strong,
|
|
white teeth of the ape-man had found the throat of one of
|
|
his assailants, and Tarzan fought as he had learned to fight
|
|
with the great bull apes of the tribe of Kerchak.
|
|
|
|
He was in a dozen places at once, leaping hither and
|
|
thither about the room in sinuous bounds that reminded
|
|
the woman of a panther she had seen at the zoo. Now a wrist-
|
|
bone snapped in his iron grip, now a shoulder was wrenched
|
|
from its socket as he forced a victim's arm backward and upward.
|
|
|
|
With shrieks of pain the men escaped into the hallway as
|
|
quickly as they could; but even before the first one staggered,
|
|
bleeding and broken, from the room, Rokoff had seen enough
|
|
to convince him that Tarzan would not be the one to lie
|
|
dead in that house this night, and so the Russian had
|
|
hastened to a nearby den and telephoned the police that a
|
|
man was committing murder on the third floor of Rue Maule, 27.
|
|
When the officers arrived they found three men groaning
|
|
on the floor, a frightened woman lying upon a filthy bed, her
|
|
face buried in her arms, and what appeared to be a well-
|
|
dressed young gentleman standing in the center of the room
|
|
awaiting the reenforcements which he had thought the footsteps
|
|
of the officers hurrying up the stairway had announced
|
|
--but they were mistaken in the last; it was a wild beast
|
|
that looked upon them through those narrowed lids and steel-
|
|
gray eyes. With the smell of blood the last vestige of
|
|
civilization had deserted Tarzan, and now he stood at bay, like a
|
|
lion surrounded by hunters, awaiting the next overt act, and
|
|
crouching to charge its author.
|
|
|
|
"What has happened here?" asked one of the policemen.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan explained briefly, but when he turned to the woman
|
|
for confirmation of his statement he was appalled by her reply.
|
|
|
|
"He lies!" she screamed shrilly, addressing the policeman.
|
|
"He came to my room while I was alone, and for no good
|
|
purpose. When I repulsed him he would have killed me had
|
|
not my screams attracted these gentlemen, who were passing
|
|
the house at the time. He is a devil, monsieurs; alone he has
|
|
all but killed ten men with his bare hands and his teeth."
|
|
|
|
So shocked was Tarzan by her ingratitude that for a moment
|
|
he was struck dumb. The police were inclined to be a little
|
|
skeptical, for they had had other dealings with this
|
|
same lady and her lovely coterie of gentlemen friends.
|
|
However, they were policemen, not judges, so they decided to
|
|
place all the inmates of the room under arrest, and let another,
|
|
whose business it was, separate the innocent from the guilty.
|
|
|
|
But they found that it was one thing to tell this well-
|
|
dressed young man that he was under arrest, but quite
|
|
another to enforce it.
|
|
|
|
"I am guilty of no offense," he said quietly. "I have but
|
|
sought to defend myself. I do not know why the woman has
|
|
told you what she has. She can have no enmity against me,
|
|
for never until I came to this room in response to her cries
|
|
for help had I seen her."
|
|
|
|
"Come, come," said one of the officers; "there are judges
|
|
to listen to all that," and he advanced to lay his hand upon
|
|
Tarzan's shoulder. An instant later he lay crumpled in a
|
|
corner of the room, and then, as his comrades rushed in upon
|
|
the ape-man, they experienced a taste of what the apaches
|
|
had but recently gone through. So quickly and so roughly
|
|
did he handle them that they had not even an opportunity
|
|
to draw their revolvers.
|
|
|
|
During the brief fight Tarzan had noted the open window
|
|
and, beyond, the stem of a tree, or a telegraph pole--he
|
|
could not tell which. As the last officer went down, one of
|
|
his fellows succeeded in drawing his revolver and, from
|
|
where he lay on the floor, fired at Tarzan. The shot missed,
|
|
and before the man could fire again Tarzan had swept the
|
|
lamp from the mantel and plunged the room into darkness.
|
|
|
|
The next they saw was a lithe form spring to the sill of
|
|
the open window and leap, panther-like, onto the pole across
|
|
the walk. When the police gathered themselves together and
|
|
reached the street their prisoner was nowhere to be seen.
|
|
|
|
They did not handle the woman and the men who had
|
|
not escaped any too gently when they took them to the
|
|
station; they were a very sore and humiliated detail of police.
|
|
It galled them to think that it would be necessary to report
|
|
that a single unarmed man had wiped the floor with the
|
|
whole lot of them, and then escaped them as easily as
|
|
though they had not existed.
|
|
|
|
The officer who had remained in the street swore that no
|
|
one had leaped from the window or left the building from
|
|
the time they entered until they had come out. His comrades
|
|
thought that he lied, but they could not prove it.
|
|
|
|
When Tarzan found himself clinging to the pole outside the
|
|
window, he followed his jungle instinct and looked below for
|
|
enemies before he ventured down. It was well he did, for
|
|
just beneath stood a policeman. Above, Tarzan saw no one,
|
|
so he went up instead of down.
|
|
|
|
The top of the pole was opposite the roof of the building,
|
|
so it was but the work of an instant for the muscles that
|
|
had for years sent him hurtling through the treetops of his
|
|
primeval forest to carry him across the little space between
|
|
the pole and the roof. From one building he went to another,
|
|
and so on, with much climbing, until at a cross street he
|
|
discovered another pole, down which he ran to the ground.
|
|
|
|
For a square or two he ran swiftly; then he turned into a
|
|
little all-night cafe and in the lavatory removed the
|
|
evidences of his over-roof promenade from hands and clothes.
|
|
When he emerged a few moments later it was to saunter
|
|
slowly on toward his apartments.
|
|
|
|
Not far from them he came to a well-lighted boulevard which
|
|
it was necessary to cross. As he stood directly beneath
|
|
a brilliant arc light, waiting for a limousine that was
|
|
approaching to pass him, he heard his name called in a sweet
|
|
feminine voice. Looking up, he met the smiling eyes of Olga de
|
|
Coude as she leaned forward upon the back seat of the machine.
|
|
He bowed very low in response to her friendly greeting.
|
|
When he straightened up the machine had borne her away.
|
|
|
|
"Rokoff and the Countess de Coude both in the same
|
|
evening," he soliloquized; "Paris is not so large, after all."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 4
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Countess Explains
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Your Paris is more dangerous than my savage jungles,
|
|
Paul," concluded Tarzan, after narrating his adventures
|
|
to his friend the morning following his encounter with
|
|
the apaches and police in the Rue Maule. "Why did they
|
|
lure me there? Were they hungry?"
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot feigned a horrified shudder, but he laughed at the
|
|
quaint suggestion.
|
|
|
|
"It is difficult to rise above the jungle standards and reason
|
|
by the light of civilized ways, is it not, my friend?" he
|
|
queried banteringly.
|
|
|
|
"Civilized ways, forsooth," scoffed Tarzan. "Jungle standards
|
|
do not countenance wanton atrocities. There we kill for
|
|
food and for self-preservation, or in the winning of mates
|
|
and the protection of the young. Always, you see, in
|
|
accordance with the dictates of some great natural law.
|
|
But here! Faugh, your civilized man is more brutal than
|
|
the brutes. He kills wantonly, and, worse than that, he
|
|
utilizes a noble sentiment, the brotherhood of man, as a
|
|
lure to entice his unwary victim to his doom. It was in
|
|
answer to an appeal from a fellow being that I hastened
|
|
to that room where the assassins lay in wait for me.
|
|
|
|
"I did not realize, I could not realize for a long time
|
|
afterward, that any woman could sink to such moral depravity
|
|
as that one must have to call a would-be rescuer to death.
|
|
But it must have been so--the sight of Rokoff there and
|
|
the woman's later repudiation of me to the police make
|
|
it impossible to place any other construction upon her acts.
|
|
Rokoff must have known that I frequently passed through
|
|
the Rue Maule. He lay in wait for me--his entire scheme
|
|
worked out to the last detail, even to the woman's story in
|
|
case a hitch should occur in the program such as really did
|
|
happen. It is all perfectly plain to me."
|
|
|
|
"Well," said D'Arnot, "among other things, it has taught
|
|
you what I have been unable to impress upon you--that
|
|
the Rue Maule is a good place to avoid after dark."
|
|
|
|
"On the contrary," replied Tarzan, with a smile, "it has
|
|
convinced me that it is the one worth-while street in all
|
|
Paris. Never again shall I miss an opportunity to traverse it,
|
|
for it has given me the first real entertainment I have had
|
|
since I left Africa."
|
|
|
|
"It may give you more than you will relish even without
|
|
another visit," said D'Arnot. "You are not through with the
|
|
police yet, remember. I know the Paris police well enough
|
|
to assure you that they will not soon forget what you did
|
|
to them. Sooner or later they will get you, my dear Tarzan,
|
|
and then they will lock the wild man of the woods up behind
|
|
iron bars. How will you like that?"
|
|
|
|
"They will never lock Tarzan of the Apes behind iron bars,"
|
|
replied he, grimly.
|
|
|
|
There was something in the man's voice as he said it that
|
|
caused D'Arnot to look up sharply at his friend. What he
|
|
saw in the set jaw and the cold, gray eyes made the young
|
|
Frenchman very apprehensive for this great child, who could
|
|
recognize no law mightier than his own mighty physical
|
|
prowess. He saw that something must be done to set Tarzan
|
|
right with the police before another encounter was possible.
|
|
|
|
"You have much to learn, Tarzan," he said gravely. "The
|
|
law of man must be respected, whether you relish it or no.
|
|
Nothing but trouble can come to you and your friends
|
|
should you persist in defying the police. I can explain it to
|
|
them once for you, and that I shall do this very day, but
|
|
hereafter you must obey the law. If its representatives say
|
|
`Come,' you must come; if they say `Go,' you must go.
|
|
Now we shall go to my great friend in the department and
|
|
fix up this matter of the Rue Maule. Come!"
|
|
|
|
Together they entered the office of the police official a half
|
|
hour later. He was very cordial. He remembered Tarzan from
|
|
the visit the two had made him several months prior in the
|
|
matter of finger prints.
|
|
|
|
When D'Arnot had concluded the narration of the events
|
|
which had transpired the previous evening, a grim smile was
|
|
playing about the lips of the policeman. He touched a button
|
|
near his hand, and as he waited for the clerk to respond to
|
|
its summons he searched through the papers on his desk
|
|
for one which he finally located.
|
|
|
|
"Here, Joubon," he said as the clerk entered. "Summon these
|
|
officers--have them come to me at once," and he handed the
|
|
man the paper he had sought. Then he turned to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"You have committed a very grave offense, monsieur," he
|
|
said, not unkindly, "and but for the explanation made by
|
|
our good friend here I should be inclined to judge you harshly.
|
|
I am, instead, about to do a rather unheard-of-thing.
|
|
I have summoned the officers whom you maltreated last night.
|
|
They shall hear Lieutenant D'Arnot's story, and then I shall
|
|
leave it to their discretion to say whether you shall be
|
|
prosecuted or not.
|
|
|
|
"You have much to learn about the ways of civilization.
|
|
Things that seem strange or unnecessary to you, you must
|
|
learn to accept until you are able to judge the motives
|
|
behind them. The officers whom you attacked were but doing
|
|
their duty. They had no discretion in the matter. Every day
|
|
they risk their lives in the protection of the lives or
|
|
property of others. They would do the same for you. They are
|
|
very brave men, and they are deeply mortified that a single
|
|
unarmed man bested and beat them.
|
|
|
|
"Make it easy for them to overlook what you did.
|
|
Unless I am gravely in error you are yourself a very
|
|
brave man, and brave men are proverbially magnanimous."
|
|
|
|
Further conversation was interrupted by the appearance
|
|
of the four policemen. As their eyes fell on Tarzan,
|
|
surprise was writ large on each countenance.
|
|
|
|
"My children," said the official, "here is the gentleman
|
|
whom you met in the Rue Maule last evening. He has come
|
|
voluntarily to give himself up. I wish you to listen
|
|
attentively to Lieutenant D'Arnot, who will tell you a part
|
|
of the story of monsieur's life. It may explain his attitude
|
|
toward you of last night. Proceed, my dear lieutenant."
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot spoke to the policemen for half an hour. He told
|
|
them something of Tarzan's wild jungle life. He explained
|
|
the savage training that had taught him to battle like a
|
|
wild beast in self-preservation. It became plain to them
|
|
that the man had been guided by instinct rather than reason in
|
|
his attack upon them. He had not understood their intentions.
|
|
To him they had been little different from any of the various
|
|
forms of life he had been accustomed to in his native jungle,
|
|
where practically all were his enemies.
|
|
|
|
"Your pride has been wounded," said D'Arnot, in conclusion.
|
|
"It is the fact that this man overcame you that hurts the most.
|
|
But you need feel no shame. You would not make apologies
|
|
for defeat had you been penned in that small room with an
|
|
African lion, or with the great Gorilla of the jungles.
|
|
|
|
"And yet you were battling with muscles that have time
|
|
and time again been pitted, and always victoriously, against
|
|
these terrors of the dark continent. It is no disgrace to
|
|
fall beneath the superhuman strength of Tarzan of the Apes."
|
|
|
|
And then, as the men stood looking first at Tarzan and
|
|
then at their superior the ape-man did the one thing which
|
|
was needed to erase the last remnant of animosity which
|
|
they might have felt for him. With outstretched hand he
|
|
advanced toward them.
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry for the mistake I made," he said simply. "Let
|
|
us be friends." And that was the end of the whole matter,
|
|
except that Tarzan became a subject of much conversation
|
|
in the barracks of the police, and increased the number of
|
|
his friends by four brave men at least.
|
|
|
|
On their return to D'Arnot's apartments the lieutenant
|
|
found a letter awaiting him from an English friend, William
|
|
Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke. The two had maintained a
|
|
correspondence since the birth of their friendship on that
|
|
ill-fated expedition in search of Jane Porter after her theft
|
|
by Terkoz, the bull ape.
|
|
|
|
"They are to be married in London in about two months,"
|
|
said D'Arnot, as he completed his perusal of the letter.
|
|
Tarzan did not need to be told who was meant by "they."
|
|
He made no reply, but he was very quiet and thoughtful
|
|
during the balance of the day.
|
|
|
|
That evening they attended the opera. Tarzan's mind was
|
|
still occupied by his gloomy thoughts. He paid little or no
|
|
attention to what was transpiring upon the stage. Instead he
|
|
saw only the lovely vision of a beautiful American girl, and
|
|
heard naught but a sad, sweet voice acknowledging that his
|
|
love was returned. And she was to marry another!
|
|
|
|
He shook himself to be rid of his unwelcome thoughts, and
|
|
at the same instant he felt eyes upon him. With the instinct
|
|
that was his by virtue of training he looked up squarely
|
|
into the eyes that were looking at him, to find that they
|
|
were shining from the smiling face of Olga, Countess de
|
|
Coude. As Tarzan returned her bow he was positive that
|
|
there was an invitation in her look, almost a plea.
|
|
The next intermission found him beside her in her box.
|
|
|
|
"I have so much wished to see you," she was saying.
|
|
"It has troubled me not a little to think that after the
|
|
service you rendered to both my husband and myself no adequate
|
|
explanation was ever made you of what must have seemed
|
|
ingratitude on our part in not taking the necessary steps to
|
|
prevent a repetition of the attacks upon us by those two men."
|
|
|
|
"You wrong me," replied Tarzan. "My thoughts of you
|
|
have been only the most pleasant. You must not feel that
|
|
any explanation is due me. Have they annoyed you further?"
|
|
|
|
"They never cease," she replied sadly. "I feel that I must
|
|
tell some one, and I do not know another who so deserves
|
|
an explanation as you. You must permit me to do so. It may
|
|
be of service to you, for I know Nikolas Rokoff quite well
|
|
enough to be positive that you have not seen the last of him.
|
|
He will find some means to be revenged upon you. What I
|
|
wish to tell you may be of aid to you in combating any
|
|
scheme of revenge he may harbor. I cannot tell you here, but
|
|
tomorrow I shall be at home to Monsieur Tarzan at five."
|
|
|
|
"It will be an eternity until tomorrow at five," he said, as
|
|
he bade her good night.
|
|
From a corner of the theater Rokoff and Paulvitch saw
|
|
Monsieur Tarzan in the box of the Countess de Coude, and
|
|
both men smiled.
|
|
|
|
At four-thirty the following afternoon a swarthy, bearded
|
|
man rang the bell at the servants' entrance of the palace of
|
|
the Count de Coude. The footman who opened the door raised
|
|
his eyebrows in recognition as he saw who stood without.
|
|
A low conversation passed between the two.
|
|
|
|
At first the footman demurred from some proposition
|
|
that the bearded one made, but an instant later something
|
|
passed from the hand of the caller to the hand of the
|
|
servant. Then the latter turned and led the visitor by a
|
|
roundabout way to a little curtained alcove off the apartment
|
|
in which the countess was wont to serve tea of an afternoon.
|
|
|
|
A half hour later Tarzan was ushered into the room,
|
|
and presently his hostess entered, smiling, and with
|
|
outstretched hands.
|
|
|
|
"I am so glad that you came," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Nothing could have prevented," he replied.
|
|
|
|
For a few moments they spoke of the opera, of the topics
|
|
that were then occupying the attention of Paris, of the
|
|
pleasure of renewing their brief acquaintance which had had
|
|
its inception under such odd circumstances, and this brought
|
|
them to the subject that was uppermost in the minds of both.
|
|
|
|
"You must have wondered," said the countess finally, "what
|
|
the object of Rokoff's persecution could be. It is very simple.
|
|
The count is intrusted with many of the vital secrets of the
|
|
ministry of war. He often has in his possession papers that
|
|
foreign powers would give a fortune to possess--secrets
|
|
of state that their agents would commit murder and
|
|
worse than murder to learn.
|
|
|
|
"There is such a matter now in his possession that would
|
|
make the fame and fortune of any Russian who could
|
|
divulge it to his government. Rokoff and Paulvitch are
|
|
Russian spies. They will stop at nothing to procure this
|
|
information. The affair on the liner--I mean the matter of the
|
|
card game--was for the purpose of blackmailing the knowledge
|
|
they seek from my husband.
|
|
|
|
"Had he been convicted of cheating at cards, his career
|
|
would have been blighted. He would have had to leave the
|
|
war department. He would have been socially ostracized.
|
|
They intended to hold this club over him--the price of an
|
|
avowal on their part that the count was but the victim of the
|
|
plot of enemies who wished to besmirch his name was to have
|
|
been the papers they seek.
|
|
|
|
"You thwarted them in this. Then they concocted the
|
|
scheme whereby my reputation was to be the price, instead
|
|
of the count's. When Paulvitch entered my cabin he explained
|
|
it to me. If I would obtain the information for them
|
|
he promised to go no farther, otherwise Rokoff, who stood
|
|
without, was to notify the purser that I was entertaining a
|
|
man other than my husband behind the locked doors of my
|
|
cabin. He was to tell every one he met on the boat, and
|
|
when we landed he was to have given the whole story to the
|
|
newspaper men.
|
|
"Was it not too horrible? But I happened to know something
|
|
of Monsieur Paulvitch that would send him to the gallows
|
|
in Russia if it were known by the police of St. Petersburg.
|
|
I dared him to carry out his plan, and then I leaned
|
|
toward him and whispered a name in his ear. Like that"--and
|
|
she snapped her fingers--"he flew at my throat as a madman.
|
|
He would have killed me had you not interfered."
|
|
|
|
"The brutes!" muttered Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"They are worse than that, my friend," she said.
|
|
"They are devils. I fear for you because you have gained
|
|
their hatred. I wish you to be on your guard constantly.
|
|
Tell me that you will, for my sake, for I should never forgive
|
|
myself should you suffer through the kindness you did me."
|
|
|
|
"I do not fear them," he replied. "I have survived grimmer
|
|
enemies than Rokoff and Paulvitch." He saw that she knew
|
|
nothing of the occurrence in the Rue Maule, nor did he
|
|
mention it, fearing that it might distress her.
|
|
|
|
"For your own safety," he continued, "why do you not turn
|
|
the scoundrels over to the authorities? They should make
|
|
quick work of them."
|
|
|
|
She hesitated for a moment before replying.
|
|
|
|
"There are two reasons," she said finally. "One of them
|
|
it is that keeps the count from doing that very thing.
|
|
The other, my real reason for fearing to expose them, I have
|
|
never told--only Rokoff and I know it. I wonder," and
|
|
then she paused, looking intently at him for a long time.
|
|
|
|
"And what do you wonder?" he asked, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"I was wondering why it is that I want to tell you the
|
|
thing that I have not dared tell even to my husband.
|
|
I believe that you would understand, and that you could tell
|
|
me the right course to follow. I believe that you would not
|
|
judge me too harshly."
|
|
|
|
"I fear that I should prove a very poor judge, madame,"
|
|
Tarzan replied, "for if you had been guilty of murder I
|
|
should say that the victim should be grateful to have met
|
|
so sweet a fate."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, dear, no," she expostulated; "it is not so terrible as that.
|
|
But first let me tell you the reason the count has for not
|
|
prosecuting these men; then, if I can hold my courage, I
|
|
shall tell you the real reason that I dare not. The first is
|
|
that Nikolas Rokoff is my brother. We are Russians.
|
|
Nikolas has been a bad man since I can remember. He was
|
|
cashiered from the Russian army, in which he held a captaincy.
|
|
There was a scandal for a time, but after a while it was
|
|
partially forgotten, and my father obtained a position for him
|
|
in the secret service.
|
|
|
|
"There have been many terrible crimes laid at Nikolas' door,
|
|
but he has always managed to escape punishment. Of late
|
|
he has accomplished it by trumped-up evidence convicting
|
|
his victims of treason against the czar, and the Russian
|
|
police, who are always only too ready to fasten guilt of
|
|
this nature upon any and all, have accepted his version
|
|
and exonerated him."
|
|
|
|
"Have not his attempted crimes against you and your
|
|
husband forfeited whatever rights the bonds of kinship might
|
|
have accorded him?" asked Tarzan. "The fact that you are his
|
|
sister has not deterred him from seeking to besmirch your honor.
|
|
You owe him no loyalty, madame."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, but there is that other reason. If I owe him no loyalty
|
|
though he be my brother, I cannot so easily disavow the
|
|
fear I hold him in because of a certain episode in my life of
|
|
which he is cognizant.
|
|
|
|
"I might as well tell you all," she resumed after a pause,
|
|
"for I see that it is in my heart to tell you sooner or later.
|
|
I was educated in a convent. While there I met a man whom
|
|
I supposed to be a gentleman. I knew little or nothing about
|
|
men and less about love. I got it into my foolish head that
|
|
I loved this man, and at his urgent request I ran away with him.
|
|
We were to have been married.
|
|
|
|
"I was with him just three hours. All in the daytime and
|
|
in public places--railroad stations and upon a train.
|
|
When we reached our destination where we were to have been
|
|
married, two officers stepped up to my escort as we descended
|
|
from the train, and placed him under arrest. They took me
|
|
also, but when I had told my story they did not detain me,
|
|
other than to send me back to the convent under the care of
|
|
a matron. It seemed that the man who had wooed me was no
|
|
gentleman at all, but a deserter from the army as well as
|
|
a fugitive from civil justice. He had a police record in
|
|
nearly every country in Europe.
|
|
|
|
"The matter was hushed up by the authorities of the convent.
|
|
Not even my parents knew of it. But Nikolas met the man
|
|
afterward, and learned the whole story. Now he threatens
|
|
to tell the count if I do not do just as he wishes me to."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan laughed. "You are still but a little girl. The story
|
|
that you have told me cannot reflect in any way upon your
|
|
reputation, and were you not a little girl at heart you would
|
|
know it. Go to your husband tonight, and tell him the whole
|
|
story, just as you have told it to me. Unless I am much mistaken
|
|
he will laugh at you for your fears, and take immediate steps
|
|
to put that precious brother of yours in prison
|
|
where he belongs."
|
|
|
|
"I only wish that I dared," she said; "but I am afraid.
|
|
I learned early to fear men. First my father, then Nikolas,
|
|
then the fathers in the convent. Nearly all my friends fear
|
|
their husbands--why should I not fear mine?"
|
|
|
|
"It does not seem right that women should fear men,"
|
|
said Tarzan, an expression of puzzlement on his face.
|
|
"I am better acquainted with the jungle folk, and there it
|
|
is more often the other way around, except among the black men,
|
|
and they to my mind are in most ways lower in the scale than
|
|
the beasts. No, I cannot understand why civilized women
|
|
should fear men, the beings that are created to protect them.
|
|
I should hate to think that any woman feared me."
|
|
|
|
"I do not think that any woman would fear you, my friend,"
|
|
said Olga de Coude softly. "I have known you but a short
|
|
while, yet though it may seem foolish to say it, you are
|
|
the only man I have ever known whom I think that I should
|
|
never fear--it is strange, too, for you are very strong.
|
|
I wondered at the ease with which you handled Nikolas and
|
|
Paulvitch that night in my cabin. It was marvellous."
|
|
As Tarzan was leaving her a short time later he wondered
|
|
a little at the clinging pressure of her hand at parting,
|
|
and the firm insistence with which she exacted a promise
|
|
from him that he would call again on the morrow.
|
|
|
|
The memory of her half-veiled eyes and perfect lips as she
|
|
had stood smiling up into his face as he bade her good-by
|
|
remained with him for the balance of the day. Olga de
|
|
Coude was a very beautiful woman, and Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
a very lonely young man, with a heart in him that was in
|
|
need of the doctoring that only a woman may provide.
|
|
|
|
As the countess turned back into the room after Tarzan's
|
|
departure, she found herself face to face with Nikolas Rokoff.
|
|
|
|
"How long have you been here?" she cried, shrinking away from him.
|
|
|
|
"Since before your lover came," he answered, with a nasty leer.
|
|
|
|
"Stop!" she commanded. "How dare you say such a thing
|
|
to me--your sister!"
|
|
|
|
"Well, my dear Olga, if he is not your lover, accept my
|
|
apologies; but it is no fault of yours that he is not.
|
|
Had he one-tenth the knowledge of women that I have you
|
|
would be in his arms this minute. He is a stupid fool, Olga.
|
|
Why, your every word and act was an open invitation to him,
|
|
and he had not the sense to see it."
|
|
|
|
The woman put her hands to her ears.
|
|
|
|
"I will not listen. You are wicked to say such things as that.
|
|
No matter what you may threaten me with, you know that I
|
|
am a good woman. After tonight you will not dare to annoy
|
|
me, for I shall tell Raoul all. He will understand, and then,
|
|
Monsieur Nikolas, beware!"
|
|
|
|
"You shall tell him nothing," said Rokoff. "I have this affair
|
|
now, and with the help of one of your servants whom I may trust
|
|
it will lack nothing in the telling when the time comes that the
|
|
details of the sworn evidence shall be poured into your husband's
|
|
ears. The other affair served its purpose well--we now have
|
|
something tangible to work on, Olga. A real AFFAIR--
|
|
and you a trusted wife. Shame, Olga," and the brute laughed.
|
|
|
|
So the countess told her count nothing, and matters were
|
|
worse than they had been. From a vague fear her mind was
|
|
transferred to a very tangible one. It may be, too, that
|
|
conscience helped to enlarge it out of all proportion.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 5
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Plot That Failed
|
|
|
|
|
|
For a month Tarzan was a regular and very welcome
|
|
devotee at the shrine of the beautiful Countess de Coude.
|
|
Often he met other members of the select little coterie that
|
|
dropped in for tea of an afternoon. More often Olga found
|
|
devices that would give her an hour of Tarzan alone.
|
|
|
|
For a time she had been frightened by what Nikolas had
|
|
insinuated. She had not thought of this big, young man
|
|
as anything more than friend, but with the suggestion
|
|
implanted by the evil words of her brother she had grown to
|
|
speculate much upon the strange force which seemed to attract
|
|
her toward the gray-eyed stranger. She did not wish to
|
|
love him, nor did she wish his love.
|
|
|
|
She was much younger than her husband, and without having
|
|
realized it she had been craving the haven of a friendship
|
|
with one nearer her own age. Twenty is shy in exchanging
|
|
confidences with forty. Tarzan was but two years
|
|
her senior. He could understand her, she felt. Then he was
|
|
clean and honorable and chivalrous. She was not afraid of
|
|
him. That she could trust him she had felt instinctively
|
|
from the first.
|
|
|
|
From a distance Rokoff had watched this growing intimacy
|
|
with malicious glee. Ever since he had learned that
|
|
Tarzan knew that he was a Russian spy there had been
|
|
added to his hatred for the ape-man a great fear that he
|
|
would expose him. He was but waiting now until the moment
|
|
was propitious for a master stroke. He wanted to rid himself
|
|
forever of Tarzan, and at the same time reap an ample revenge
|
|
for the humiliations and defeats that he had suffered
|
|
at his hands.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was nearer to contentment than he had been since
|
|
the peace and tranquility of his jungle had been broken in
|
|
upon by the advent of the marooned Porter party. He enjoyed
|
|
the pleasant social intercourse with Olga's friends, while
|
|
the friendship which had sprung up between the fair countess
|
|
and himself was a source of never-ending delight. It broke
|
|
in upon and dispersed his gloomy thoughts, and served as a
|
|
balm to his lacerated heart.
|
|
|
|
Sometimes D'Arnot accompanied him on his visits to the
|
|
De Coude home, for he had long known both Olga and the
|
|
count. Occasionally De Coude dropped in, but the
|
|
multitudinous affairs of his official position and the
|
|
never-ending demands of politics kept him from home
|
|
usually until late at night.
|
|
|
|
Rokoff spied upon Tarzan almost constantly, waiting for the
|
|
time that he should call at the De Coude palace at night,
|
|
but in this he was doomed to disappointment. On several
|
|
occasions Tarzan accompanied the countess to her home
|
|
after the opera, but he invariably left her at the entrance
|
|
--much to the disgust of the lady's devoted brother.
|
|
|
|
Finding that it seemed impossible to trap Tarzan through
|
|
any voluntary act of his own, Rokoff and Paulvitch put their
|
|
heads together to hatch a plan that would trap the ape-man
|
|
in all the circumstantial evidence of a compromising position.
|
|
|
|
For days they watched the papers as well as the movements
|
|
of De Coude and Tarzan. At length they were rewarded.
|
|
A morning paper made brief mention of a smoker that was
|
|
to be given on the following evening by the German minister.
|
|
De Coude's name was among those of the invited guests.
|
|
If he attended this meant that he would be absent from
|
|
his home until after midnight.
|
|
|
|
On the night of the banquet Paulvitch waited at the curb
|
|
before the residence of the German minister, where he could
|
|
scan the face of each guest that arrived. He had not long
|
|
to wait before De Coude descended from his car and passed him.
|
|
That was enough. Paulvitch hastened back to his quarters,
|
|
where Rokoff awaited him. There they waited until after
|
|
eleven, then Paulvitch took down the receiver of their telephone.
|
|
He called a number.
|
|
|
|
"The apartments of Lieutenant D'Arnot?" he asked, when
|
|
he had obtained his connection.
|
|
|
|
"A message for Monsieur Tarzan, if he will be so kind as
|
|
to step to the telephone."
|
|
|
|
For a minute there was silence.
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur Tarzan?"
|
|
|
|
"Ah, yes, monsieur, this is Francois--in the service of
|
|
the Countess de Coude. Possibly monsieur does poor Francois
|
|
the honor to recall him--yes?
|
|
|
|
"Yes, monsieur. I have a message, an urgent message from
|
|
the countess. She asks that you hasten to her at once--she
|
|
is in trouble, monsieur.
|
|
|
|
"No, monsieur, poor Francois does not know. Shall I
|
|
tell madame that monsieur will be here shortly?
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, monsieur. The good God will bless you."
|
|
|
|
Paulvitch hung up the receiver and turned to grin at Rokoff.
|
|
|
|
"It will take him thirty minutes to get there. If you
|
|
reach the German minister's in fifteen, De Coude should arrive
|
|
at his home in about forty-five minutes. It all depends
|
|
upon whether the fool will remain fifteen minutes after he
|
|
finds that a trick has been played upon him; but unless I am
|
|
mistaken Olga will be loath to let him go in so short a time
|
|
as that. Here is the note for De Coude. Hasten!"
|
|
|
|
Paulvitch lost no time in reaching the German minister's.
|
|
At the door he handed the note to a footman. "This is for the
|
|
Count de Coude. It is very urgent. You must see that it is
|
|
placed in his hands at once," and he dropped a piece of silver
|
|
into the willing hand of the servant. Then he returned
|
|
to his quarters.
|
|
|
|
A moment later De Coude was apologizing to his host as he
|
|
tore open the envelope. What he read left his face white and
|
|
his hand trembling.
|
|
|
|
MONSIEUR LE COUNT DE COUDE:
|
|
|
|
One who wishes to save the honor of your name takes this
|
|
means to warn you that the sanctity of your home is this
|
|
minute in jeopardy.
|
|
|
|
A certain man who for months has been a constant visitor
|
|
there during your absence is now with your wife. If
|
|
you go at once to your countess' boudoir you will find
|
|
them together.
|
|
A FRIEND.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Twenty minutes after Paulvitch had called Tarzan, Rokoff
|
|
obtained a connection with Olga's private line. Her maid
|
|
answered the telephone which was in the countess' boudoir.
|
|
|
|
"But madame has retired," said the maid, in answer to Rokoff's
|
|
request to speak with her.
|
|
|
|
"This is a very urgent message for the countess' ears
|
|
alone," replied Rokoff. "Tell her that she must arise and
|
|
slip something about her and come to the telephone. I shall
|
|
call up again in five minutes." Then he hung up his receiver.
|
|
A moment later Paulvitch entered.
|
|
|
|
"The count has the message?" asked Rokoff.
|
|
|
|
"He should be on his way to his home by now," replied Paulvitch.
|
|
|
|
"Good! My lady will be sitting in her boudoir, very much
|
|
in negligee, about now. In a minute the faithful Jacques will
|
|
escort Monsieur Tarzan into her presence without announcing him.
|
|
It will take a few minutes for explanations. Olga will
|
|
look very alluring in the filmy creation that is her night-
|
|
dress, and the clinging robe which but half conceals the
|
|
charms that the former does not conceal at all. Olga will be
|
|
surprised, but not displeased.
|
|
|
|
"If there is a drop of red blood in the man the count
|
|
will break in upon a very pretty love scene in about fifteen
|
|
minutes from now. I think we have planned marvelously, my
|
|
dear Alexis. Let us go out and drink to the very good
|
|
health of Monsieur Tarzan in some of old Plancon's
|
|
unparalleled absinth; not forgetting that the Count de Coude
|
|
is one of the best swordsmen in Paris, and by far the best
|
|
shot in all France."
|
|
|
|
When Tarzan reached Olga's, Jacques was awaiting him at
|
|
the entrance.
|
|
|
|
"This way, Monsieur," he said, and led the way up the broad,
|
|
marble staircase. In another moment he had opened a door,
|
|
and, drawing aside a heavy curtain, obsequiously bowed
|
|
Tarzan into a dimly lighted apartment. Then Jacques vanished.
|
|
|
|
Across the room from him Tarzan saw Olga seated before
|
|
a little desk on which stood her telephone. She was tapping
|
|
impatiently upon the polished surface of the desk. She had
|
|
not heard him enter.
|
|
|
|
"Olga," he said, "what is wrong?"
|
|
|
|
She turned toward him with a little cry of alarm.
|
|
|
|
"Jean!" she cried. "What are you doing here?
|
|
Who admitted you? What does it mean?"
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was thunderstruck, but in an instant he realized
|
|
a part of the truth.
|
|
|
|
"Then you did not send for me, Olga?"
|
|
|
|
"Send for you at this time of night? MON DIEU! Jean, do
|
|
you think that I am quite mad?"
|
|
|
|
"Francois telephoned me to come at once; that you were
|
|
in trouble and wanted me."
|
|
|
|
"Francois? Who in the world is Francois?"
|
|
|
|
"He said that he was in your service. He spoke as though
|
|
I should recall the fact."
|
|
|
|
"There is no one by that name in my employ. Some one
|
|
has played a joke upon you, Jean," and Olga laughed.
|
|
|
|
"I fear that it may be a most sinister `joke,' Olga," he replied.
|
|
"There is more back of it than humor."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean? You do not think that--"
|
|
|
|
"Where is the count?" he interrupted.
|
|
|
|
"At the German ambassador's."
|
|
|
|
"This is another move by your estimable brother.
|
|
Tomorrow the count will hear of it. He will question
|
|
the servants. Everything will point to--to what Rokoff
|
|
wishes the count to think."
|
|
|
|
"The scoundrel!" cried Olga. She had arisen, and come close
|
|
to Tarzan, where she stood looking up into his face.
|
|
She was very frightened. In her eyes was an expression that the
|
|
hunter sees in those of a poor, terrified doe--puzzled--questioning.
|
|
She trembled, and to steady herself raised her hands to his
|
|
broad shoulders. "What shall we do, Jean?" she whispered.
|
|
"It is terrible. Tomorrow all Paris will read of
|
|
it--he will see to that."
|
|
|
|
Her look, her attitude, her words were eloquent of the age-
|
|
old appeal of defenseless woman to her natural protector--man.
|
|
Tarzan took one of the warm little hands that lay on his
|
|
breast in his own strong one. The act was quite involuntary,
|
|
and almost equally so was the instinct of protection that
|
|
threw a sheltering arm around the girl's shoulders.
|
|
|
|
The result was electrical. Never before had he been so close
|
|
to her. In startled guilt they looked suddenly into each
|
|
other's eyes, and where Olga de Coude should have been
|
|
strong she was weak, for she crept closer into the man's arms,
|
|
and clasped her own about his neck. And Tarzan of the Apes?
|
|
He took the panting figure into his mighty arms, and covered
|
|
the hot lips with kisses.
|
|
|
|
Raoul de Coude made hurried excuses to his host after he
|
|
had read the note handed him by the ambassador's butler.
|
|
Never afterward could he recall the nature of the excuses
|
|
he made. Everything was quite a blur to him up to the
|
|
time that he stood on the threshold of his own home.
|
|
Then he became very cool, moving quietly and with caution.
|
|
For some inexplicable reason Jacques had the door open before
|
|
he was halfway to the steps. It did not strike him at the
|
|
time as being unusual, though afterward he remarked it.
|
|
|
|
Very softly he tiptoed up the stairs and along the gallery
|
|
to the door of his wife's boudoir. In his hand was a
|
|
heavy walking stick--in his heart, murder.
|
|
|
|
Olga was the first to see him. With a horrified shriek she
|
|
tore herself from Tarzan's arms, and the ape-man turned just
|
|
in time to ward with his arm a terrific blow that De Coude
|
|
had aimed at his head. Once, twice, three times the heavy
|
|
stick fell with lightning rapidity, and each blow aided in the
|
|
transition of the ape-man back to the primordial.
|
|
|
|
With the low, guttural snarl of the bull ape he sprang for
|
|
the Frenchman. The great stick was torn from his grasp and
|
|
broken in two as though it had been matchwood, to be flung aside
|
|
as the now infuriated beast charged for his adversary's throat.
|
|
Olga de Coude stood a horrified spectator of the terrible
|
|
scene which ensued during the next brief moment, then
|
|
she sprang to where Tarzan was murdering her husband--
|
|
choking the life from him--shaking him as a terrier might
|
|
shake a rat.
|
|
|
|
Frantically she tore at his great hands. "Mother of
|
|
God!" she cried. "You are killing him, you are killing him!
|
|
Oh, Jean, you are killing my husband!"
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was deaf with rage. Suddenly he hurled the body
|
|
to the floor, and, placing his foot upon the upturned breast,
|
|
raised his head. Then through the palace of the Count de
|
|
Coude rang the awesome challenge of the bull ape that has
|
|
made a kill. From cellar to attic the horrid sound searched
|
|
out the servants, and left them blanched and trembling.
|
|
The woman in the room sank to her knees beside the body
|
|
of her husband, and prayed.
|
|
|
|
Slowly the red mist faded from before Tarzan's eyes.
|
|
Things began to take form--he was regaining the perspective of
|
|
civilized man. His eyes fell upon the figure of the kneeling woman.
|
|
"Olga," he whispered. She looked up, expecting to see the
|
|
maniacal light of murder in the eyes above her.
|
|
Instead she saw sorrow and contrition.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Jean!" she cried. "See what you have done. He was
|
|
my husband. I loved him, and you have killed him."
|
|
|
|
Very gently Tarzan raised the limp form of the Count de
|
|
Coude and bore it to a couch. Then he put his ear to the
|
|
man's breast.
|
|
|
|
"Some brandy, Olga," he said.
|
|
|
|
She brought it, and together they forced it between his lips.
|
|
Presently a faint gasp came from the white lips.
|
|
The head turned, and De Coude groaned.
|
|
|
|
"He will not die," said Tarzan. "Thank God!"
|
|
|
|
"Why did you do it, Jean?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"I do not know. He struck me, and I went mad. I have
|
|
seen the apes of my tribe do the same thing. I have never
|
|
told you my story, Olga. It would have been better had you
|
|
known it--this might not have happened. I never saw my father.
|
|
The only mother I knew was a ferocious she-ape. Until I was
|
|
fifteen I had never seen a human being. I was twenty before
|
|
I saw a white man. A little more than a year ago I was a
|
|
naked beast of prey in an African jungle.
|
|
|
|
"Do not judge me too harshly. Two years is too short a time
|
|
in which to attempt to work the change in an individual that
|
|
it has taken countless ages to accomplish in the white race."
|
|
|
|
"I do not judge at all, Jean. The fault is mine.
|
|
You must go now--he must not find you here when he
|
|
regains consciousness. Good-by."
|
|
|
|
It was a sorrowful Tarzan who walked with bowed head
|
|
from the palace of the Count de Coude.
|
|
|
|
Once outside his thoughts took definite shape, to the end
|
|
that twenty minutes later he entered a police station not
|
|
far from the Rue Maule. Here he soon found one of the
|
|
officers with whom he had had the encounter several weeks
|
|
previous. The policeman was genuinely glad to see again
|
|
the man who had so roughly handled him. After a moment
|
|
of conversation Tarzan asked if he had ever heard of
|
|
Nikolas Rokoff or Alexis Paulvitch.
|
|
|
|
"Very often, indeed, monsieur. Each has a police record,
|
|
and while there is nothing charged against them now, we
|
|
make it a point to know pretty well where they may be found
|
|
should the occasion demand. It is only the same precaution
|
|
that we take with every known criminal. Why does monsieur ask?"
|
|
|
|
"They are known to me," replied Tarzan. "I wish to see
|
|
Monsieur Rokoff on a little matter of business. If you can
|
|
direct me to his lodgings I shall appreciate it."
|
|
|
|
A few minutes later he bade the policeman adieu, and,
|
|
with a slip of paper in his pocket bearing a certain address
|
|
in a semirespectable quarter, he walked briskly toward the
|
|
nearest taxi stand.
|
|
|
|
Rokoff and Paulvitch had returned to their rooms, and were
|
|
sitting talking over the probable outcome of the evening's
|
|
events. They had telephoned to the offices of two of the
|
|
morning papers from which they momentarily expected
|
|
representatives to hear the first report of the scandal
|
|
that was to stir social Paris on the morrow.
|
|
|
|
A heavy step sounded on the stairway. "Ah, but these
|
|
newspaper men are prompt," exclaimed Rokoff, and as a knock
|
|
fell upon the door of their room: "Enter, monsieur."
|
|
|
|
The smile of welcome froze upon the Russian's face as
|
|
he looked into the hard, gray eyes of his visitor.
|
|
|
|
"Name of a name!" he shouted, springing to his feet,
|
|
"What brings you here!"
|
|
|
|
"Sit down!" said Tarzan, so low that the men could barely
|
|
catch the words, but in a tone that brought Rokoff to his
|
|
chair, and kept Paulvitch in his.
|
|
|
|
"You know what has brought me here," he continued, in
|
|
the same low tone. "It should be to kill you, but because
|
|
you are Olga de Coude's brother I shall not do that--now.
|
|
|
|
"I shall give you a chance for your lives. Paulvitch does
|
|
not count much--he is merely a stupid, foolish little tool,
|
|
and so I shall not kill him so long as I permit you to live.
|
|
Before I leave you two alive in this room you will have done
|
|
two things. The first will be to write a full confession of
|
|
your connection with tonight's plot--and sign it.
|
|
|
|
"The second will be to promise me upon pain of death that you
|
|
will permit no word of this affair to get into the newspapers.
|
|
If you do not do both, neither of you will be alive when I
|
|
pass next through that doorway. Do you understand?"
|
|
And, without waiting for a reply: "Make haste; there is ink
|
|
before you, and paper and a pen."
|
|
|
|
Rokoff assumed a truculent air, attempting by bravado to
|
|
show how little he feared Tarzan's threats. An instant later
|
|
he felt the ape-man's steel fingers at his throat, and Paulvitch,
|
|
who attempted to dodge them and reach the door, was
|
|
lifted completely off the floor, and hurled senseless into a
|
|
corner. When Rokoff commenced to blacken about the face
|
|
Tarzan released his hold and shoved the fellow back into
|
|
his chair. After a moment of coughing Rokoff sat sullenly
|
|
glaring at the man standing opposite him. Presently Paulvitch
|
|
came to himself, and limped painfully back to his chair
|
|
at Tarzan's command.
|
|
|
|
"Now write," said the ape-man. "If it is necessary to handle
|
|
you again I shall not be so lenient."
|
|
|
|
Rokoff picked up a pen and commenced to write.
|
|
|
|
"See that you omit no detail, and that you mention every
|
|
name," cautioned Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
Presently there was a knock at the door. "Enter," said Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
A dapper young man came in. "I am from the MATIN,"
|
|
he announced. "I understand that Monsieur Rokoff has
|
|
a story for me."
|
|
|
|
"Then you are mistaken, monsieur," replied Tarzan.
|
|
"You have no story for publication, have you, my dear Nikolas."
|
|
|
|
Rokoff looked up from his writing with an ugly scowl
|
|
upon his face.
|
|
|
|
"No," he growled, "I have no story for publication--now."
|
|
|
|
"Nor ever, my dear Nikolas," and the reporter did not see
|
|
the nasty light in the ape-man's eye; but Nikolas Rokoff did.
|
|
|
|
"Nor ever," he repeated hastily.
|
|
|
|
"It is too bad that monsieur has been troubled," said Tarzan,
|
|
turning to the newspaper man. "I bid monsieur good
|
|
evening," and he bowed the dapper young man out of the
|
|
room, and closed the door in his face.
|
|
|
|
An hour later Tarzan, with a rather bulky manuscript in his
|
|
coat pocket, turned at the door leading from Rokoff's room.
|
|
|
|
"Were I you I should leave France," he said, "for sooner
|
|
or later I shall find an excuse to kill you that will not in
|
|
any way compromise your sister."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 6
|
|
|
|
|
|
A Duel
|
|
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot was asleep when Tarzan entered their apartments
|
|
after leaving Rokoff's. Tarzan did not disturb him, but
|
|
the following morning he narrated the happenings of
|
|
the previous evening, omitting not a single detail.
|
|
|
|
"What a fool I have been," he concluded. "De Coude and
|
|
his wife were both my friends. How have I returned their
|
|
friendship? Barely did I escape murdering the count. I have
|
|
cast a stigma on the name of a good woman. It is very probable
|
|
that I have broken up a happy home."
|
|
|
|
"Do you love Olga de Coude?" asked D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"Were I not positive that she does not love me I could not
|
|
answer your question, Paul; but without disloyalty to her I
|
|
tell you that I do not love her, nor does she love me. For an
|
|
instant we were the victims of a sudden madness--it was not
|
|
love--and it would have left us, unharmed, as suddenly as
|
|
it had come upon us even though De Coude had not returned.
|
|
As you know, I have had little experience of women. Olga
|
|
de Coude is very beautiful; that, and the dim light and the
|
|
seductive surroundings, and the appeal of the defenseless for
|
|
protection, might have been resisted by a more civilized
|
|
man, but my civilization is not even skin deep--it does not go
|
|
deeper than my clothes.
|
|
|
|
"Paris is no place for me. I will but continue to stumble
|
|
into more and more serious pitfalls. The man-made
|
|
restrictions are irksome. I feel always that I am a prisoner.
|
|
I cannot endure it, my friend, and so I think that I shall go
|
|
back to my own jungle, and lead the life that God intended
|
|
that I should lead when He put me there."
|
|
|
|
"Do not take it so to heart, Jean," responded D'Arnot.
|
|
"You have acquitted yourself much better than most
|
|
`civilized' men would have under similar circumstances.
|
|
As to leaving Paris at this time, I rather think that
|
|
Raoul de Coude may be expected to have something to say
|
|
on that subject before long."
|
|
|
|
Nor was D'Arnot mistaken. A week later on Monsieur Flaubert
|
|
was announced about eleven in the morning, as D'Arnot and
|
|
Tarzan were breakfasting. Monsieur Flaubert was an
|
|
impressively polite gentleman. With many low bows he delivered
|
|
Monsieur le Count de Coude's challenge to Monsieur Tarzan.
|
|
Would monsieur be so very kind as to arrange to have
|
|
a friend meet Monsieur Flaubert at as early an hour as
|
|
convenient, that the details might be arranged to the mutual
|
|
satisfaction of all concerned?
|
|
|
|
Certainly. Monsieur Tarzan would be delighted to place
|
|
his interests unreservedly in the hands of his friend,
|
|
Lieutenant D'Arnot. And so it was arranged that D'Arnot
|
|
was to call on Monsieur Flaubert at two that afternoon,
|
|
and the polite Monsieur Flaubert, with many bows, left them.
|
|
|
|
When they were again alone D'Arnot looked quizzically at Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"Well?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Now to my sins I must add murder, or else myself be killed,"
|
|
said Tarzan. "I am progressing rapidly in the ways of
|
|
my civilized brothers."
|
|
|
|
"What weapons shall you select?" asked D'Arnot.
|
|
"De Coude is accredited with being a master with the sword,
|
|
and a splendid shot."
|
|
|
|
"I might then choose poisoned arrows at twenty paces,
|
|
or spears at the same distance," laughed Tarzan.
|
|
"Make it pistols, Paul."
|
|
|
|
"He will kill you, Jean."
|
|
|
|
"I have no doubt of it," replied Tarzan. "I must die some day."
|
|
|
|
"We had better make it swords," said D'Arnot. "He will be
|
|
satisfied with wounding you, and there is less danger of a
|
|
mortal wound."
|
|
"Pistols," said Tarzan, with finality.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot tried to argue him out of it, but without avail,
|
|
so pistols it was.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot returned from his conference with Monsieur Flaubert
|
|
shortly after four.
|
|
|
|
"It is all arranged," he said. "Everything is satisfactory.
|
|
Tomorrow morning at daylight--there is a secluded spot on
|
|
the road not far from Etamps. For some personal reason
|
|
Monsieur Flaubert preferred it. I did not demur."
|
|
|
|
"Good!" was Tarzan's only comment. He did not refer to
|
|
the matter again even indirectly. That night he wrote several
|
|
letters before he retired. After sealing and addressing them
|
|
he placed them all in an envelope addressed to D'Arnot.
|
|
As he undressed D'Arnot heard him humming a music-hall ditty.
|
|
|
|
The Frenchman swore under his breath. He was very unhappy,
|
|
for he was positive that when the sun rose the next
|
|
morning it would look down upon a dead Tarzan. It grated
|
|
upon him to see Tarzan so unconcerned.
|
|
|
|
"This is a most uncivilized hour for people to kill each
|
|
other," remarked the ape-man when he had been routed out of
|
|
a comfortable bed in the blackness of the early morning hours.
|
|
He had slept well, and so it seemed that his head scarcely
|
|
touched the pillow ere his man deferentially aroused him.
|
|
His remark was addressed to D'Arnot, who stood fully
|
|
dressed in the doorway of Tarzan's bedroom.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot had scarcely slept at all during the night. He was
|
|
nervous, and therefore inclined to be irritable.
|
|
|
|
"I presume you slept like a baby all night," he said.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan laughed. "From your tone, Paul, I infer that you
|
|
rather harbor the fact against me. I could not help it, really."
|
|
|
|
"No, Jean; it is not that," replied D'Arnot, himself
|
|
smiling. "But you take the entire matter with such
|
|
infernal indifference--it is exasperating. One would
|
|
think that you were going out to shoot at a target,
|
|
rather than to face one of the best shots in France."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan shrugged his shoulders. "I am going out to expiate
|
|
a great wrong, Paul. A very necessary feature of the expiation
|
|
is the marksmanship of my opponent. Wherefore, then, should
|
|
I be dissatisfied? Have you not yourself told me that Count
|
|
de Coude is a splendid marksman?"
|
|
|
|
"You mean that you hope to be killed?" exclaimed D'Arnot,
|
|
in horror.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot say that I hope to be; but you must admit that
|
|
there is little reason to believe that I shall not be killed."
|
|
|
|
Had D'Arnot known the thing that was in the ape-man's
|
|
mind--that had been in his mind almost from the first
|
|
intimation that De Coude would call him to account on the
|
|
field of honor--he would have been even more horrified than
|
|
he was.
|
|
|
|
In silence they entered D'Arnot's great car, and in
|
|
similar silence they sped over the dim road that leads
|
|
to Etamps. Each man was occupied with his own thoughts.
|
|
D'Arnot's were very mournful, for he was genuinely fond
|
|
of Tarzan. The great friendship which had sprung up between
|
|
these two men whose lives and training had been so widely
|
|
different had but been strengthened by association, for
|
|
they were both men to whom the same high ideals of manhood,
|
|
of personal courage, and of honor appealed with equal force.
|
|
They could understand one another, and each could be proud
|
|
of the friendship of the other.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes was wrapped in thoughts of the past;
|
|
pleasant memories of the happier occasions of his lost
|
|
jungle life. He recalled the countless boyhood hours that
|
|
he had spent cross-legged upon the table in his dead father's
|
|
cabin, his little brown body bent over one of the fascinating
|
|
picture books from which, unaided, he had gleaned the secret
|
|
of the printed language long before the sounds of
|
|
human speech fell upon his ears. A smile of contentment
|
|
softened his strong face as he thought of that day of days
|
|
that he had had alone with Jane Porter in the heart of his
|
|
primeval forest.
|
|
|
|
Presently his reminiscences were broken in upon by the
|
|
stopping of the car--they were at their destination.
|
|
Tarzan's mind returned to the affairs of the moment.
|
|
He knew that he was about to die, but there was no fear of
|
|
death in him. To a denizen of the cruel jungle death is
|
|
a commonplace. The first law of nature compels them to
|
|
cling tenaciously to life--to fight for it; but it does
|
|
not teach them to fear death.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot and Tarzan were first upon the field of honor. A
|
|
moment later De Coude, Monsieur Flaubert, and a third
|
|
gentleman arrived. The last was introduced to D'Arnot and
|
|
Tarzan; he was a physician.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert spoke together in whispers
|
|
for a brief time. The Count de Coude and Tarzan stood apart
|
|
at opposite sides of the field. Presently the seconds
|
|
summoned them. D'Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert had examined
|
|
both pistols. The two men who were to face each other a
|
|
moment later stood silently while Monsieur Flaubert recited
|
|
the conditions they were to observe.
|
|
|
|
They were to stand back to back. At a signal from Monsieur
|
|
Flaubert they were to walk in opposite directions,
|
|
their pistols hanging by their sides. When each had proceeded
|
|
ten paces D'Arnot was to give the final signal--then they
|
|
were to turn and fire at will until one fell, or each had
|
|
expended the three shots allowed.
|
|
|
|
While Monsieur Flaubert spoke Tarzan selected a cigarette
|
|
from his case, and lighted it. De Coude was the personification
|
|
of coolness--was he not the best shot in France?
|
|
|
|
Presently Monsieur Flaubert nodded to D'Arnot, and
|
|
each man placed his principal in position.
|
|
|
|
"Are you quite ready, gentlemen?" asked Monsieur Flaubert.
|
|
|
|
"Quite," replied De Coude.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan nodded. Monsieur Flaubert gave the signal. He
|
|
and D'Arnot stepped back a few paces to be out of the line
|
|
of fire as the men paced slowly apart. Six! Seven! Eight!
|
|
There were tears in D'Arnot's eyes. He loved Tarzan very much.
|
|
Nine! Another pace, and the poor lieutenant gave the
|
|
signal he so hated to give. To him it sounded the doom
|
|
of his best friend.
|
|
|
|
Quickly De Coude wheeled and fired. Tarzan gave a little start.
|
|
His pistol still dangled at his side. De Coude hesitated,
|
|
as though waiting to see his antagonist crumple to the ground.
|
|
The Frenchman was too experienced a marksman not to know that
|
|
he had scored a hit. Still Tarzan made no move to raise his pistol.
|
|
De Coude fired once more, but the attitude of the ape-man--the
|
|
utter indifference that was so apparent in every line of the
|
|
nonchalant ease of his giant figure, and the even unruffled
|
|
puffing of his cigarette--had disconcerted the best marksman
|
|
in France. This time Tarzan did not start, but again De Coude
|
|
knew that he had hit.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly the explanation leaped to his mind--his antagonist
|
|
was coolly taking these terrible chances in the hope
|
|
that he would receive no staggering wound from any of
|
|
De Coude's three shots. Then he would take his own time
|
|
about shooting De Coude down deliberately, coolly, and in
|
|
cold blood. A little shiver ran up the Frenchman's spine.
|
|
It was fiendish--diabolical. What manner of creature was this
|
|
that could stand complacently with two bullets in him, waiting
|
|
for the third?
|
|
|
|
And so De Coude took careful aim this time, but his nerve
|
|
was gone, and he made a clean miss. Not once had Tarzan
|
|
raised his pistol hand from where it hung beside his leg.
|
|
|
|
For a moment the two stood looking straight into each
|
|
other's eyes. On Tarzan's face was a pathetic expression
|
|
of disappointment. On De Coude's a rapidly growing
|
|
expression of horror--yes, of terror.
|
|
|
|
He could endure it no longer.
|
|
|
|
"Mother of God! Monsieur--shoot!" he screamed.
|
|
|
|
But Tarzan did not raise his pistol. Instead, he advanced
|
|
toward De Coude, and when D'Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert,
|
|
misinterpreting his intention, would have rushed between
|
|
them, he raised his left hand in a sign of remonstrance.
|
|
|
|
"Do not fear," he said to them, "I shall not harm him."
|
|
|
|
It was most unusual, but they halted. Tarzan advanced
|
|
until he was quite close to De Coude.
|
|
|
|
"There must have been something wrong with monsieur's
|
|
pistol," he said. "Or monsieur is unstrung. Take mine,
|
|
monsieur, and try again," and Tarzan offered his pistol, butt
|
|
foremost, to the astonished De Coude.
|
|
|
|
"MON DIEU, monsieur!" cried the latter. "Are you mad?"
|
|
|
|
"No, my friend," replied the ape-man; "but I deserve to die.
|
|
It is the only way in which I may atone for the wrong I have
|
|
done a very good woman. Take my pistol and do as I bid."
|
|
|
|
"It would be murder," replied De Coude. "But what wrong
|
|
did you do my wife? She swore to me that--"
|
|
|
|
"I do not mean that," said Tarzan quickly. "You saw all
|
|
the wrong that passed between us. But that was enough to
|
|
cast a shadow upon her name, and to ruin the happiness of
|
|
a man against whom I had no enmity. The fault was all
|
|
mine, and so I hoped to die for it this morning. I am
|
|
disappointed that monsieur is not so wonderful a marksman
|
|
as I had been led to believe."
|
|
|
|
"You say that the fault was all yours?" asked De Coude eagerly.
|
|
|
|
"All mine, monsieur. Your wife is a very pure woman.
|
|
She loves only you. The fault that you saw was all mine.
|
|
The thing that brought me there was no fault of either the
|
|
Countess de Coude or myself. Here is a paper which will quite
|
|
positively demonstrate that," and Tarzan drew from his pocket
|
|
the statement Rokoff had written and signed.
|
|
|
|
De Coude took it and read. D'Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert
|
|
had drawn near. They were interested spectators of this
|
|
strange ending of a strange duel. None spoke until De
|
|
Coude had quite finished, then he looked up at Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"You are a very brave and chivalrous gentleman," he said.
|
|
"I thank God that I did not kill you."
|
|
|
|
De Coude was a Frenchman. Frenchmen are impulsive. He threw
|
|
his arms about Tarzan and embraced him. Monsieur Flaubert
|
|
embraced D'Arnot. There was no one to embrace the doctor.
|
|
So possibly it was pique which prompted him to interfere,
|
|
and demand that he be permitted to dress Tarzan's wounds.
|
|
|
|
"This gentleman was hit once at least," he said. "Possibly thrice."
|
|
|
|
"Twice," said Tarzan. "Once in the left shoulder, and again
|
|
in the left side--both flesh wounds, I think." But the doctor
|
|
insisted upon stretching him upon the sward, and tinkering
|
|
with him until the wounds were cleansed and the flow of
|
|
blood checked.
|
|
|
|
One result of the duel was that they all rode back to Paris
|
|
together in D'Arnot's car, the best of friends. De Coude
|
|
was so relieved to have had this double assurance of his
|
|
wife's loyalty that he felt no rancor at all toward Tarzan.
|
|
It is true that the latter had assumed much more of the fault
|
|
than was rightly his, but if he lied a little he may be
|
|
excused, for he lied in the service of a woman, and he lied
|
|
like a gentleman.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man was confined to his bed for several days. He
|
|
felt that it was foolish and unnecessary, but the doctor and
|
|
D'Arnot took the matter so to heart that he gave in to please
|
|
them, though it made him laugh to think of it.
|
|
|
|
"It is droll," he said to D'Arnot. "To lie abed because of a
|
|
pin prick! Why, when Bolgani, the king gorilla, tore me almost
|
|
to pieces, while I was still but a little boy, did I have a
|
|
nice soft bed to lie on? No, only the damp, rotting vegetation
|
|
of the jungle. Hidden beneath some friendly bush I lay for
|
|
days and weeks with only Kala to nurse me--poor, faithful
|
|
Kala, who kept the insects from my wounds and warned off
|
|
the beasts of prey.
|
|
|
|
"When I called for water she brought it to me in her own
|
|
mouth--the only way she knew to carry it. There was no
|
|
sterilized gauze, there was no antiseptic bandage--there
|
|
was nothing that would not have driven our dear doctor mad
|
|
to have seen. Yet I recovered--recovered to lie in bed
|
|
because of a tiny scratch that one of the jungle folk would
|
|
scarce realize unless it were upon the end of his nose."
|
|
|
|
But the time was soon over, and before he realized it
|
|
Tarzan found himself abroad again. Several times De Coude
|
|
had called, and when he found that Tarzan was anxious for
|
|
employment of some nature he promised to see what could
|
|
be done to find a berth for him.
|
|
|
|
It was the first day that Tarzan was permitted to go out
|
|
that he received a message from De Coude requesting him
|
|
to call at the count's office that afternoon.
|
|
|
|
He found De Coude awaiting him with a very pleasant welcome,
|
|
and a sincere congratulation that he was once more
|
|
upon his feet. Neither had ever mentioned the duel or the
|
|
cause of it since that morning upon the field of honor.
|
|
|
|
"I think that I have found just the thing for you, Monsieur
|
|
Tarzan," said the count. "It is a position of much trust and
|
|
responsibility, which also requires considerably physical courage
|
|
and prowess. I cannot imagine a man better fitted than
|
|
you, my dear Monsieur Tarzan, for this very position. It will
|
|
necessitate travel, and later it may lead to a very much better
|
|
post--possibly in the diplomatic service.
|
|
|
|
"At first, for a short time only, you will be a special agent
|
|
in the service of the ministry of war. Come, I will take you
|
|
to the gentleman who will be your chief. He can explain
|
|
the duties better than I, and then you will be in a position
|
|
to judge if you wish to accept or no."
|
|
|
|
De Coude himself escorted Tarzan to the office of General
|
|
Rochere, the chief of the bureau to which Tarzan would be
|
|
attached if he accepted the position. There the count left
|
|
him, after a glowing description to the general of the many
|
|
attributes possessed by the ape-man which should fit him
|
|
for the work of the service.
|
|
|
|
A half hour later Tarzan walked out of the office the
|
|
possessor of the first position he had ever held. On the morrow
|
|
he was to return for further instructions, though General
|
|
Rochere had made it quite plain that Tarzan might prepare
|
|
to leave Paris for an almost indefinite period, possibly on
|
|
the morrow.
|
|
|
|
It was with feelings of the keenest elation that he hastened
|
|
home to bear the good news to D'Arnot. At last he was to be
|
|
of some value in the world. He was to earn money, and, best
|
|
of all, to travel and see the world.
|
|
|
|
He could scarcely wait to get well inside D'Arnot's sitting
|
|
room before he burst out with the glad tidings. D'Arnot was
|
|
not so pleased.
|
|
|
|
"It seems to delight you to think that you are to leave
|
|
Paris, and that we shall not see each other for months, perhaps.
|
|
Tarzan, you are a most ungrateful beast!" and D'Arnot laughed.
|
|
|
|
"No, Paul; I am a little child. I have a new toy, and I am
|
|
tickled to death."
|
|
|
|
And so it came that on the following day Tarzan left
|
|
Paris en route for Marseilles and Oran.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 7
|
|
|
|
The Dancing Girl of Sidi Aissa
|
|
|
|
|
|
Tarzan's first mission did not bid fair to be either
|
|
exciting or vastly important. There was a certain lieutenant
|
|
of SPAHIS whom the government had reason to suspect
|
|
of improper relations with a great European power.
|
|
This Lieutenant Gernois, who was at present stationed at
|
|
Sidibel-Abbes, had recently been attached to the general staff,
|
|
where certain information of great military value had come
|
|
into his possession in the ordinary routine of his duties.
|
|
It was this information which the government suspected the
|
|
great power was bartering for with the officer.
|
|
|
|
It was at most but a vague hint dropped by a certain
|
|
notorious Parisienne in a jealous mood that had caused
|
|
suspicion to rest upon the lieutenant. But general staffs are
|
|
jealous of their secrets, and treason so serious a thing that
|
|
even a hint of it may not be safely neglected. And so it was
|
|
that Tarzan had come to Algeria in the guise of an American
|
|
hunter and traveler to keep a close eye upon Lieutenant Gernois.
|
|
|
|
He had looked forward with keen delight to again seeing
|
|
his beloved Africa, but this northern aspect of it was so
|
|
different from his tropical jungle home that he might as well
|
|
have been back in Paris for all the heart thrills of homecoming
|
|
that he experienced. At Oran he spent a day wandering through
|
|
the narrow, crooked alleys of the Arab quarter enjoying the
|
|
strange, new sights. The next day found him at Sidi-bel-Abbes,
|
|
where he presented his letters of introduction to both civil
|
|
and military authorities--letters which gave no clew to the
|
|
real significance of his mission.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan possessed a sufficient command of English to enable
|
|
him to pass among Arabs and Frenchmen as an American,
|
|
and that was all that was required of it. When he met an
|
|
Englishman he spoke French in order that he might not betray
|
|
himself, but occasionally talked in English to foreigners
|
|
who understood that tongue, but could not note the slight
|
|
imperfections of accent and pronunciation that were his.
|
|
|
|
Here he became acquainted with many of the French officers,
|
|
and soon became a favorite among them. He met Gernois,
|
|
whom he found to be a taciturn, dyspeptic-looking man of
|
|
about forty, having little or no social intercourse with
|
|
his fellows.
|
|
|
|
For a month nothing of moment occurred. Gernois apparently
|
|
had no visitors, nor did he on his occasional visits
|
|
to the town hold communication with any who might even
|
|
by the wildest flight of imagination be construed into secret
|
|
agents of a foreign power. Tarzan was beginning to hope that,
|
|
after all, the rumor might have been false, when suddenly
|
|
Gernois was ordered to Bou Saada in the Petit Sahara far to
|
|
the south.
|
|
|
|
A company of SPAHIS and three officers were to relieve
|
|
another company already stationed there. Fortunately one of
|
|
the officers, Captain Gerard, had become an excellent friend of
|
|
Tarzan's, and so when the ape-man suggested that he should
|
|
embrace the opportunity of accompanying him to Bou Saada, where
|
|
he expected to find hunting, it caused not the slightest suspicion.
|
|
|
|
At Bouira the detachment detrained, and the balance of the
|
|
journey was made in the saddle. As Tarzan was dickering at
|
|
Bouira for a mount he caught a brief glimpse of a man in
|
|
European clothes eying him from the doorway of a native
|
|
coffeehouse, but as Tarzan looked the man turned and entered the
|
|
little, low-ceilinged mud hut, and but for a haunting impression
|
|
that there had been something familiar about the face or figure
|
|
of the fellow, Tarzan gave the matter no further thought.
|
|
|
|
The march to Aumale was fatiguing to Tarzan, whose
|
|
equestrian experiences hitherto had been confined to a course
|
|
of riding lessons in a Parisian academy, and so it was that he
|
|
quickly sought the comforts of a bed in the Hotel Grossat,
|
|
while the officers and troops took up their quarters at the
|
|
military post.
|
|
|
|
Although Tarzan was called early the following morning,
|
|
the company of SPAHIS was on the march before he had
|
|
finished his breakfast. He was hurrying through his meal that
|
|
the soldiers might not get too far in advance of him when he
|
|
glanced through the door connecting the dining room with the bar.
|
|
|
|
To his surprise, he saw Gernois standing there in
|
|
conversation with the very stranger he had seen in the coffee-
|
|
house at Bouira the day previous. He could not be mistaken,
|
|
for there was the same strangely familiar attitude and figure,
|
|
though the man's back was toward him.
|
|
|
|
As his eyes lingered on the two, Gernois looked up and
|
|
caught the intent expression on Tarzan's face. The stranger
|
|
was talking in a low whisper at the time, but the French
|
|
officer immediately interrupted him, and the two at once
|
|
turned away and passed out of the range of Tarzan's vision.
|
|
|
|
This was the first suspicious occurrence that Tarzan had
|
|
ever witnessed in connection with Gernois' actions, but he
|
|
was positive that the men had left the barroom solely because
|
|
Gernois had caught Tarzan's eyes upon them; then there was
|
|
the persistent impression of familiarity about the stranger
|
|
to further augment the ape-man's belief that here at length
|
|
was something which would bear watching.
|
|
|
|
A moment later Tarzan entered the barroom, but the men
|
|
had left, nor did he see aught of them in the street beyond,
|
|
though he found a pretext to ride to various shops before he
|
|
set out after the column which had now considerable start of him.
|
|
He did not overtake them until he reached Sidi Aissa shortly
|
|
after noon, where the soldiers had halted for an hour's rest.
|
|
Here he found Gernois with the column, but there was no
|
|
sign of the stranger.
|
|
|
|
It was market day at Sidi Aissa, and the numberless caravans
|
|
of camels coming in from the desert, and the crowds of
|
|
bickering Arabs in the market place, filled Tarzan with a
|
|
consuming desire to remain for a day that he might see more of
|
|
these sons of the desert. Thus it was that the company of
|
|
SPAHIS marched on that afternoon toward Bou Saada without
|
|
him. He spent the hours until dark wandering about the
|
|
market in company with a youthful Arab, one Abdul, who
|
|
had been recommended to him by the innkeeper as a trustworthy
|
|
servant and interpreter.
|
|
|
|
Here Tarzan purchased a better mount than the one he
|
|
had selected at Bouira, and, entering into conversation with
|
|
the stately Arab to whom the animal had belonged, learned
|
|
that the seller was Kadour ben Saden, sheik of a desert tribe
|
|
far south of Djelfa. Through Abdul, Tarzan invited his new
|
|
acquaintance to dine with him. As the three were making
|
|
their way through the crowds of marketers, camels, donkeys,
|
|
and horses that filled the market place with a confusing
|
|
babel of sounds, Abdul plucked at Tarzan's sleeve.
|
|
|
|
"Look, master, behind us," and he turned, pointing at a
|
|
figure which disappeared behind a camel as Tarzan turned.
|
|
"He has been following us about all afternoon," continued Abdul.
|
|
|
|
"I caught only a glimpse of an Arab in a dark-blue burnoose
|
|
and white turban," replied Tarzan. "Is it he you mean?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. I suspected him because he seems a stranger here,
|
|
without other business than following us, which is not the
|
|
way of the Arab who is honest, and also because he keeps
|
|
the lower part of his face hidden, only his eyes showing.
|
|
He must be a bad man, or he would have honest business of
|
|
his own to occupy his time."
|
|
|
|
"He is on the wrong scent then, Abdul," replied Tarzan,
|
|
"for no one here can have any grievance against me.
|
|
This is my first visit to your country, and none knows me.
|
|
He will soon discover his error, and cease to follow us."
|
|
|
|
"Unless he be bent on robbery," returned Abdul.
|
|
|
|
"Then all we can do is wait until he is ready to try his
|
|
hand upon us," laughed Tarzan, "and I warrant that he will
|
|
get his bellyful of robbing now that we are prepared for
|
|
him," and so he dismissed the subject from his mind, though
|
|
he was destined to recall it before many hours through a most
|
|
unlooked-for occurrence.
|
|
|
|
Kadour ben Saden, having dined well, prepared to take leave
|
|
of his host. With dignified protestations of friendship, he
|
|
invited Tarzan to visit him in his wild domain, where the
|
|
antelope, the stag, the boar, the panther, and the lion might
|
|
still be found in sufficient numbers to tempt an ardent huntsman.
|
|
|
|
On his departure the ape-man, with Abdul, wandered again
|
|
into the streets of Sidi Aissa, where he was soon attracted
|
|
by the wild din of sound coming from the open doorway of
|
|
one of the numerous CAFES MAURES. It was after eight, and
|
|
the dancing was in full swing as Tarzan entered. The room
|
|
was filled to repletion with Arabs. All were smoking, and
|
|
drinking their thick, hot coffee.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan and Abdul found seats near the center of the room,
|
|
though the terrific noise produced by the musicians upon
|
|
their Arab drums and pipes would have rendered a seat
|
|
farther from them more acceptable to the quiet-loving ape-man.
|
|
A rather good-looking Ouled-Nail was dancing, and, perceiving
|
|
Tarzan's European clothes, and scenting a generous gratuity,
|
|
she threw her silken handkerchief upon his shoulder,
|
|
to be rewarded with a franc.
|
|
|
|
When her place upon the floor had been taken by another
|
|
the bright-eyed Abdul saw her in conversation with two
|
|
Arabs at the far side of the room, near a side door that
|
|
let upon an inner court, around the gallery of which were
|
|
the rooms occupied by the girls who danced in this cafe.
|
|
|
|
At first he thought nothing of the matter, but presently he
|
|
noticed from the corner of his eye one of the men nod in
|
|
their direction, and the girl turn and shoot a furtive glance
|
|
at Tarzan. Then the Arabs melted through the doorway into
|
|
the darkness of the court.
|
|
|
|
When it came again the girl's turn to dance she hovered
|
|
close to Tarzan, and for the ape-man alone were her sweetest
|
|
smiles. Many an ugly scowl was cast upon the tall European
|
|
by swarthy, dark-eyed sons of the desert, but neither smiles
|
|
nor scowls produced any outwardly visible effect upon him.
|
|
Again the girl cast her handkerchief upon his shoulder, and
|
|
again was she rewarded with a franc piece. As she was sticking
|
|
it upon her forehead, after the custom of her kind, she
|
|
bent low toward Tarzan, whispering a quick word in his ear.
|
|
|
|
"There are two without in the court," she said quickly, in
|
|
broken French, "who would harm m'sieur. At first I promised
|
|
to lure you to them, but you have been kind, and I cannot
|
|
do it. Go quickly, before they find that I have failed them.
|
|
I think that they are very bad men."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan thanked the girl, assuring her that he would be careful,
|
|
and, having finished her dance, she crossed to the little
|
|
doorway and went out into the court. But Tarzan did not leave
|
|
the cafe as she had urged.
|
|
|
|
For another half hour nothing unusual occurred, then a
|
|
surly-looking Arab entered the cafe from the street. He stood
|
|
near Tarzan, where he deliberately made insulting remarks
|
|
about the European, but as they were in his native tongue
|
|
Tarzan was entirely innocent of their purport until Abdul
|
|
took it upon himself to enlighten him.
|
|
|
|
"This fellow is looking for trouble," warned Abdul. "He is
|
|
not alone. In fact, in case of a disturbance, nearly every
|
|
man here would be against you. It would be better to leave
|
|
quietly, master."
|
|
|
|
"Ask the fellow what he wants," commanded Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"He says that `the dog of a Christian' insulted the Ouled-
|
|
Nail, who belongs to him. He means trouble, m'sieur."
|
|
|
|
"Tell him that I did not insult his or any other Ouled-
|
|
Nail, that I wish him to go away and leave me alone.
|
|
That I have no quarrel with him, nor has he any with me."
|
|
|
|
"He says," replied Abdul, after delivering this message to
|
|
the Arab, "that besides being a dog yourself that you are the
|
|
son of one, and that your grandmother was a hyena.
|
|
Incidentally you are a liar."
|
|
|
|
The attention of those near by had now been attracted
|
|
by the altercation, and the sneering laughs that followed
|
|
this torrent of invective easily indicated the trend of the
|
|
sympathies of the majority of the audience.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan did not like being laughed at, neither did he relish
|
|
the terms applied to him by the Arab, but he showed no
|
|
sign of anger as he arose from his seat upon the bench.
|
|
A half smile played about his lips, but of a sudden a mighty
|
|
fist shot into the face of the scowling Arab, and back of it
|
|
were the terrible muscles of the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
At the instant that the man fell a half dozen fierce plainsmen
|
|
sprang into the room from where they had apparently been
|
|
waiting for their cue in the street before the cafe.
|
|
With cries of "Kill the unbeliever!" and "Down with the
|
|
dog of a Christian!" they made straight for Tarzan.
|
|
A number of the younger Arabs in the audience sprang to
|
|
their feet to join in the assault upon the unarmed white man.
|
|
Tarzan and Abdul were rushed back toward the end of
|
|
the room by the very force of numbers opposing them.
|
|
The young Arab remained loyal to his master, and with
|
|
drawn knife fought at his side.
|
|
|
|
With tremendous blows the ape-man felled all who came
|
|
within reach of his powerful hands. He fought quietly and
|
|
without a word, upon his lips the same half smile they had
|
|
worn as he rose to strike down the man who had insulted him.
|
|
It seemed impossible that either he or Abdul could survive the
|
|
sea of wicked-looking swords and knives that surrounded
|
|
them, but the very numbers of their assailants proved the
|
|
best bulwark of their safety. So closely packed was the
|
|
howling, cursing mob that no weapon could be wielded to
|
|
advantage, and none of the Arabs dared use a firearm for
|
|
fear of wounding one of his compatriots.
|
|
|
|
Finally Tarzan succeeded in seizing one of the most
|
|
persistent of his attackers. With a quick wrench he disarmed
|
|
the fellow, and then, holding him before them as a shield,
|
|
he backed slowly beside Abdul toward the little door which
|
|
led into the inner courtyard. At the threshold he paused for
|
|
an instant, and, lifting the struggling Arab above his head,
|
|
hurled him, as though from a catapult, full in the faces of
|
|
his on-pressing fellows.
|
|
|
|
Then Tarzan and Abdul stepped into the semidarkness of
|
|
the court. The frightened Ouled-Nails were crouching at the
|
|
tops of the stairs which led to their respective rooms, the
|
|
only light in the courtyard coming from the sickly candles
|
|
which each girl had stuck with its own grease to the woodwork
|
|
of her door-frame, the better to display her charms
|
|
to those who might happen to traverse the dark inclosure.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had Tarzan and Abdul emerged from the room ere
|
|
a revolver spoke close at their backs from the shadows
|
|
beneath one of the stairways, and as they turned to meet this
|
|
new antagonist, two muffled figures sprang toward them,
|
|
firing as they came. Tarzan leaped to meet these two new
|
|
assailants. The foremost lay, a second later, in the trampled
|
|
dirt of the court, disarmed and groaning from a broken wrist.
|
|
Abdul's knife found the vitals of the second in the instant
|
|
that the fellow's revolver missed fire as he held it to the
|
|
faithful Arab's forehead.
|
|
|
|
The maddened horde within the cafe were now rushing out in
|
|
pursuit of their quarry. The Ouled-Nails had extinguished
|
|
their candles at a cry from one of their number, and the
|
|
only light within the yard came feebly from the open and
|
|
half-blocked door of the cafe. Tarzan had seized a sword
|
|
from the man who had fallen before Abdul's knife, and now
|
|
he stood waiting for the rush of men that was coming in
|
|
search of them through the darkness.
|
|
|
|
Suddenly he felt a light hand upon his shoulder from behind,
|
|
and a woman's voice whispering, "Quick, m'sieur; this way. Follow me."
|
|
|
|
"Come, Abdul," said Tarzan, in a low tone, to the youth;
|
|
"we can be no worse off elsewhere than we are here."
|
|
|
|
The woman turned and led them up the narrow stairway
|
|
that ended at the door of her quarters. Tarzan was close
|
|
beside her. He saw the gold and silver bracelets upon her
|
|
bare arms, the strings of gold coin that depended from her hair
|
|
ornaments, and the gorgeous colors of her dress. He saw that
|
|
she was a Ouled-Nail, and instinctively he knew that she
|
|
was the same who had whispered the warning in his ear
|
|
earlier in the evening.
|
|
|
|
As they reached the top of the stairs they could hear the
|
|
angry crowd searching the yard beneath.
|
|
|
|
"Soon they will search here," whispered the girl.
|
|
"They must not find you, for, though you fight with the
|
|
strength of many men, they will kill you in the end.
|
|
Hasten; you can drop from the farther window of my room to the
|
|
street beyond. Before they discover that you are no longer in
|
|
the court of the buildings you will be safe within the hotel."
|
|
|
|
But even as she spoke, several men had started up the
|
|
stairway at the head of which they stood. There was a sudden
|
|
cry from one of the searchers. They had been discovered.
|
|
Quickly the crowd rushed for the stairway. The foremost
|
|
assailant leaped quickly upward, but at the top he met the
|
|
sudden sword that he had not expected--the quarry had been
|
|
unarmed before.
|
|
|
|
With a cry, the man toppled back upon those behind him.
|
|
Like tenpins they rolled down the stairs. The ancient and
|
|
rickety structure could not withstand the strain of this
|
|
unwonted weight and jarring. With a creaking and rending
|
|
of breaking wood it collapsed beneath the Arabs, leaving
|
|
Tarzan, Abdul, and the girl alone upon the frail platform
|
|
at the top.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" cried the Ouled-Nail. "They will reach us from
|
|
another stairway through the room next to mine. We have
|
|
not a moment to spare."
|
|
|
|
Just as they were entering the room Abdul heard and
|
|
translated a cry from the yard below for several to hasten
|
|
to the street and cut off escape from that side.
|
|
|
|
"We are lost now," said the girl simply.
|
|
|
|
"We?" questioned Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, m'sieur," she responded; "they will kill me as well.
|
|
Have I not aided you?"
|
|
|
|
This put a different aspect on the matter. Tarzan had rather
|
|
been enjoying the excitement and danger of the encounter.
|
|
He had not for an instant supposed that either Abdul or the
|
|
girl could suffer except through accident, and he had only
|
|
retreated just enough to keep from being killed himself.
|
|
He had had no intention of running away until he saw that
|
|
he was hopelessly lost were he to remain.
|
|
|
|
Alone he could have sprung into the midst of that close-
|
|
packed mob, and, laying about him after the fashion of
|
|
Numa, the lion, have struck the Arabs with such consternation
|
|
that escape would have been easy. Now he must think
|
|
entirely of these two faithful friends.
|
|
|
|
He crossed to the window which overlooked the street. In
|
|
a minute there would be enemies below. Already he could
|
|
hear the mob clambering the stairway to the next quarters--
|
|
they would be at the door beside him in another instant.
|
|
He put a foot upon the sill and leaned out, but he did not
|
|
look down. Above him, within arm's reach, was the low roof
|
|
of the building. He called to the girl. She came and stood
|
|
beside him. He put a great arm about her and lifted her across
|
|
his shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"Wait here until I reach down for you from above," he
|
|
said to Abdul. "In the meantime shove everything in the
|
|
room against that door--it may delay them long enough."
|
|
Then he stepped to the sill of the narrow window with the
|
|
girl upon his shoulders. "Hold tight," he cautioned her.
|
|
A moment later he had clambered to the roof above with the
|
|
ease and dexterity of an ape. Setting the girl down, he leaned
|
|
far over the roof's edge, calling softly to Abdul. The youth
|
|
ran to the window.
|
|
|
|
"Your hand," whispered Tarzan. The men in the room beyond
|
|
were battering at the door. With a sudden crash it fell
|
|
splintering in, and at the same instant Abdul felt himself
|
|
lifted like a feather onto the roof above. They were not a
|
|
moment too soon, for as the men broke into the room which
|
|
they had just quitted a dozen more rounded the corner in the
|
|
street below and came running to a spot beneath the girl's window.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 8
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Fight in the Desert
|
|
|
|
|
|
As the three squatted upon the roof above the quarters of
|
|
the Ouled-Nails they heard the angry cursing of the
|
|
Arabs in the room beneath. Abdul translated from time
|
|
to time to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"They are berating those in the street below now," said
|
|
Abdul, "for permitting us to escape so easily. Those in the
|
|
street say that we did not come that way--that we are still
|
|
within the building, and that those above, being too cowardly
|
|
to attack us, are attempting to deceive them into believing
|
|
that we have escaped. In a moment they will have fighting
|
|
of their own to attend to if they continue their brawling."
|
|
|
|
Presently those in the building gave up the search, and
|
|
returned to the cafe. A few remained in the street below,
|
|
smoking and talking.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan spoke to the girl, thanking her for the sacrifice she
|
|
had made for him, a total stranger.
|
|
|
|
"I liked you," she said simply. "You were unlike the others
|
|
who come to the cafe. You did not speak coarsely to me--
|
|
the manner in which you gave me money was not an insult."
|
|
|
|
"What shall you do after tonight?" he asked. "You cannot return
|
|
to the cafe. Can you even remain with safety in Sidi Aissa?"
|
|
|
|
"Tomorrow it will be forgotten," she replied. "But I should
|
|
be glad if it might be that I need never return to this or
|
|
another cafe. I have not remained because I wished to;
|
|
I have been a prisoner."
|
|
|
|
"A prisoner!" ejaculated Tarzan incredulously.
|
|
|
|
"A slave would be the better word," she answered. "I was stolen
|
|
in the night from my father's DOUAR by a band of marauders.
|
|
They brought me here and sold me to the Arab who keeps this cafe.
|
|
It has been nearly two years now since I saw the last of mine
|
|
own people. They are very far to the south. They never come
|
|
to Sidi Aissa."
|
|
|
|
"You would like to return to your people?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
"Then I shall promise to see you safely so far as Bou Saada
|
|
at least. There we can doubtless arrange with the commandant
|
|
to send you the rest of the way."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, m'sieur," she cried, "how can I ever repay you! You
|
|
cannot really mean that you will do so much for a poor
|
|
Ouled-Nail. But my father can reward you, and he will, for
|
|
is he not a great sheik? He is Kadour ben Saden."
|
|
|
|
"Kadour ben Saden!" ejaculated Tarzan. "Why, Kadour
|
|
ben Saden is in Sidi Aissa this very night. He dined
|
|
with me but a few hours since."
|
|
|
|
"My father in Sidi Aissa?" cried the amazed girl.
|
|
"Allah be praised then, for I am indeed saved."
|
|
|
|
"Hssh!" cautioned Abdul. "Listen."
|
|
|
|
From below came the sound of voices, quite distinguishable
|
|
upon the still night air. Tarzan could not understand the
|
|
words, but Abdul and the girl translated.
|
|
|
|
"They have gone now," said the latter. "It is you they want, m'sieur.
|
|
One of them said that the stranger who had offered
|
|
money for your slaying lay in the house of Akmed din
|
|
Soulef with a broken wrist, but that he had offered a still
|
|
greater reward if some would lay in wait for you upon the
|
|
road to Bou Saada and kill you."
|
|
|
|
"It is he who followed m'sieur about the market today,"
|
|
exclaimed Abdul. "I saw him again within the cafe--him
|
|
and another; and the two went out into the inner court after
|
|
talking with this girl here. It was they who attacked and
|
|
fired upon us, as we came out of the cafe. Why do they wish
|
|
to kill you, m'sieur?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know," replied Tarzan, and then, after a pause:
|
|
"Unless--" But he did not finish, for the thought that had
|
|
come to his mind, while it seemed the only reasonable solution
|
|
of the mystery, appeared at the same time quite improbable.
|
|
Presently the men in the street went away. The courtyard
|
|
and the cafe were deserted. Cautiously Tarzan lowered
|
|
himself to the sill of the girl's window. The room was empty.
|
|
He returned to the roof and let Abdul down, then he
|
|
lowered the girl to the arms of the waiting Arab.
|
|
|
|
From the window Abdul dropped the short distance to the
|
|
street below, while Tarzan took the girl in his arms and leaped
|
|
down as he had done on so many other occasions in his
|
|
own forest with a burden in his arms. A little cry of alarm
|
|
was startled from the girl's lips, but Tarzan landed in the
|
|
street with but an imperceptible jar, and lowered her in safety
|
|
to her feet.
|
|
|
|
She clung to him for a moment.
|
|
|
|
"How strong m'sieur is, and how active," she cried.
|
|
"EL ADREA, the black lion, himself is not more so."
|
|
|
|
"I should like to meet this EL ADREA of yours," he said.
|
|
"I have heard much about him."
|
|
|
|
"And you come to the DOUAR of my father you shall see
|
|
him," said the girl. "He lives in a spur of the mountains
|
|
north of us, and comes down from his lair at night to rob my
|
|
father's DOUAR. With a single blow of his mighty paw he
|
|
crushes the skull of a bull, and woe betide the belated
|
|
wayfarer who meets EL ADREA abroad at night."
|
|
|
|
Without further mishap they reached the hotel. The sleepy
|
|
landlord objected strenuously to instituting a search for
|
|
Kadour ben Saden until the following morning, but a piece
|
|
of gold put a different aspect on the matter, so that a few
|
|
moments later a servant had started to make the rounds of
|
|
the lesser native hostelries where it might be expected that a
|
|
desert sheik would find congenial associations. Tarzan had
|
|
felt it necessary to find the girl's father that night, for
|
|
fear he might start on his homeward journey too early in the
|
|
morning to be intercepted.
|
|
|
|
They had waited perhaps half an hour when the messenger
|
|
returned with Kadour ben Saden. The old sheik entered
|
|
the room with a questioning expression upon his proud face.
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur has done me the honor to--" he commenced, and
|
|
then his eyes fell upon the girl. With outstretched arms
|
|
he crossed the room to meet her. "My daughter!" he cried.
|
|
"Allah is merciful!" and tears dimmed the martial eyes of
|
|
the old warrior.
|
|
|
|
When the story of her abduction and her final rescue had
|
|
been told to Kadour ben Saden he extended his hand to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"All that is Kadour ben Saden's is thine, my friend, even
|
|
to his life," he said very simply, but Tarzan knew that
|
|
those were no idle words.
|
|
|
|
It was decided that although three of them would have to
|
|
ride after practically no sleep, it would be best to make an
|
|
early start in the morning, and attempt to ride all the
|
|
way to Bou Saada in one day. It would have been
|
|
comparatively easy for the men, but for the girl it
|
|
was sure to be a fatiguing journey.
|
|
|
|
She, however, was the most anxious to undertake it, for
|
|
it seemed to her that she could not quickly enough reach the
|
|
family and friends from whom she had been separated for
|
|
two years.
|
|
|
|
It seemed to Tarzan that he had not closed his eyes before
|
|
he was awakened, and in another hour the party was on its
|
|
way south toward Bou Saada. For a few miles the road was
|
|
good, and they made rapid progress, but suddenly it became
|
|
only a waste of sand, into which the horses sank fetlock
|
|
deep at nearly every step. In addition to Tarzan, Abdul,
|
|
the sheik, and his daughter were four of the wild plainsmen
|
|
of the sheik's tribe who had accompanied him upon the trip
|
|
to Sidi Aissa. Thus, seven guns strong, they entertained little
|
|
fear of attack by day, and if all went well they should reach
|
|
Bou Saada before nightfall.
|
|
|
|
A brisk wind enveloped them in the blowing sand of the
|
|
desert, until Tarzan's lips were parched and cracked. What
|
|
little he could see of the surrounding country was far from
|
|
alluring--a vast expanse of rough country, rolling in little,
|
|
barren hillocks, and tufted here and there with clumps of
|
|
dreary shrub. Far to the south rose the dim lines of the
|
|
Saharan Atlas range. How different, thought Tarzan, from
|
|
the gorgeous Africa of his boyhood!
|
|
|
|
Abdul, always on the alert, looked backward quite as often
|
|
as he did ahead. At the top of each hillock that they mounted
|
|
he would draw in his horse and, turning, scan the country to
|
|
the rear with utmost care. At last his scrutiny was rewarded.
|
|
|
|
"Look!" he cried. "There are six horsemen behind us."
|
|
|
|
"Your friends of last evening, no doubt, monsieur," remarked
|
|
Kadour ben Saden dryly to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"No doubt," replied the ape-man. "I am sorry that my
|
|
society should endanger the safety of your journey. At the
|
|
next village I shall remain and question these gentlemen,
|
|
while you ride on. There is no necessity for my being at Bou
|
|
Saada tonight, and less still why you should not ride in peace."
|
|
|
|
"If you stop we shall stop," said Kadour ben Saden. "Until
|
|
you are safe with your friends, or the enemy has left your
|
|
trail, we shall remain with you. There is nothing more to say."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan nodded his head. He was a man of few words,
|
|
and possibly it was for this reason as much as any that
|
|
Kadour ben Saden had taken to him, for if there be one
|
|
thing that an Arab despises it is a talkative man.
|
|
|
|
All the balance of the day Abdul caught glimpses of the
|
|
horsemen in their rear. They remained always at about the
|
|
same distance. During the occasional halts for rest, and
|
|
at the longer halt at noon, they approached no closer.
|
|
|
|
"They are waiting for darkness," said Kadour ben Saden.
|
|
|
|
And darkness came before they reached Bou Saada. The
|
|
last glimpse that Abdul had of the grim, white-robed figures
|
|
that trailed them, just before dusk made it impossible to
|
|
distinguish them, had made it apparent that they were rapidly
|
|
closing up the distance that intervened between them and
|
|
their intended quarry. He whispered this fact to Tarzan, for
|
|
he did not wish to alarm the girl. The ape-man drew back
|
|
beside him.
|
|
|
|
"You will ride ahead with the others, Abdul," said Tarzan.
|
|
"This is my quarrel. I shall wait at the next convenient
|
|
spot, and interview these fellows."
|
|
|
|
"Then Abdul shall wait at thy side," replied the young
|
|
Arab, nor would any threats or commands move him from
|
|
his decision.
|
|
|
|
"Very well, then," replied Tarzan. "Here is as good a place
|
|
as we could wish. Here are rocks at the top of this hillock.
|
|
We shall remain hidden here and give an account of ourselves
|
|
to these gentlemen when they appear."
|
|
|
|
They drew in their horses and dismounted. The others
|
|
riding ahead were already out of sight in the darkness.
|
|
Beyond them shone the lights of Bou Saada. Tarzan removed
|
|
his rifle from its boot and loosened his revolver in its holster.
|
|
He ordered Abdul to withdraw behind the rocks with the
|
|
horses, so that they should be shielded from the enemies'
|
|
bullets should they fire. The young Arab pretended to do as
|
|
he was bid, but when he had fastened the two animals securely
|
|
to a low shrub he crept back to lie on his belly a few
|
|
paces behind Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man stood erect in the middle of the road, waiting.
|
|
Nor did he have long to wait. The sound of galloping
|
|
horses came suddenly out of the darkness below him, and a
|
|
moment later he discerned the moving blotches of lighter
|
|
color against the solid background of the night.
|
|
|
|
"Halt," he cried, "or we fire!"
|
|
|
|
The white figures came to a sudden stop, and for a moment
|
|
there was silence. Then came the sound of a whispered council,
|
|
and like ghosts the phantom riders dispersed in all directions.
|
|
Again the desert lay still about him, yet it was an ominous
|
|
stillness that foreboded evil.
|
|
|
|
Abdul raised himself to one knee. Tarzan cocked his
|
|
jungle-trained ears, and presently there came to him the
|
|
sound of horses walking quietly through the sand to the
|
|
east of him, to the west, to the north, and to the south.
|
|
They had been surrounded. Then a shot came from the direction
|
|
in which he was looking, a bullet whirred through the air
|
|
above his head, and he fired at the flash of the enemy's gun.
|
|
|
|
Instantly the soundless waste was torn with the quick
|
|
staccato of guns upon every hand. Abdul and Tarzan fired
|
|
only at the flashes--they could not yet see their foemen.
|
|
Presently it became evident that the attackers were circling
|
|
their position, drawing closer and closer in as they began to
|
|
realize the paltry numbers of the party which opposed them.
|
|
|
|
But one came too close, for Tarzan was accustomed to using
|
|
his eyes in the darkness of the jungle night, than which
|
|
there is no more utter darkness this side the grave, and
|
|
with a cry of pain a saddle was emptied.
|
|
|
|
"The odds are evening, Abdul," said Tarzan, with a low laugh.
|
|
|
|
But they were still far too one-sided, and when the five
|
|
remaining horsemen whirled at a signal and charged full
|
|
upon them it looked as if there would be a sudden ending
|
|
of the battle. Both Tarzan and Abdul sprang to the shelter of
|
|
the rocks, that they might keep the enemy in front of them.
|
|
There was a mad clatter of galloping hoofs, a volley of shots
|
|
from both sides, and the Arabs withdrew to repeat the
|
|
maneuver; but there were now only four against the two.
|
|
|
|
For a few moments there came no sound from out of
|
|
the surrounding blackness. Tarzan could not tell whether the
|
|
Arabs, satisfied with their losses, had given up the fight, or
|
|
were waiting farther along the road to waylay them as they
|
|
proceeded on toward Bou Saada. But he was not left long in
|
|
doubt, for now all from one direction came the sound of a
|
|
new charge. But scarcely had the first gun spoken ere a
|
|
dozen shots rang out behind the Arabs. There came the wild
|
|
shouts of a new party to the controversy, and the pounding
|
|
of the feet of many horses from down the road to Bou Saada.
|
|
|
|
The Arabs did not wait to learn the identity of the oncomers.
|
|
With a parting volley as they dashed by the position which
|
|
Tarzan and Abdul were holding, they plunged off along the
|
|
road toward Sidi Aissa. A moment later Kadour ben Saden
|
|
and his men dashed up.
|
|
|
|
The old sheik was much relieved to find that neither
|
|
Tarzan nor Abdul had received a scratch. Not even had their
|
|
horses been wounded. They sought out the two men who had
|
|
fallen before Tarzan's shots, and, finding that both were
|
|
dead, left them where they lay.
|
|
|
|
"Why did you not tell me that you contemplated ambushing
|
|
those fellows?" asked the sheik in a hurt tone. "We might
|
|
have had them all if the seven of us had stopped to meet them."
|
|
|
|
"Then it would have been useless to stop at all," replied
|
|
Tarzan, "for had we simply ridden on toward Bou Saada they
|
|
would have been upon us presently, and all could have been
|
|
engaged. It was to prevent the transfer of my own quarrel
|
|
to another's shoulders that Abdul and I stopped off to
|
|
question them. Then there is your daughter--I could not be the
|
|
cause of exposing her needlessly to the marksmanship of six men."
|
|
|
|
Kadour ben Saden shrugged his shoulders. He did not
|
|
relish having been cheated out of a fight.
|
|
|
|
The little battle so close to Bou Saada had drawn out a
|
|
company of soldiers. Tarzan and his party met them just
|
|
outside the town. The officer in charge halted them to learn
|
|
the significance of the shots.
|
|
|
|
"A handful of marauders," replied Kadour ben Saden.
|
|
"They attacked two of our number who had dropped behind,
|
|
but when we returned to them the fellows soon dispersed.
|
|
They left two dead. None of my party was injured."
|
|
|
|
This seemed to satisfy the officer, and after taking the
|
|
names of the party he marched his men on toward the scene
|
|
of the skirmish to bring back the dead men for purposes of
|
|
identification, if possible.
|
|
|
|
Two days later, Kadour ben Saden, with his daughter and
|
|
followers, rode south through the pass below Bou Saada,
|
|
bound for their home in the far wilderness. The sheik had
|
|
urged Tarzan to accompany him, and the girl had added her
|
|
entreaties to those of her father; but, though he could not
|
|
explain it to them, Tarzan's duties loomed particularly large
|
|
after the happenings of the past few days, so that he could not
|
|
think of leaving his post for an instant. But he promised to
|
|
come later if it lay within his power to do so, and they had
|
|
to content themselves with that assurance.
|
|
|
|
During these two days Tarzan had spent practically all his
|
|
time with Kadour ben Saden and his daughter. He was keenly
|
|
interested in this race of stern and dignified warriors, and
|
|
embraced the opportunity which their friendship offered to
|
|
learn what he could of their lives and customs. He even
|
|
commenced to acquire the rudiments of their language under the
|
|
pleasant tutorage of the brown-eyed girl. It was with real
|
|
regret that he saw them depart, and he sat his horse at the
|
|
opening to the pass, as far as which he had accompanied
|
|
them, gazing after the little party as long as he could catch a
|
|
glimpse of them.
|
|
|
|
Here were people after his own heart! Their wild, rough
|
|
lives, filled with danger and hardship, appealed to this half-
|
|
savage man as nothing had appealed to him in the midst of the
|
|
effeminate civilization of the great cities he had visited. Here
|
|
was a life that excelled even that of the jungle, for here he
|
|
might have the society of men--real men whom he could honor and
|
|
respect, and yet be near to the wild nature that he loved.
|
|
In his head revolved an idea that when he had completed his
|
|
mission he would resign and return to live for the remainder
|
|
of his life with the tribe of Kadour ben Saden.
|
|
|
|
Then he turned his horse's head and rode slowly back to Bou Saada.
|
|
|
|
The front of the Hotel du Petit Sahara, where Tarzan
|
|
stopped in Bou Saada, is taken up with the bar, two dining-
|
|
rooms, and the kitchens. Both of the dining-rooms open
|
|
directly off the bar, and one of them is reserved for the use
|
|
of the officers of the garrison. As you stand in the barroom
|
|
you may look into either of the dining-rooms if you wish.
|
|
|
|
It was to the bar that Tarzan repaired after speeding
|
|
Kadour ben Saden and his party on their way. It was yet
|
|
early in the morning, for Kadour ben Saden had elected to
|
|
ride far that day, so that it happened that when Tarzan
|
|
returned there were guests still at breakfast.
|
|
|
|
As his casual glance wandered into the officers' dining-
|
|
room, Tarzan saw something which brought a look of interest
|
|
to his eyes. Lieutenant Gernois was sitting there, and as
|
|
Tarzan looked a white-robed Arab approached and, bending,
|
|
whispered a few words into the lieutenant's ear. Then he
|
|
passed on out of the building through another door.
|
|
|
|
In itself the thing was nothing, but as the man had stooped
|
|
to speak to the officer, Tarzan had caught sight of something
|
|
which the accidental parting of the man's burnoose had
|
|
revealed--he carried his left arm in a sling.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 9
|
|
|
|
|
|
Numa "El Adrea"
|
|
|
|
|
|
On the same day that Kadour ben Saden rode south the
|
|
diligence from the north brought Tarzan a letter from
|
|
D'Arnot which had been forwarded from Sidi-bel-Abbes.
|
|
It opened the old wound that Tarzan would have
|
|
been glad to have forgotten; yet he was not sorry that
|
|
D'Arnot had written, for one at least of his subjects could
|
|
never cease to interest the ape-man. Here is the letter:
|
|
|
|
MY DEAR JEAN:
|
|
|
|
Since last I wrote you I have been across to London on a
|
|
matter of business. I was there but three days. The very first
|
|
day I came upon an old friend of yours--quite unexpectedly--in
|
|
Henrietta Street. Now you never in the world would guess whom.
|
|
None other than Mr. Samuel T. Philander. But it is true.
|
|
I can see your look of incredulity. Nor is this all.
|
|
He insisted that I return to the hotel with him, and there
|
|
I found the others--Professor Archimedes Q. Porter, Miss
|
|
Porter, and that enormous black woman, Miss Porter's maid
|
|
--Esmeralda, you will recall. While I was there Clayton
|
|
came in. They are to be married soon, or rather sooner, for
|
|
I rather suspect that we shall receive announcements almost
|
|
any day. On account of his father's death it is to be a
|
|
very quiet affair--only blood relatives.
|
|
|
|
While I was alone with Mr. Philander the old fellow became
|
|
rather confidential. Said Miss Porter had already postponed
|
|
the wedding on three different occasions. He confided
|
|
that it appeared to him that she was not particularly anxious
|
|
to marry Clayton at all; but this time it seems that it is
|
|
quite likely to go through.
|
|
|
|
Of course they all asked after you, but I respected your
|
|
wishes in the matter of your true origin, and only spoke to
|
|
them of your present affairs.
|
|
|
|
Miss Porter was especially interested in everything I had
|
|
to say about you, and asked many questions. I am afraid I
|
|
took a rather unchivalrous delight in picturing your desire
|
|
and resolve to go back eventually to your native jungle.
|
|
I was sorry afterward, for it did seem to cause her real
|
|
anguish to contemplate the awful dangers to which you wished
|
|
to return. "And yet," she said, "I do not know. There are
|
|
more unhappy fates than the grim and terrible jungle presents
|
|
to Monsieur Tarzan. At least his conscience will be free
|
|
from remorse. And there are moments of quiet and restfulness
|
|
by day, and vistas of exquisite beauty. You may find it
|
|
strange that I should say it, who experienced such terrifying
|
|
experiences in that frightful forest, yet at times I long to
|
|
return, for I cannot but feel that the happiest moments of
|
|
my life were spent there."
|
|
|
|
There was an expression of ineffable sadness on her face
|
|
as she spoke, and I could not but feel that she knew that I
|
|
knew her secret, and that this was her way of transmitting
|
|
to you a last tender message from a heart that might still
|
|
enshrine your memory, though its possessor belonged to another.
|
|
|
|
Clayton appeared nervous and ill at ease while you were
|
|
the subject of conversation. He wore a worried and harassed
|
|
expression. Yet he was very kindly in his expressions of
|
|
interest in you. I wonder if he suspects the truth about you?
|
|
|
|
Tennington came in with Clayton. They are great friends,
|
|
you know. He is about to set out upon one of his interminable
|
|
cruises in that yacht of his, and was urging the entire party
|
|
to accompany him. Tried to inveigle me into it, too.
|
|
Is thinking of circumnavigating Africa this time. I told him
|
|
that his precious toy would take him and some of his friends
|
|
to the bottom of the ocean one of these days if he didn't get
|
|
it out of his head that she was a liner or a battleship.
|
|
|
|
I returned to Paris day before yesterday, and yesterday I
|
|
met the Count and Countess de Coude at the races. They
|
|
inquired after you. De Coude really seems quite fond of you.
|
|
Doesn't appear to harbor the least ill will. Olga is as
|
|
beautiful as ever, but a trifle subdued. I imagine that she
|
|
learned a lesson through her acquaintance with you that will
|
|
serve her in good stead during the balance of her life. It is
|
|
fortunate for her, and for De Coude as well, that it was you
|
|
and not another man more sophisticated.
|
|
|
|
Had you really paid court to Olga's heart I am afraid that
|
|
there would have been no hope for either of you.
|
|
|
|
She asked me to tell you that Nikolas had left France.
|
|
She paid him twenty thousand francs to go away, and stay.
|
|
She is congratulating herself that she got rid of him before
|
|
he tried to carry out a threat he recently made her that he
|
|
should kill you at the first opportunity. She said that she
|
|
should hate to think that her brother's blood was on your
|
|
hands, for she is very fond of you, and made no bones in
|
|
saying so before the count. It never for a moment seemed to
|
|
occur to her that there might be any possibility of any other
|
|
outcome of a meeting between you and Nikolas. The count
|
|
quite agreed with her in that. He added that it would take a
|
|
regiment of Rokoffs to kill you. He has a most healthy
|
|
respect for your prowess.
|
|
|
|
Have been ordered back to my ship. She sails from Havre in
|
|
two days under sealed orders. If you will address me in her
|
|
care, the letters will find me eventually. I shall write you
|
|
as soon as another opportunity presents.
|
|
Your sincere friend,
|
|
PAUL D'ARNOT.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"I fear," mused Tarzan, half aloud, "that Olga has thrown
|
|
away her twenty thousand francs."
|
|
|
|
He read over that part of D'Arnot's letter several times
|
|
in which he had quoted from his conversation with Jane
|
|
Porter. Tarzan derived a rather pathetic happiness from
|
|
it, but it was better than no happiness at all.
|
|
|
|
The following three weeks were quite uneventful. On
|
|
several occasions Tarzan saw the mysterious Arab, and once
|
|
again he had been exchanging words with Lieutenant Gernois;
|
|
but no amount of espionage or shadowing by Tarzan revealed
|
|
the Arab's lodgings, the location of which Tarzan was
|
|
anxious to ascertain.
|
|
|
|
Gernois, never cordial, had kept more than ever aloof
|
|
from Tarzan since the episode in the dining-room of the
|
|
hotel at Aumale. His attitude on the few occasions that
|
|
they had been thrown together had been distinctly hostile.
|
|
|
|
That he might keep up the appearance of the character
|
|
he was playing, Tarzan spent considerable time hunting in
|
|
the vicinity of Bou Saada. He would spend entire days in
|
|
the foothills, ostensibly searching for gazelle, but on the
|
|
few occasions that he came close enough to any of the
|
|
beautiful little animals to harm them he invariably allowed
|
|
them to escape without so much as taking his rifle from its
|
|
boot. The ape-man could see no sport in slaughtering the
|
|
most harmless and defenseless of God's creatures for the
|
|
mere pleasure of killing.
|
|
|
|
In fact, Tarzan had never killed for "pleasure," nor to
|
|
him was there pleasure in killing. It was the joy of righteous
|
|
battle that he loved--the ecstasy of victory. And the keen
|
|
and successful hunt for food in which he pitted his skill
|
|
and craftiness against the skill and craftiness of another;
|
|
but to come out of a town filled with food to shoot down a
|
|
soft-eyed, pretty gazelle--ah, that was crueller than the
|
|
deliberate and cold-blooded murder of a fellow man.
|
|
Tarzan would have none of it, and so he hunted alone
|
|
that none might discover the sham that he was practicing.
|
|
|
|
And once, probably because of the fact that he rode alone,
|
|
he was like to have lost his life. He was riding slowly
|
|
through a little ravine when a shot sounded close behind
|
|
him, and a bullet passed through the cork helmet he wore.
|
|
Although he turned at once and galloped rapidly to the top
|
|
of the ravine, there was no sign of any enemy, nor did he
|
|
see aught of another human being until he reached Bou Saada.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he soliloquized, in recalling the occurrence,
|
|
"Olga has indeed thrown away her twenty thousand francs."
|
|
|
|
That night he was Captain Gerard's guest at a little dinner.
|
|
|
|
"Your hunting has not been very fortunate?" questioned
|
|
the officer.
|
|
|
|
"No," replied Tarzan; "the game hereabout is timid, nor do
|
|
I care particularly about hunting game birds or antelope.
|
|
I think I shall move on farther south, and have a try at
|
|
some of your Algerian lions."
|
|
|
|
"Good!" exclaimed the captain. "We are marching toward Djelfa
|
|
on the morrow. You shall have company that far at least.
|
|
Lieutenant Gernois and I, with a hundred men, are ordered
|
|
south to patrol a district in which the marauders are giving
|
|
considerable trouble. Possibly we may have the pleasure
|
|
of hunting the lion together--what say you?"
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was more than pleased, nor did he hesitate to say so;
|
|
but the captain would have been astonished had he known
|
|
the real reason of Tarzan's pleasure. Gernois was sitting
|
|
opposite the ape-man. He did not seem so pleased with his
|
|
captain's invitation.
|
|
|
|
"You will find lion hunting more exciting than gazelle
|
|
shooting," remarked Captain Gerard, "and more dangerous."
|
|
|
|
"Even gazelle shooting has its dangers," replied Tarzan.
|
|
"Especially when one goes alone. I found it so today.
|
|
I also found that while the gazelle is the most timid
|
|
of animals, it is not the most cowardly."
|
|
|
|
He let his glance rest only casually upon Gernois after
|
|
he had spoken, for he did not wish the man to know that he
|
|
was under suspicion, or surveillance, no matter what he
|
|
might think. The effect of his remark upon him, however,
|
|
might tend to prove his connection with, or knowledge of,
|
|
certain recent happenings. Tarzan saw a dull red creep up
|
|
from beneath Gernois' collar. He was satisfied, and quickly
|
|
changed the subject.
|
|
|
|
When the column rode south from Bou Saada the next
|
|
morning there were half a dozen Arabs bringing up the rear.
|
|
|
|
"They are not attached to the command," replied Gerard
|
|
in response to Tarzan's query. "They merely accompany us
|
|
on the road for companionship."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had learned enough about Arab character since
|
|
he had been in Algeria to know that this was no real motive,
|
|
for the Arab is never overfond of the companionship of
|
|
strangers, and especially of French soldiers. So his
|
|
suspicions were aroused, and he decided to keep a sharp eye
|
|
on the little party that trailed behind the column at a distance
|
|
of about a quarter of a mile. But they did not come close
|
|
enough even during the halts to enable him to obtain a
|
|
close scrutiny of them.
|
|
|
|
He had long been convinced that there were hired assassins
|
|
on his trail, nor was he in great doubt but that Rokoff was
|
|
at the bottom of the plot. Whether it was to be revenge for
|
|
the several occasions in the past that Tarzan had defeated the
|
|
Russian's purposes and humiliated him, or was in some way
|
|
connected with his mission in the Gernois affair, he could not
|
|
determine. If the latter, and it seemed probable since the
|
|
evidence he had had that Gernois suspected him, then he
|
|
had two rather powerful enemies to contend with, for there
|
|
would be many opportunities in the wilds of Algeria, for
|
|
which they were bound, to dispatch a suspected enemy
|
|
quietly and without attracting suspicion.
|
|
|
|
After camping at Djelfa for two days the column moved to the
|
|
southwest, from whence word had come that the marauders were
|
|
operating against the tribes whose DOUARS were situated
|
|
at the foot of the mountains.
|
|
|
|
The little band of Arabs who had accompanied them from
|
|
Bou Saada had disappeared suddenly the very night that
|
|
orders had been given to prepare for the morrow's march
|
|
from Djelfa. Tarzan made casual inquiries among the men,
|
|
but none could tell him why they had left, or in what
|
|
direction they had gone. He did not like the looks of it,
|
|
especially in view of the fact that he had seen Gernois in
|
|
conversation with one of them some half hour after Captain
|
|
Gerard had issued his instructions relative to the new move.
|
|
Only Gernois and Tarzan knew the direction of the proposed march.
|
|
All the soldiers knew was that they were to be prepared to
|
|
break camp early the next morning. Tarzan wondered if
|
|
Gernois could have revealed their destination to the Arabs.
|
|
|
|
Late that afternoon they went into camp at a little oasis in
|
|
which was the DOUAR of a sheik whose flocks were being
|
|
stolen, and whose herdsmen were being killed. The Arabs
|
|
came out of their goatskin tents, and surrounded the soldiers,
|
|
asking many questions in the native tongue, for the soldiers
|
|
were themselves natives. Tarzan, who, by this time, with the
|
|
assistance of Abdul, had picked up quite a smattering of
|
|
Arab, questioned one of the younger men who had accompanied
|
|
the sheik while the latter paid his respects to Captain Gerard.
|
|
|
|
No, he had seen no party of six horsemen riding from
|
|
the direction of Djelfa. There were other oases scattered
|
|
about--possibly they had been journeying to one of these.
|
|
Then there were the marauders in the mountains above
|
|
--they often rode north to Bou Saada in small parties, and
|
|
even as far as Aumale and Bouira. It might indeed have been
|
|
a few marauders returning to the band from a pleasure trip
|
|
to one of these cities.
|
|
|
|
Early the next morning Captain Gerard split his command
|
|
in two, giving Lieutenant Gernois command of one party,
|
|
while he headed the other. They were to scour the mountains
|
|
upon opposite sides of the plain.
|
|
|
|
"And with which detachment will Monsieur Tarzan ride?"
|
|
asked the captain. "Or maybe it is that monsieur does not
|
|
care to hunt marauders?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I shall be delighted to go," Tarzan hastened to explain.
|
|
He was wondering what excuse he could make to accompany Gernois.
|
|
His embarrassment was short-lived, and was relieved from a most
|
|
unexpected source. It was Gernois himself who spoke.
|
|
|
|
"If my captain will forego the pleasure of Monsieur Tarzan's
|
|
company for this once, I shall esteem it an honor indeed
|
|
to have monsieur ride with me today," he said, nor was his
|
|
tone lacking in cordiality. In fact, Tarzan imagined
|
|
that he had overdone it a trifle, but, even so, he was both
|
|
astounded and pleased, hastening to express his delight at
|
|
the arrangement.
|
|
|
|
And so it was that Lieutenant Gernois and Tarzan rode
|
|
off side by side at the head of the little detachment of
|
|
SPAHIS. Gernois' cordiality was short-lived. No soone
|
|
had they ridden out of sight of Captain Gerard and his men
|
|
than he lapsed once more into his accustomed taciturnity.
|
|
As they advanced the ground became rougher. Steadily it ascended
|
|
toward the mountains, into which they filed through a narrow
|
|
canon close to noon. By the side of a little rivulet
|
|
Gernois called the midday halt. Here the men prepared and
|
|
ate their frugal meal, and refilled their canteens.
|
|
|
|
After an hour's rest they advanced again along the canon,
|
|
until they presently came to a little valley, from which
|
|
several rocky gorges diverged. Here they halted, while
|
|
Gernois minutely examined the surrounding heights from
|
|
the center of the depression.
|
|
|
|
"We shall separate here," he said, "several riding into each
|
|
of these gorges," and then he commenced to detail his various
|
|
squads and issue instructions to the non-commissioned officers
|
|
who were to command them. When he had done he turned to Tarzan.
|
|
"Monsieur will be so good as to remain here until we return."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan demurred, but the officer cut him short. "There may
|
|
be fighting for one of these sections," he said, "and
|
|
troops cannot be embarrassed by civilian noncombatants
|
|
during action."
|
|
|
|
"But, my dear lieutenant," expostulated Tarzan, "I am
|
|
most ready and willing to place myself under command
|
|
of yourself or any of your sergeants or corporals, and to
|
|
fight in the ranks as they direct. It is what I came for."
|
|
|
|
"I should be glad to think so," retorted Gernois, with a
|
|
sneer he made no attempt to disguise. Then shortly:
|
|
"You are under my orders, and they are that you remain here
|
|
until we return. Let that end the matter," and he turned and
|
|
spurred away at the head of his men. A moment later Tarzan
|
|
found himself alone in the midst of a desolate mountain fastness.
|
|
|
|
The sun was hot, so he sought the shelter of a nearby
|
|
tree, where he tethered his horse, and sat down upon the
|
|
ground to smoke. Inwardly he swore at Gernois for the trick
|
|
he had played upon him. A mean little revenge, thought
|
|
Tarzan, and then suddenly it occurred to him that the man
|
|
would not be such a fool as to antagonize him through a
|
|
trivial annoyance of so petty a description. There must be
|
|
something deeper than this behind it. With the thought he
|
|
arose and removed his rifle from its boot. He looked to its
|
|
loads and saw that the magazine was full. Then he inspected
|
|
his revolver. After this preliminary precaution he scanned the
|
|
surrounding heights and the mouths of the several gorges
|
|
--he was determined that he should not be caught napping.
|
|
|
|
The sun sank lower and lower, yet there was no sign of
|
|
returning SPAHIS. At last the valley was submerged in
|
|
shadow Tarzan was too proud to go back to camp until he had
|
|
given the detachment ample time to return to the valley,
|
|
which he thought was to have been their rendezvous.
|
|
With the closing in of night he felt safer from attack, for
|
|
he was at home in the dark. He knew that none might approach
|
|
him so cautiously as to elude those alert and sensitive
|
|
ears of his; then there were his eyes, too, for he could
|
|
see well at night; and his nose, if they came toward him
|
|
from up-wind, would apprise him of the approach of an enemy
|
|
while they were still a great way off.
|
|
|
|
So he felt that he was in little danger, and thus lulled
|
|
to a sense of security he fell asleep, with his back against
|
|
the tree.
|
|
|
|
He must have slept for several hours, for when he was
|
|
suddenly awakened by the frightened snorting and plunging
|
|
of his horse the moon was shining full upon the little valley,
|
|
and there, not ten paces before him, stood the grim cause of
|
|
the terror of his mount.
|
|
|
|
Superb, majestic, his graceful tail extended and quivering,
|
|
and his two eyes of fire riveted full upon his prey, stood
|
|
Numa EL ADREA, the black lion. A little thrill of joy
|
|
tingled through Tarzan's nerves. It was like meeting an old
|
|
friend after years of separation. For a moment he sat rigid to
|
|
enjoy the magnificent spectacle of this lord of the wilderness.
|
|
|
|
But now Numa was crouching for the spring. Very slowly
|
|
Tarzan raised his gun to his shoulder. He had never killed a
|
|
large animal with a gun in all his life--heretofore he had
|
|
depended upon his spear, his poisoned arrows, his rope, his
|
|
knife, or his bare hands. Instinctively he wished that he had
|
|
his arrows and his knife--he would have felt surer with them.
|
|
|
|
Numa was lying quite flat upon the ground now, presenting
|
|
only his head. Tarzan would have preferred to fire a little
|
|
from one side, for he knew what terrific damage the lion
|
|
could do if he lived two minutes, or even a minute after he
|
|
was hit. The horse stood trembling in terror at Tarzan's back.
|
|
The ape-man took a cautious step to one side--Numa but followed
|
|
him with his eyes. Another step he took, and then another.
|
|
Numa had not moved. Now he could aim at a point between
|
|
the eye and the ear.
|
|
|
|
His finger tightened upon the trigger, and as he fired
|
|
Numa sprang. At the same instant the terrified horse
|
|
made a last frantic effort to escape--the tether parted,
|
|
and he went careening down the canon toward the desert.
|
|
|
|
No ordinary man could have escaped those frightful claws
|
|
when Numa sprang from so short a distance, but Tarzan was
|
|
no ordinary man. From earliest childhood his muscles had
|
|
been trained by the fierce exigencies of his existence to act
|
|
with the rapidity of thought. As quick as was EL ADREA,
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes was quicker, and so the great beast
|
|
crashed against a tree where he had expected to feel the soft
|
|
flesh of man, while Tarzan, a couple of paces to the right,
|
|
pumped another bullet into him that brought him clawing
|
|
and roaring to his side.
|
|
|
|
Twice more Tarzan fired in quick succession, and then
|
|
EL ADREA lay still and roared no more. It was no longer
|
|
Monsieur Jean Tarzan; it was Tarzan of the Apes that put a
|
|
savage foot upon the body of his savage kill, and, raising
|
|
his face to the full moon, lifted his mighty voice in the weird
|
|
and terrible challenge of his kind--a bull ape had made his kill.
|
|
And the wild things in the wild mountains stopped in their
|
|
hunting, and trembled at this new and awful voice,
|
|
while down in the desert the children of the wilderness came
|
|
out of their goatskin tents and looked toward the mountains,
|
|
wondering what new and savage scourge had come to devastate
|
|
their flocks.
|
|
|
|
A half mile from the valley in which Tarzan stood, a score
|
|
of white-robed figures, bearing long, wicked-looking guns,
|
|
halted at the sound, and looked at one another with
|
|
questioning eyes. But presently, as it was not repeated,
|
|
they took up their silent, stealthy way toward the valley.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was now confident that Gernois had no intention
|
|
of returning for him, but he could not fathom the object
|
|
that had prompted the officer to desert him, yet leave him
|
|
free to return to camp. His horse gone, he decided that it
|
|
would be foolish to remain longer in the mountains, so he
|
|
set out toward the desert.
|
|
|
|
He had scarcely entered the confines of the canon when
|
|
the first of the white-robed figures emerged into the valley
|
|
upon the opposite side. For a moment they scanned the little
|
|
depression from behind sheltering bowlders, but when they
|
|
had satisfied themselves that it was empty they advanced
|
|
across it. Beneath the tree at one side they came upon the
|
|
body of EL ADREA. With muttered exclamations they crowded
|
|
about it. Then, a moment later, they hurried down the canon
|
|
which Tarzan was threading a brief distance in advance of them.
|
|
They moved cautiously and in silence, taking advantage of shelter,
|
|
as men do who are stalking man.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 10
|
|
|
|
|
|
Through the Valley of the Shadow
|
|
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan walked down the wild canon beneath the brilliant
|
|
African moon the call of the jungle was strong upon him.
|
|
The solitude and the savage freedom filled his heart with
|
|
life and buoyancy. Again he was Tarzan of the Apes--every
|
|
sense alert against the chance of surprise by some jungle
|
|
enemy--yet treading lightly and with head erect, in proud
|
|
consciousness of his might.
|
|
|
|
The nocturnal sounds of the mountains were new to him,
|
|
yet they fell upon his ears like the soft voice of a half-
|
|
forgotten love. Many he intuitively sensed--ah, there was one
|
|
that was familiar indeed; the distant coughing of Sheeta, the
|
|
leopard; but there was a strange note in the final wail which
|
|
made him doubt. It was a panther he heard.
|
|
|
|
Presently a new sound--a soft, stealthy sound--obtruded
|
|
itself among the others. No human ears other than the ape-
|
|
man's would have detected it. At first he did not translate it,
|
|
but finally he realized that it came from the bare feet of a
|
|
number of human beings. They were behind him, and they
|
|
were coming toward him quietly. He was being stalked.
|
|
|
|
In a flash he knew why he had been left in that little
|
|
valley by Gernois; but there had been a hitch in the
|
|
arrangements--the men had come too late. Closer and closer came
|
|
the footsteps. Tarzan halted and faced them, his rifle ready in
|
|
his hand. Now he caught a fleeting glimpse of a white burnoose.
|
|
He called aloud in French, asking what they would of him.
|
|
His reply was the flash of a long gun, and with the sound of
|
|
the shot Tarzan of the Apes plunged forward upon his face.
|
|
|
|
The Arabs did not rush out immediately; instead, they
|
|
waited to be sure that their victim did not rise. Then they
|
|
came rapidly from their concealment, and bent over him.
|
|
It was soon apparent that he was not dead. One of the men put
|
|
the muzzle of his gun to the back of Tarzan's head to finish
|
|
him, but another waved him aside. "If we bring him alive
|
|
the reward is to be greater," explained the latter.
|
|
So they bound his hands and feet, and, picking him up,
|
|
placed him on the shoulders of four of their number.
|
|
Then the march was resumed toward the desert. When they had
|
|
come out of the mountains they turned toward the south, and
|
|
about daylight came to the spot where their horses stood
|
|
in care of two of their number.
|
|
|
|
From here on their progress was more rapid. Tarzan, who
|
|
had regained consciousness, was tied to a spare horse, which
|
|
they evidently had brought for the purpose. His wound was but
|
|
a slight scratch, which had furrowed the flesh across his temple.
|
|
It had stopped bleeding, but the dried and clotted
|
|
blood smeared his face and clothing. He had said no word
|
|
since he had fallen into the hands of these Arabs, nor had
|
|
they addressed him other than to issue a few brief commands
|
|
to him when the horses had been reached.
|
|
|
|
For six hours they rode rapidly across the burning desert,
|
|
avoiding the oases near which their way led. About noon
|
|
they came to a DOUAR of about twenty tents. Here they
|
|
halted, and as one of the Arabs was releasing the alfa-grass
|
|
ropes which bound him to his mount they were surrounded
|
|
by a mob of men, women, and children. Many of the tribe,
|
|
and more especially the women, appeared to take delight in
|
|
heaping insults upon the prisoner, and some had even gone
|
|
so far as to throw stones at him and strike him with
|
|
sticks, when an old sheik appeared and drove them away.
|
|
|
|
"Ali-ben-Ahmed tells me," he said, "that this man sat alone
|
|
in the mountains and slew EL ADREA. What the business of
|
|
the stranger who sent us after him may be, I know not, and what
|
|
he may do with this man when we turn him over to him, I
|
|
care not; but the prisoner is a brave man, and while he is in
|
|
our hands he shall be treated with the respect that be due
|
|
one who hunts THE LORD WITH THE LARGE HEAD alone and by
|
|
night--and slays him."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had heard of the respect in which Arabs held a
|
|
lion-killer, and he was not sorry that chance had played into
|
|
his hands thus favorably to relieve him of the petty tortures
|
|
of the tribe. Shortly after this he was taken to a goat-
|
|
skin tent upon the upper side of the DOUAR. There he was
|
|
fed, and then, securely bound, was left lying on a piece of
|
|
native carpet, alone in the tent.
|
|
|
|
He could see a guard sitting before the door of his frail
|
|
prison, but when he attempted to force the stout bonds that
|
|
held him he realized that any extra precaution on the part
|
|
of his captors was quite unnecessary; not even his giant
|
|
muscles could part those numerous strands.
|
|
|
|
Just before dusk several men approached the tent where
|
|
he lay, and entered it. All were in Arab dress, but presently
|
|
one of the number advanced to Tarzan's side, and as he let
|
|
the folds of cloth that had hidden the lower half of his face
|
|
fall away the ape-man saw the malevolent features of
|
|
Nikolas Rokoff. There was a nasty smile on the bearded lips.
|
|
"Ah, Monsieur Tarzan," he said, "this is indeed a pleasure.
|
|
But why do you not rise and greet your guest?" Then, with
|
|
an ugly oath, "Get up, you dog!" and, drawing back his
|
|
booted foot, he kicked Tarzan heavily in the side. "And here
|
|
is another, and another, and another," he continued, as he
|
|
kicked Tarzan about the face and side. "One for each of the
|
|
injuries you have done me."
|
|
|
|
The ape-man made no reply--he did not even deign to look
|
|
upon the Russian again after the first glance of recognition.
|
|
Finally the sheik, who had been standing a mute and frowning
|
|
witness of the cowardly attack, intervened.
|
|
|
|
"Stop!" he commanded. "Kill him if you will, but I will
|
|
see no brave man subjected to such indignities in my presence.
|
|
I have half a mind to turn him loose, that I may see how
|
|
long you would kick him then."
|
|
|
|
This threat put a sudden end to Rokoff's brutality, for he
|
|
had no craving to see Tarzan loosed from his bonds while
|
|
he was within reach of those powerful hands.
|
|
|
|
"Very well," he replied to the Arab; "I shall kill him presently."
|
|
|
|
"Not within the precincts of my DOUAR," returned the
|
|
sheik. "When he leaves here he leaves alive. What you do
|
|
with him in the desert is none of my concern, but I shall
|
|
not have the blood of a Frenchman on the hands of my tribe
|
|
on account of another man's quarrel--they would send
|
|
soldiers here and kill many of my people, and burn our tents
|
|
and drive away our flocks."
|
|
|
|
"As you say," growled Rokoff. "I'll take him out into the
|
|
desert below the DOUAR, and dispatch him."
|
|
|
|
"You will take him a day's ride from my country," said
|
|
the sheik, firmly, "and some of my children shall follow you
|
|
to see that you do not disobey me--otherwise there may be
|
|
two dead Frenchmen in the desert."
|
|
|
|
Rokoff shrugged. "Then I shall have to wait until the
|
|
morrow--it is already dark."
|
|
|
|
"As you will," said the sheik. "But by an hour after dawn
|
|
you must be gone from my DOUAR. I have little liking for
|
|
unbelievers, and none at all for a coward."
|
|
|
|
Rokoff would have made some kind of retort, but he
|
|
checked himself, for he realized that it would require
|
|
but little excuse for the old man to turn upon him.
|
|
Together they left the tent. At the door Rokoff could not
|
|
resist the temptation to turn and fling a parting taunt at Tarzan.
|
|
"Sleep well, monsieur," he said, "and do not forget to pray well,
|
|
for when you die tomorrow it will be in such agony that you will
|
|
be unable to pray for blaspheming."
|
|
|
|
No one had bothered to bring Tarzan either food or water since
|
|
noon, and consequently he suffered considerably from thirst.
|
|
He wondered if it would be worth while to ask his
|
|
guard for water, but after making two or three requests
|
|
without receiving any response, he decided that it would not.
|
|
|
|
Far up in the mountains he heard a lion roar. How much
|
|
safer one was, he soliloquized, in the haunts of wild beasts
|
|
than in the haunts of men. Never in all his jungle life had he
|
|
been more relentlessly tracked down than in the past few
|
|
months of his experience among civilized men. Never had he
|
|
been any nearer death.
|
|
|
|
Again the lion roared. It sounded a little nearer. Tarzan felt
|
|
the old, wild impulse to reply with the challenge of his kind.
|
|
His kind? He had almost forgotten that he was a man and not an ape.
|
|
He tugged at his bonds. God, if he could but get them near
|
|
those strong teeth of his. He felt a wild wave of madness sweep
|
|
over him as his efforts to regain his liberty met with failure.
|
|
|
|
Numa was roaring almost continually now. It was quite
|
|
evident that he was coming down into the desert to hunt.
|
|
It was the roar of a hungry lion. Tarzan envied him, for he
|
|
was free. No one would tie him with ropes and slaughter
|
|
him like a sheep. It was that which galled the ape-man.
|
|
He did not fear to die, no--it was the humiliation of defeat
|
|
before death, without even a chance to battle for his life.
|
|
|
|
It must be near midnight, thought Tarzan. He had several
|
|
hours to live. Possibly he would yet find a way to take
|
|
Rokoff with him on the long journey. He could hear the savage
|
|
lord of the desert quite close by now. Possibly he sought
|
|
his meat from among the penned animals within the DOUAR.
|
|
|
|
For a long time silence reigned, then Tarzan's trained ears
|
|
caught the sound of a stealthily moving body. It came
|
|
from the side of the tent nearest the mountains--the back.
|
|
Nearer and nearer it came. He waited, listening intently, for
|
|
it to pass. For a time there was silence without, such a terrible
|
|
silence that Tarzan was surprised that he did not hear the
|
|
breathing of the animal he felt sure must be crouching close
|
|
to the back wall of his tent.
|
|
|
|
There! It is moving again. Closer it creeps. Tarzan turns his
|
|
head in the direction of the sound. It is very dark within the tent.
|
|
Slowly the back rises from the ground, forced up by the head and
|
|
shoulders of a body that looks all black in the semi-darkness.
|
|
Beyond is a faint glimpse of the dimly starlit desert.
|
|
A grim smile plays about Tarzan's lips. At least Rokoff will
|
|
be cheated. How mad he will be! And death will be more
|
|
merciful than he could have hoped for at the hands of the Russian.
|
|
|
|
Now the back of the tent drops into place, and all is darkness
|
|
again--whatever it is is inside the tent with him. He hears
|
|
it creeping close to him--now it is beside him. He closes
|
|
his eyes and waits for the mighty paw. Upon his upturned
|
|
face falls the gentle touch of a soft hand groping in the dark,
|
|
and then a girl's voice in a scarcely audible whisper
|
|
pronounces his name.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, it is I," he whispers in reply. "But in the name of
|
|
Heaven who are you?"
|
|
|
|
"The Ouled-Nail of Sisi Aissa," came the answer. While she
|
|
spoke Tarzan could feel her working about his bonds.
|
|
Occasionally the cold steel of a knife touched his flesh.
|
|
A moment later he was free.
|
|
|
|
"Come!" she whispered.
|
|
|
|
On hands and knees he followed her out of the tent by the way
|
|
she had come. She continued crawling thus flat to the ground
|
|
until she reached a little patch of shrub. There she halted
|
|
until he gained her side. For a moment he looked at her
|
|
before he spoke.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot understand," he said at last. "Why are you here?
|
|
How did you know that I was a prisoner in that tent?
|
|
How does it happen that it is you who have saved me?"
|
|
|
|
She smiled. "I have come a long way tonight," she said,
|
|
"and we have a long way to go before we shall be out of danger.
|
|
Come; I shall tell you all about as we go."
|
|
|
|
Together they rose and set off across the desert in the
|
|
direction of the mountains.
|
|
|
|
"I was not quite sure that I should ever reach you," she
|
|
said at last. "EL ADREA is abroad tonight, and after
|
|
I left the horses I think he winded me and was following--I
|
|
was terribly frightened."
|
|
|
|
"What a brave girl," he said. "And you ran all that risk
|
|
for a stranger--an alien--an unbeliever?"
|
|
|
|
She drew herself up very proudly.
|
|
|
|
"I am the daughter of the Sheik Kabour ben Saden," she answered.
|
|
"I should be no fit daughter of his if I would not risk my
|
|
life to save that of the man who saved mine while he yet
|
|
thought that I was but a common Ouled-Nail."
|
|
|
|
"Nevertheless," he insisted, "you are a very brave girl.
|
|
But how did you know that I was a prisoner back there?"
|
|
|
|
"Achmet-din-Taieb, who is my cousin on my father's side, was
|
|
visiting some friends who belong to the tribe that captured you.
|
|
He was at the DOUAR when you were brought in. When he reached
|
|
home he was telling us about the big Frenchman who had been
|
|
captured by Ali-ben-Ahmed for another Frenchman who wished
|
|
to kill him. From the description I knew that it must be you.
|
|
My father was away. I tried to persuade some of the men to
|
|
come and save you, but they would not do it, saying: `Let the
|
|
unbelievers kill one another if they wish. It is none of our
|
|
affair, and if we go and interfere with Ali-ben-Ahmed's plans
|
|
we shall only stir up a fight with our own people.'
|
|
|
|
"So when it was dark I came alone, riding one horse and
|
|
leading another for you. They are tethered not far from here.
|
|
By morning we shall be within my father's DOUAR.
|
|
He should be there himself by now--then let them come and
|
|
try to take Kadour ben Saden's friend."
|
|
|
|
For a few moments they walked on in silence.
|
|
|
|
"We should be near the horses," she said. "It is strange
|
|
that I do not see them here."
|
|
|
|
Then a moment later she stopped, with a little cry of consternation.
|
|
|
|
"They are gone!" she exclaimed. "It is here that I tethered them."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan stooped to examine the ground. He found that a
|
|
large shrub had been torn up by the roots. Then he found
|
|
something else. There was a wry smile on his face as he rose
|
|
and turned toward the girl.
|
|
|
|
"EL ADREA has been here. From the signs, though, I rather
|
|
think that his prey escaped him. With a little start they
|
|
would be safe enough from him in the open."
|
|
|
|
There was nothing to do but continue on foot. The way
|
|
led them across a low spur of the mountains, but the girl
|
|
knew the trail as well as she did her mother's face.
|
|
They walked in easy, swinging strides, Tarzan keeping a hand's
|
|
breadth behind the girl's shoulder, that she might set the
|
|
pace, and thus be less fatigued. As they walked they talked,
|
|
occasionally stopping to listen for sounds of pursuit.
|
|
|
|
It was now a beautiful, moonlit night. The air was crisp
|
|
and invigorating. Behind them lay the interminable vista of
|
|
the desert, dotted here and there with an occasional oasis.
|
|
The date palms of the little fertile spot they had just left,
|
|
and the circle of goatskin tents, stood out in sharp relief
|
|
against the yellow sand--a phantom paradise upon a phantom sea.
|
|
Before them rose the grim and silent mountains. Tarzan's blood
|
|
leaped in his veins. This was life! He looked down upon the
|
|
girl beside him--a daughter of the desert walking across the
|
|
face of a dead world with a son of the jungle. He smiled at
|
|
the thought. He wished that he had had a sister, and that she
|
|
had been like this girl. What a bully chum she would have been!
|
|
|
|
They had entered the mountains now, and were progressing
|
|
more slowly, for the trail was steeper and very rocky.
|
|
|
|
For a few minutes they had been silent. The girl was
|
|
wondering if they would reach her father's DOUAR before the
|
|
pursuit had overtaken them. Tarzan was wishing that they
|
|
might walk on thus forever. If the girl were only a man
|
|
they might. He longed for a friend who loved the same wild
|
|
life that he loved. He had learned to crave companionship,
|
|
but it was his misfortune that most of the men he knew
|
|
preferred immaculate linen and their clubs to nakedness and
|
|
the jungle. It was, of course, difficult to understand,
|
|
yet it was very evident that they did.
|
|
|
|
The two had just turned a projecting rock around which
|
|
the trail ran when they were brought to a sudden stop.
|
|
There, before them, directly in the middle of the path, stood
|
|
Numa, EL ADREA, the black lion. His green eyes looked very
|
|
wicked, and he bared his teeth, and lashed his bay-black sides
|
|
with his angry tail. Then he roared--the fearsome, terror-
|
|
inspiring roar of the hungry lion which is also angry.
|
|
|
|
"Your knife," said Tarzan to the girl, extending his hand.
|
|
She slipped the hilt of the weapon into his waiting palm.
|
|
As his fingers closed upon it he drew her back and pushed her
|
|
behind him. "Walk back to the desert as rapidly as you can.
|
|
If you hear me call you will know that all is well, and
|
|
you may return."
|
|
|
|
"It is useless," she replied, resignedly. "This is the end."
|
|
|
|
"Do as I tell you," he commanded. "Quickly! He is about
|
|
to charge." The girl dropped back a few paces, where she
|
|
stood watching for the terrible sight that she knew she
|
|
should soon witness.
|
|
|
|
The lion was advancing slowly toward Tarzan, his nose to
|
|
the ground, like a challenging bull, his tail extended now
|
|
and quivering as though with intense excitement.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man stood, half crouching, the long Arab knife
|
|
glistening in the moonlight. Behind him the tense figure of
|
|
the girl, motionless as a carven statue. She leaned slightly
|
|
forward, her lips parted, her eyes wide. Her only conscious
|
|
thought was wonder at the bravery of the man who dared
|
|
face with a puny knife the lord with the large head. A man
|
|
of her own blood would have knelt in prayer and gone down
|
|
beneath those awful fangs without resistance. In either case
|
|
the result would be the same--it was inevitable; but she could
|
|
not repress a thrill of admiration as her eyes rested upon
|
|
the heroic figure before her. Not a tremor in the whole
|
|
giant frame--his attitude as menacing and defiant as that of
|
|
EL ADREA himself.
|
|
|
|
The lion was quite close to him now--but a few paces
|
|
intervened--he crouched, and then, with a deafening
|
|
roar, he sprang.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 11
|
|
|
|
|
|
John Caldwell, London
|
|
|
|
|
|
As Numa EL ADREA launched himself with widespread paws
|
|
and bared fangs he looked to find this puny man as
|
|
easy prey as the score who had gone down beneath
|
|
him in the past. To him man was a clumsy, slow-moving,
|
|
defenseless creature--he had little respect for him.
|
|
|
|
But this time he found that he was pitted against a creature
|
|
as agile and as quick as himself. When his mighty frame
|
|
struck the spot where the man had been he was no longer there.
|
|
|
|
The watching girl was transfixed by astonishment at the
|
|
ease with which the crouching man eluded the great paws.
|
|
And now, O Allah! He had rushed in behind EL ADREA'S
|
|
shoulder even before the beast could turn, and had grasped
|
|
him by the mane. The lion reared upon his hind legs like a
|
|
horse--Tarzan had known that he would do this, and he was ready.
|
|
A giant arm encircled the black-maned throat, and once, twice,
|
|
a dozen times a sharp blade darted in and out of the bay-black
|
|
side behind the left shoulder.
|
|
|
|
Frantic were the leaps of Numa--awful his roars of rage
|
|
and pain; but the giant upon his back could not be dislodged
|
|
or brought within reach of fangs or talons in the brief
|
|
interval of life that remained to the lord with the large head.
|
|
He was quite dead when Tarzan of the Apes released his hold
|
|
and arose. Then the daughter of the desert witnessed a thing
|
|
that terrified her even more than had the presence of EL ADREA.
|
|
The man placed a foot upon the carcass of his kill, and,
|
|
with his handsome face raised toward the full moon, gave voice
|
|
to the most frightful cry that ever had smote upon her ears.
|
|
|
|
With a little cry of fear she shrank away from him--she
|
|
thought that the fearful strain of the encounter had driven
|
|
him mad. As the last note of that fiendish challenge died out
|
|
in the diminishing echoes of the distance the man dropped
|
|
his eyes until they rested upon the girl.
|
|
|
|
Instantly his face was lighted by the kindly smile that was
|
|
ample assurance of his sanity, and the girl breathed freely
|
|
once again, smiling in response.
|
|
|
|
"What manner of man are you?" she asked. "The thing
|
|
you have done is unheard of. Even now I cannot believe
|
|
that it is possible for a lone man armed only with a knife to
|
|
have fought hand to hand with EL ADREA and conquered him,
|
|
unscathed--to have conquered him at all. And that cry--it
|
|
was not human. Why did you do that?"
|
|
|
|
Tarzan flushed. "It is because I forget," he said, "sometimes,
|
|
that I am a civilized man. When I kill it must be that I am
|
|
another creature." He did not try to explain further, for it
|
|
always seemed to him that a woman must look with loathing
|
|
upon one who was yet so nearly a beast.
|
|
|
|
Together they continued their journey. The sun was an
|
|
hour high when they came out into the desert again beyond
|
|
the mountains. Beside a little rivulet they found the girl's
|
|
horses grazing. They had come this far on their way home,
|
|
and with the cause of their fear no longer present had
|
|
stopped to feed.
|
|
|
|
With little trouble Tarzan and the girl caught them, and,
|
|
mounting, rode out into the desert toward the DOUAR of
|
|
Sheik Kadour ben Saden.
|
|
|
|
No sign of pursuit developed, and they came in safety
|
|
about nine o'clock to their destination. The sheik had but
|
|
just returned. He was frantic with grief at the absence of
|
|
his daughter, whom he thought had been again abducted by
|
|
the marauders. With fifty men he was already mounted to go
|
|
in search of her when the two rode into the DOUAR.
|
|
|
|
His joy at the safe return of his daughter was only equaled
|
|
by his gratitude to Tarzan for bringing her safely to him
|
|
through the dangers of the night, and his thankfulness that
|
|
she had been in time to save the man who had once saved her.
|
|
|
|
No honor that Kadour ben Saden could heap upon the ape-
|
|
man in acknowledgment of his esteem and friendship was
|
|
neglected. When the girl had recited the story of the slaying
|
|
of EL ADREA Tarzan was surrounded by a mob of worshiping
|
|
Arabs--it was a sure road to their admiration and respect.
|
|
|
|
The old sheik insisted that Tarzan remain indefinitely as his
|
|
guest. He even wished to adopt him as a member of the tribe,
|
|
and there was for some time a half-formed resolution in the
|
|
ape-man's mind to accept and remain forever with these wild
|
|
people, whom he understood and who seemed to understand him.
|
|
His friendship and liking for the girl were potent
|
|
factors in urging him toward an affirmative decision.
|
|
|
|
Had she been a man, he argued, he should not have hesitated,
|
|
for it would have meant a friend after his own heart,
|
|
with whom he could ride and hunt at will; but as it was they
|
|
would be hedged by the conventionalities that are even more
|
|
strictly observed by the wild nomads of the desert than by
|
|
their more civilized brothers and sisters. And in a little while
|
|
she would be married to one of these swarthy warriors, and
|
|
there would be an end to their friendship. So he decided
|
|
against the sheik's proposal, though he remained a week as
|
|
his guest.
|
|
|
|
When he left, Kadour ben Saden and fifty white-robed
|
|
warriors rode with him to Bou Saada. While they were
|
|
mounting in the DOUAR of Kadour ben Saden the morning
|
|
of their departure, the girl came to bid farewell to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"I have prayed that you would remain with us," she said
|
|
simply, as he leaned from his saddle to clasp her hand in
|
|
farewell, "and now I shall pray that you will return."
|
|
There was an expression of wistfulness in her beautiful
|
|
eyes, and a pathetic droop at the corners of her mouth.
|
|
Tarzan was touched.
|
|
|
|
"Who knows?" and then he turned and rode after the
|
|
departing Arabs.
|
|
|
|
Outside Bou Saada he bade Kadour ben Saden and his men
|
|
good-by, for there were reasons which made him wish to
|
|
make his entry into the town as secret as possible, and when
|
|
he had explained them to the sheik the latter concurred in
|
|
his decision. The Arabs were to enter Bou Saada ahead of
|
|
him, saying nothing as to his presence with them.
|
|
Later Tarzan would come in alone, and go directly to
|
|
an obscure native inn.
|
|
|
|
Thus, making his entrance after dark, as he did, he was not
|
|
seen by any one who knew him, and reached the inn unobserved.
|
|
After dining with Kadour ben Saden as his guest, he went to
|
|
his former hotel by a roundabout way, and, coming in by a
|
|
rear entrance, sought the proprietor, who seemed much
|
|
surprised to see him alive.
|
|
|
|
Yes, there was mail for monsieur; he would fetch it.
|
|
No, he would mention monsieur's return to no one.
|
|
Presently he returned with a packet of letters. One was an
|
|
order from his superior to lay off on his present work,
|
|
and hasten to Cape Town by the first steamer he could get.
|
|
His further instructions would be awaiting him there in the
|
|
hands of another agent whose name and address were given.
|
|
That was all--brief but explicit. Tarzan arranged to leave
|
|
Bou Saada early the next morning. Then he started for the
|
|
garrison to see Captain Gerard, whom the hotel man had told
|
|
him had returned with his detachment the previous day.
|
|
|
|
He found the officer in his quarters. He was filled with
|
|
surprise and pleasure at seeing Tarzan alive and well.
|
|
|
|
"When Lieutenant Gernois returned and reported that he
|
|
had not found you at the spot that you had chosen to remain
|
|
while the detachment was scouting, I was filled with alarm.
|
|
We searched the mountain for days. Then came word that
|
|
you had been killed and eaten by a lion. As proof your
|
|
gun was brought to us. Your horse had returned to camp
|
|
the second day after your disappearance. We could not doubt.
|
|
Lieutenant Gernois was grief-stricken--he took all the
|
|
blame upon himself. It was he who insisted on carrying on
|
|
the search himself. It was he who found the Arab with your gun.
|
|
He will be delighted to know that you are safe."
|
|
|
|
"Doubtless," said Tarzan, with a grim smile.
|
|
|
|
"He is down in the town now, or I should send for him,"
|
|
continued Captain Gerard. "I shall tell him as soon
|
|
as he returns."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan let the officer think that he had been lost, wandering
|
|
finally into the DOUAR of Kadour ben Saden, who had
|
|
escorted him back to Bou Saada. As soon as possible he bade
|
|
the good officer adieu, and hastened back into the town.
|
|
At the native inn he had learned through Kadour ben Saden a
|
|
piece of interesting information. It told of a black-bearded
|
|
white man who went always disguised as an Arab. For a time
|
|
he had nursed a broken wrist. More recently he had been
|
|
away from Bou Saada, but now he was back, and Tarzan
|
|
knew his place of concealment. It was for there he headed.
|
|
|
|
Through narrow, stinking alleys, black as Erebus, he groped,
|
|
and then up a rickety stairway, at the end of which was a
|
|
closed door and a tiny, unglazed window. The window was
|
|
high under the low eaves of the mud building. Tarzan could
|
|
just reach the sill. He raised himself slowly until his
|
|
eyes topped it. The room within was lighted, and at a table
|
|
sat Rokoff and Gernois. Gernois was speaking.
|
|
|
|
"Rokoff, you are a devil!" he was saying. "You have hounded
|
|
me until I have lost the last shred of my honor. You have
|
|
driven me to murder, for the blood of that man Tarzan is on
|
|
my hands. If it were not that that other devil's spawn,
|
|
Paulvitch, still knew my secret, I should kill you here tonight
|
|
with my bare hands."
|
|
|
|
Rokoff laughed. "You would not do that, my dear lieutenant,"
|
|
he said. "The moment I am reported dead by assassination
|
|
that dear Alexis will forward to the minister of war full
|
|
proof of the affair you so ardently long to conceal; and,
|
|
further, will charge you with my murder. Come, be sensible.
|
|
I am your best friend. Have I not protected your honor as
|
|
though it were my own?"
|
|
|
|
Gernois sneered, and spat out an oath.
|
|
|
|
"Just one more little payment," continued Rokoff, "and the
|
|
papers I wish, and you have my word of honor that I shall
|
|
never ask another cent from you, or further information."
|
|
|
|
"And a good reason why," growled Gernois. "What you
|
|
ask will take my last cent, and the only valuable military
|
|
secret I hold. You ought to be paying me for the information,
|
|
instead of taking both it and money, too."
|
|
|
|
"I am paying you by keeping a still tongue in my head,"
|
|
retorted Rokoff. "But let's have done. Will you, or will you not?
|
|
I give you three minutes to decide. If you are not agreeable
|
|
I shall send a note to your commandant tonight that will end
|
|
in the degradation that Dreyfus suffered--the only difference
|
|
being that he did not deserve it."
|
|
|
|
For a moment Gernois sat with bowed head. At length he arose.
|
|
He drew two pieces of paper from his blouse.
|
|
|
|
"Here," he said hopelessly. "I had them ready, for I knew
|
|
that there could be but one outcome." He held them toward
|
|
the Russian.
|
|
|
|
Rokoff's cruel face lighted in malignant gloating. He seized
|
|
the bits of paper.
|
|
|
|
"You have done well, Gernois," he said. "I shall not trouble
|
|
you again--unless you happen to accumulate some more money or
|
|
information," and he grinned.
|
|
|
|
"You never shall again, you dog!" hissed Gernois. "The
|
|
next time I shall kill you. I came near doing it tonight.
|
|
For an hour I sat with these two pieces of paper on my table
|
|
before me ere I came here--beside them lay my loaded revolver.
|
|
I was trying to decide which I should bring. Next time the
|
|
choice shall be easier, for I already have decided. You had
|
|
a close call tonight, Rokoff; do not tempt fate a second time."
|
|
|
|
Then Gernois rose to leave. Tarzan barely had time to drop
|
|
to the landing and shrink back into the shadows on the far
|
|
side of the door. Even then he scarcely hoped to elude
|
|
detection. The landing was very small, and though he flattened
|
|
himself against the wall at its far edge he was scarcely more
|
|
than a foot from the doorway. Almost immediately it
|
|
opened, and Gernois stepped out. Rokoff was behind him.
|
|
Neither spoke. Gernois had taken perhaps three steps down
|
|
the stairway when he halted and half turned, as though to
|
|
retrace his steps.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan knew that discovery would be inevitable. Rokoff still
|
|
stood on the threshold a foot from him, but he was looking in the
|
|
opposite direction, toward Gernois. Then the officer evidently
|
|
reconsidered his decision, and resumed his downward course.
|
|
Tarzan could hear Rokoff's sigh of relief. A moment later
|
|
the Russian went back into the room and closed the door.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan waited until Gernois had had time to get well out
|
|
of hearing, then he pushed open the door and stepped into
|
|
the room. He was on top of Rokoff before the man could rise
|
|
from the chair where he sat scanning the paper Gernois had
|
|
given him. As his eyes turned and fell upon the ape-man's
|
|
face his own went livid.
|
|
|
|
"You!" he gasped.
|
|
|
|
"I," replied Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want?" whispered Rokoff, for the look in the
|
|
ape-man's eyes frightened him. "Have you come to kill me?
|
|
You do not dare. They would guillotine you. You do not
|
|
dare kill me."
|
|
|
|
"I dare kill you, Rokoff," replied Tarzan, "for no one knows
|
|
that you are here or that I am here, and Paulvitch would tell
|
|
them that it was Gernois. I heard you tell Gernois so. But that
|
|
would not influence me, Rokoff. I would not care who knew
|
|
that I had killed you; the pleasure of killing you would more
|
|
than compensate for any punishment they might inflict upon me.
|
|
You are the most despicable cur of a coward, Rokoff, I have ever
|
|
heard of. You should be killed. I should love to kill you,"
|
|
and Tarzan approached closer to the man.
|
|
|
|
Rokoff's nerves were keyed to the breaking point. With a shriek
|
|
he sprang toward an adjoining room, but the ape-man was upon
|
|
his back while his leap was yet but half completed. Iron fingers
|
|
sought his throat--the great coward squealed like a stuck pig,
|
|
until Tarzan had shut off his wind. Then the ape-man dragged
|
|
him to his feet, still choking him. The Russian struggled
|
|
futilely--he was like a babe in the mighty grasp of Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan sat him in a chair, and long before there was danger
|
|
of the man's dying he released his hold upon his throat.
|
|
When the Russian's coughing spell had abated Tarzan spoke
|
|
to him again.
|
|
|
|
"I have given you a taste of the suffering of death," he said.
|
|
"But I shall not kill--this time. I am sparing you solely for
|
|
the sake of a very good woman whose great misfortune it was
|
|
to have been born of the same woman who gave birth to you.
|
|
But I shall spare you only this once on her account.
|
|
Should I ever learn that you have again annoyed her or
|
|
her husband--should you ever annoy me again--should I
|
|
hear that you have returned to France or to any French
|
|
posession, I shall make it my sole business to hunt you down
|
|
and complete the choking I commenced tonight." Then he
|
|
turned to the table, on which the two pieces of paper still lay.
|
|
As he picked them up Rokoff gasped in horror.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan examined both the check and the other. He was
|
|
amazed at the information the latter contained. Rokoff had
|
|
partially read it, but Tarzan knew that no one could remember
|
|
the salient facts and figures it held which made it of real
|
|
value to an enemy of France.
|
|
|
|
"These will interest the chief of staff," he said, as he
|
|
slipped them into his pocket.
|
|
Rokoff groaned. He did not dare curse aloud.
|
|
|
|
The next morning Tarzan rode north on his way to Bouira
|
|
and Algiers. As he had ridden past the hotel Lieutenant
|
|
Gernois was standing on the veranda. As his eyes discovered
|
|
Tarzan he went white as chalk. The ape-man would have been
|
|
glad had the meeting not occurred, but he could not avoid it.
|
|
He saluted the officer as he rode past. Mechanically Gernois
|
|
returned the salute, but those terrible, wide eyes followed
|
|
the horseman, expressionless except for horror. It was as
|
|
though a dead man looked upon a ghost.
|
|
|
|
At Sidi Aissa Tarzan met a French officer with whom he
|
|
had become acquainted on the occasion of his recent
|
|
sojourn in the town.
|
|
|
|
"You left Bou Saada early?" questioned the officer.
|
|
"Then you have not heard about poor Gernois."
|
|
|
|
"He was the last man I saw as I rode away," replied Tarzan.
|
|
"What about him?"
|
|
|
|
"He is dead. He shot himself about eight o'clock this morning."
|
|
|
|
Two days later Tarzan reached Algiers. There he found that
|
|
he would have a two days' wait before he could catch a ship
|
|
bound for Cape Town. He occupied his time in writing out
|
|
a full report of his mission. The secret papers he had taken
|
|
from Rokoff he did not inclose, for he did not dare trust
|
|
them out of his own possession until he had been authorized
|
|
to turn them over to another agent, or himself return to
|
|
Paris with them.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan boarded his ship after what seemed a most tedious
|
|
wait to him, two men watched him from an upper deck.
|
|
Both were fashionably dressed and smooth shaven. The taller
|
|
of the two had sandy hair, but his eyebrows were very black.
|
|
Later in the day they chanced to meet Tarzan on deck,
|
|
but as one hurriedly called his companion's attention to
|
|
something at sea their faces were turned from Tarzan as he
|
|
passed, so that he did not notice their features. In fact,
|
|
he had paid no attention to them at all.
|
|
|
|
Following the instructions of his chief, Tarzan had booked
|
|
his passage under an assumed name--John Caldwell, London.
|
|
He did not understand the necessity of this, and it caused him
|
|
considerable speculation. He wondered what role he was to
|
|
play in Cape Town.
|
|
|
|
"Well," he thought, "thank Heaven that I am rid of Rokoff.
|
|
He was commencing to annoy me. I wonder if I am really
|
|
becoming so civilized that presently I shall develop a set of
|
|
nerves. He would give them to me if any one could, for he
|
|
does not fight fair. One never knows through what new
|
|
agency he is going to strike. It is as though Numa, the lion,
|
|
had induced Tantor, the elephant, and Histah, the snake, to
|
|
join him in attempting to kill me. I would then never have
|
|
known what minute, or by whom, I was to be attacked next.
|
|
But the brutes are more chivalrous than man--they do not
|
|
stoop to cowardly intrigue."
|
|
|
|
At dinner that night Tarzan sat next to a young woman whose
|
|
place was at the captain's left. The officer introduced them.
|
|
|
|
Miss Strong! Where had he heard the name before? It was
|
|
very familiar. And then the girl's mother gave him the
|
|
clew, for when she addressed her daughter she called her Hazel.
|
|
|
|
Hazel Strong! What memories the name inspired. It had
|
|
been a letter to this girl, penned by the fair hand of Jane
|
|
Porter, that had carried to him the first message from the
|
|
woman he loved. How vividly he recalled the night he had
|
|
stolen it from the desk in the cabin of his long-dead father,
|
|
where Jane Porter had sat writing it late into the night,
|
|
while he crouched in the darkness without. How terror-
|
|
stricken she would have been that night had she known that
|
|
the wild jungle beast squatted outside her window, watching
|
|
her every move.
|
|
|
|
And this was Hazel Strong--Jane Porter's best friend!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 12
|
|
|
|
|
|
Ships That Pass
|
|
|
|
|
|
Let us go back a few months to the little, windswept
|
|
platform of a railway station in northern Wisconsin.
|
|
The smoke of forest fires hangs low over the surrounding
|
|
landscape, its acrid fumes smarting the eyes of a little
|
|
party of six who stand waiting the coming of the train
|
|
that is to bear them away toward the south.
|
|
|
|
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter, his hands clasped beneath the tails
|
|
of his long coat, paces back and forth under the ever-watchful
|
|
eye of his faithful secretary, Mr. Samuel T. Philander.
|
|
Twice within the past few minutes he has started absent-mindedly
|
|
across the tracks in the direction of a near-by swamp, only to
|
|
be rescued and dragged back by the tireless Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter, the professor's daughter, is in strained and
|
|
lifeless conversation with William Cecil Clayton and Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes. Within the little waiting room, but a bare
|
|
moment before, a confession of love and a renunciation had
|
|
taken place that had blighted the lives and happiness of two
|
|
of the party, but William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke, was
|
|
not one of them.
|
|
|
|
Behind Miss Porter hovered the motherly Esmeralda. She, too,
|
|
was happy, for was she not returning to her beloved Maryland?
|
|
Already she could see dimly through the fog of smoke the murky
|
|
headlight of the oncoming engine. The men began to gather up
|
|
the hand baggage. Suddenly Clayton exclaimed.
|
|
|
|
"By Jove! I've left my ulster in the waiting-room," and
|
|
hastened off to fetch it.
|
|
|
|
"Good-bye, Jane," said Tarzan, extending his hand.
|
|
"God bless you!"
|
|
|
|
"Good-bye," replied the girl faintly. "Try to forget me--no,
|
|
not that--I could not bear to think that you had forgotten me."
|
|
|
|
"There is no danger of that, dear," he answered. "I wish
|
|
to Heaven that I might forget. It would be so much easier
|
|
than to go through life always remembering what might have been.
|
|
You will be happy, though; I am sure you shall--you must be.
|
|
You may tell the others of my decision to drive my car on
|
|
to New York--I don't feel equal to bidding Clayton good-bye.
|
|
I want always to remember him kindly, but I fear that I am
|
|
too much of a wild beast yet to be trusted too long with
|
|
the man who stands between me and the one person in all
|
|
the world I want."
|
|
|
|
As Clayton stooped to pick up his coat in the waiting
|
|
room his eyes fell on a telegraph blank lying face down
|
|
upon the floor. He stooped to pick it up, thinking it
|
|
might be a message of importance which some one had dropped.
|
|
He glanced at it hastily, and then suddenly he forgot his
|
|
coat, the approaching train--everything but that terrible
|
|
little piece of yellow paper in his hand. He read it twice
|
|
before he could fully grasp the terrific weight of meaning
|
|
that it bore to him.
|
|
|
|
When he had picked it up he had been an English nobleman,
|
|
the proud and wealthy possessor of vast estates--a moment
|
|
later he had read it, and he knew that he was an untitled
|
|
and penniless beggar. It was D'Arnot's cablegram to
|
|
Tarzan, and it read:
|
|
|
|
|
|
Finger prints prove you Greystoke. Congratulations.
|
|
D'ARNOT.
|
|
|
|
|
|
He staggered as though he had received a mortal blow.
|
|
Just then he heard the others calling to him to hurry--the
|
|
train was coming to a stop at the little platform.
|
|
Like a man dazed he gathered up his ulster. He would tell
|
|
them about the cablegram when they were all on board the train.
|
|
Then he ran out upon the platform just as the engine whistled
|
|
twice in the final warning that precedes the first rumbling
|
|
jerk of coupling pins. The others were on board, leaning out
|
|
from the platform of a Pullman, crying to him to hurry.
|
|
Quite five minutes elapsed before they were settled in their
|
|
seats, nor was it until then that Clayton discovered that
|
|
Tarzan was not with them.
|
|
|
|
"Where is Tarzan?" he asked Jane Porter. "In another car?"
|
|
|
|
"No," she replied; "at the last minute he determined to
|
|
drive his machine back to New York. He is anxious to see
|
|
more of America than is possible from a car window. He is
|
|
returning to France, you know."
|
|
|
|
Clayton did not reply. He was trying to find the right words
|
|
to explain to Jane Porter the calamity that had befallen him
|
|
--and her. He wondered just what the effect of his knowledge
|
|
would be on her. Would she still wish to marry him--to be
|
|
plain Mrs. Clayton? Suddenly the awful sacrifice which one
|
|
of them must make loomed large before his imagination.
|
|
Then came the question: Will Tarzan claim his own? The ape-man
|
|
had known the contents of the message before he calmly denied
|
|
knowledge of his parentage! He had admitted that Kala, the ape,
|
|
was his mother! Could it have been for love of Jane Porter?
|
|
|
|
There was no other explanation which seemed reasonable.
|
|
Then, having ignored the evidence of the message, was it not
|
|
reasonable to assume that he meant never to claim his birthright?
|
|
If this were so, what right had he, William Cecil Clayton, to
|
|
thwart the wishes, to balk the self-sacrifice of this
|
|
strange man? If Tarzan of the Apes could do this thing to
|
|
save Jane Porter from unhappiness, why should he, to whose
|
|
care she was intrusting her whole future, do aught to
|
|
jeopardize her interests?
|
|
|
|
And so he reasoned until the first generous impulse to
|
|
proclaim the truth and relinquish his titles and his estates
|
|
to their rightful owner was forgotten beneath the mass of
|
|
sophistries which self-interest had advanced. But during the
|
|
balance of the trip, and for many days thereafter, he was
|
|
moody and distraught. Occasionally the thought obtruded
|
|
itself that possibly at some later day Tarzan would regret
|
|
his magnanimity, and claim his rights.
|
|
|
|
Several days after they reached Baltimore Clayton
|
|
broached the subject of an early marriage to Jane.
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean by early?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
"Within the next few days. I must return to England at
|
|
once--I want you to return with me, dear."
|
|
|
|
"I can't get ready so soon as that," replied Jane. "It will
|
|
take a whole month, at least."
|
|
|
|
She was glad, for she hoped that whatever called him to
|
|
England might still further delay the wedding. She had made
|
|
a bad bargain, but she intended carrying her part loyally
|
|
to the bitter end--if she could manage to secure a temporary
|
|
reprieve, though, she felt that she was warranted in doing so.
|
|
His reply disconcerted her.
|
|
|
|
"Very well, Jane," he said. "I am disappointed, but I shall let
|
|
my trip to England wait a month; then we can go back together."
|
|
|
|
But when the month was drawing to a close she found still
|
|
another excuse upon which to hang a postponement, until at
|
|
last, discouraged and doubting, Clayton was forced to go
|
|
back to England alone.
|
|
|
|
The several letters that passed between them brought Clayton
|
|
no nearer to a consummation of his hopes than he had been
|
|
before, and so it was that he wrote directly to Professor
|
|
Porter, and enlisted his services. The old man had always
|
|
favored the match. He liked Clayton, and, being of an old
|
|
southern family, he put rather an exaggerated value on the
|
|
advantages of a title, which meant little or nothing to
|
|
his daughter.
|
|
|
|
Clayton urged that the professor accept his invitation to
|
|
be his guest in London, an invitation which included the
|
|
professor's entire little family--Mr. Philander, Esmeralda,
|
|
and all. The Englishman argued that once Jane was there, and
|
|
home ties had been broken, she would not so dread the step
|
|
which she had so long hesitated to take.
|
|
|
|
So the evening that he received Clayton's letter Professor Porter
|
|
announced that they would leave for London the following week.
|
|
|
|
But once in London Jane Porter was no more tractable than she
|
|
had been in Baltimore. She found one excuse after another,
|
|
and when, finally, Lord Tennington invited the party to cruise
|
|
around Africa in his yacht, she expressed the greatest delight
|
|
in the idea, but absolutely refused to be married until they
|
|
had returned to London. As the cruise was to consume a year
|
|
at least, for they were to stop for indefinite periods at
|
|
various points of interest, Clayton mentally anathematized
|
|
Tennington for ever suggesting such a ridiculous trip.
|
|
|
|
It was Lord Tennington's plan to cruise through the
|
|
Mediterranean, and the Red Sea to the Indian Ocean, and
|
|
thus down the East Coast, putting in at every port that
|
|
was worth the seeing.
|
|
|
|
And so it happened that on a certain day two vessels passed
|
|
in the Strait of Gibraltar. The smaller, a trim white
|
|
yacht, was speeding toward the east, and on her deck sat a
|
|
young woman who gazed with sad eyes upon a diamondstudded
|
|
locket which she idly fingered. Her thoughts were far
|
|
away, in the dim, leafy fastness of a tropical jungle--and
|
|
her heart was with her thoughts.
|
|
|
|
She wondered if the man who had given her the beautiful
|
|
bauble, that had meant so much more to him than the
|
|
intrinsic value which he had not even known could ever
|
|
have meant to him, was back in his savage forest.
|
|
|
|
And upon the deck of the larger vessel, a passenger steamer
|
|
passing toward the east, the man sat with another young
|
|
woman, and the two idly speculated upon the identity of the
|
|
dainty craft gliding so gracefully through the gentle swell of
|
|
the lazy sea.
|
|
|
|
When the yacht had passed the man resumed the conversation
|
|
that her appearance had broken off.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he said, "I like America very much, and that means,
|
|
of course, that I like Americans, for a country is only what
|
|
its people make it. I met some very delightful people while I
|
|
was there. I recall one family from your own city, Miss
|
|
Strong, whom I liked particularly--Professor Porter and
|
|
his daughter."
|
|
|
|
"Jane Porter!" exclaimed the girl. "Do you mean to tell me
|
|
that you know Jane Porter? Why, she is the very best friend
|
|
I have in the world. We were little children together--we have
|
|
known each other for ages."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed!" he answered, smiling. "You would have difficulty
|
|
in persuading any one of the fact who had seen either of you."
|
|
|
|
"I'll qualify the statement, then," she answered, with a laugh.
|
|
"We have known each other for two ages--hers and mine.
|
|
But seriously we are as dear to each other as sisters,
|
|
and now that I am going to lose her I am almost heartbroken."
|
|
|
|
"Going to lose her?" exclaimed Tarzan. "Why, what do you mean?
|
|
Oh, yes, I understand. You mean that now that she is married
|
|
and living in England, you will seldom if ever see her."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," replied she; "and the saddest part of it all is that
|
|
she is not marrying the man she loves. Oh, it is terrible.
|
|
Marrying from a sense of duty! I think it is perfectly wicked,
|
|
and I told her so. I have felt so strongly on the subject that
|
|
although I was the only person outside of blood relations
|
|
who was to have been asked to the wedding I would not let
|
|
her invite me, for I should not have gone to witness the
|
|
terrible mockery. But Jane Porter is peculiarly positive.
|
|
She has convinced herself that she is doing the only honorable
|
|
thing that she can do, and nothing in the world will ever
|
|
prevent her from marrying Lord Greystoke except Greystoke
|
|
himself, or death."
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry for her," said Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"And I am sorry for the man she loves," said the girl, "for
|
|
he loves her. I never met him, but from what Jane tells me
|
|
he must be a very wonderful person. It seems that he was
|
|
born in an African jungle, and brought up by fierce,
|
|
anthropoid apes. He had never seen a white man or woman
|
|
until Professor Porter and his party were marooned on the
|
|
coast right at the threshold of his tiny cabin. He saved them
|
|
from all manner of terrible beasts, and accomplished the
|
|
most wonderful feats imaginable, and then to cap the climax
|
|
he fell in love with Jane and she with him, though she never
|
|
really knew it for sure until she had promised herself to
|
|
Lord Greystoke."
|
|
|
|
"Most remarkable," murmured Tarzan, cudgeling his brain for
|
|
some pretext upon which to turn the subject. He delighted
|
|
in hearing Hazel Strong talk of Jane, but when he was the
|
|
subject of the conversation he was bored and embarrassed.
|
|
But he was soon given a respite, for the girl's mother
|
|
joined them, and the talk became general.
|
|
|
|
The next few days passed uneventfully. The sea was quiet.
|
|
The sky was clear. The steamer plowed steadily on toward the
|
|
south without pause. Tarzan spent quite a little time with
|
|
Miss Strong and her mother. They whiled away their hours
|
|
on deck reading, talking, or taking pictures with Miss
|
|
Strong's camera. When the sun had set they walked.
|
|
|
|
One day Tarzan found Miss Strong in conversation with a
|
|
stranger, a man he had not seen on board before. As he
|
|
approached the couple the man bowed to the girl and turned
|
|
to walk away.
|
|
|
|
"Wait, Monsieur Thuran," said Miss Strong; "you must meet
|
|
Mr. Caldwell. We are all fellow passengers, and should
|
|
be acquainted."
|
|
|
|
The two men shook hands. As Tarzan looked into the eyes
|
|
of Monsieur Thuran he was struck by the strange familiarity
|
|
of their expression.
|
|
|
|
"I have had the honor of monsieur's acquaintance in the
|
|
past, I am sure," said Tarzan, "though I cannot recall the
|
|
circumstances."
|
|
|
|
Monsieur Thuran appeared ill at ease.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot say, monsieur," he replied. "It may be so. I have
|
|
had that identical sensation myself when meeting a stranger."
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur Thuran has been explaining some of the mysteries
|
|
of navigation to me," explained the girl.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan paid little heed to the conversation that ensued--he
|
|
was attempting to recall where he had met Monsieur Thuran before.
|
|
That it had been under peculiar circumstances he was positive.
|
|
Presently the sun reached them, and the girl asked Monsieur
|
|
Thuran to move her chair farther back into the shade.
|
|
Tarzan happened to be watching the man at the time,
|
|
and noticed the awkward manner in which he handled
|
|
the chair--his left wrist was stiff. That clew was
|
|
sufficient--a sudden train of associated ideas did the rest.
|
|
|
|
Monsieur Thuran had been trying to find an excuse to
|
|
make a graceful departure. The lull in the conversation
|
|
following the moving of their position gave him an opportunity
|
|
to make his excuses. Bowing low to Miss Strong, and inclining
|
|
his head to Tarzan, he turned to leave them.
|
|
|
|
"Just a moment," said Tarzan. "If Miss Strong will pardon me
|
|
I will accompany you. I shall return in a moment, Miss Strong."
|
|
|
|
Monsieur Thuran looked uncomfortable. When the two men had
|
|
passed out of the girl's sight, Tarzan stopped, laying a
|
|
heavy hand on the other's shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"What is your game now, Rokoff?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"I am leaving France as I promised you," replied the other,
|
|
in a surly voice.
|
|
|
|
"I see you are," said Tarzan; "but I know you so well
|
|
that I can scarcely believe that your being on the same boat
|
|
with me is purely a coincidence. If I could believe it the
|
|
fact that you are in disguise would immediately disabuse
|
|
my mind of any such idea."
|
|
|
|
"Well," growled Rokoff, with a shrug, "I cannot see what you
|
|
are going to do about it. This vessel flies the English flag.
|
|
I have as much right on board her as you, and from the
|
|
fact that you are booked under an assumed name I imagine
|
|
that I have more right."
|
|
|
|
"We will not discuss it, Rokoff. All I wanted to say to
|
|
you is that you must keep away from Miss Strong--she is a
|
|
decent woman."
|
|
|
|
Rokoff turned scarlet.
|
|
|
|
"If you don't I shall pitch you overboard," continued Tarzan.
|
|
"Do not forget that I am just waiting for some excuse."
|
|
Then he turned on his heel, and left Rokoff standing
|
|
there trembling with suppressed rage.
|
|
|
|
He did not see the man again for days, but Rokoff was
|
|
not idle. In his stateroom with Paulvitch he fumed and
|
|
swore, threatening the most terrible of revenges.
|
|
|
|
"I would throw him overboard tonight," he cried, "were I
|
|
sure that those papers were not on his person. I cannot
|
|
chance pitching them into the ocean with him. If you were
|
|
not such a stupid coward, Alexis, you would find a way to
|
|
enter his stateroom and search for the documents."
|
|
|
|
Paulvitch smiled. "You are supposed to be the brains of this
|
|
partnership, my dear Nikolas," he replied. "Why do you not
|
|
find the means to search Monsieur Caldwell's stateroom--eh?"
|
|
|
|
Two hours later fate was kind to them, for Paulvitch, who
|
|
was ever on the watch, saw Tarzan leave his room without
|
|
locking the door. Five minutes later Rokoff was stationed
|
|
where he could give the alarm in case Tarzan returned, and
|
|
Paulvitch was deftly searching the contents of the ape-
|
|
man's luggage.
|
|
|
|
He was about to give up in despair when he saw a coat
|
|
which Tarzan had just removed. A moment later he grasped an
|
|
official envelope in his hand. A quick glance at its contents
|
|
brought a broad smile to the Russian's face.
|
|
|
|
When he left the stateroom Tarzan himself could not have
|
|
told that an article in it had been touched since he left
|
|
it--Paulvitch was a past master in his chosen field.
|
|
When he handed the packet to Rokoff in the seclusion of
|
|
their stateroom the larger man rang for a steward, and
|
|
ordered a pint of champagne.
|
|
|
|
"We must celebrate, my dear Alexis," he said.
|
|
|
|
"It was luck, Nikolas," explained Paulvitch. "It is evident
|
|
that he carries these papers always upon his person--just
|
|
by chance he neglected to transfer them when he changed
|
|
coats a few minutes since. But there will be the deuce to
|
|
pay when he discovers his loss. I am afraid that he will
|
|
immediately connect you with it. Now that he knows that
|
|
you are on board he will suspect you at once."
|
|
|
|
"It will make no difference whom he suspects--after to-night,"
|
|
said Rokoff, with a nasty grin.
|
|
|
|
After Miss Strong had gone below that night Tarzan stood
|
|
leaning over the rail looking far out to sea. Every night he
|
|
had done this since he had come on board--sometimes he
|
|
stood thus for an hour. And the eyes that had been watching
|
|
his every movement since he had boarded the ship at
|
|
Algiers knew that this was his habit.
|
|
|
|
Even as he stood there this night those eyes were on him.
|
|
Presently the last straggler had left the deck. It was
|
|
a clear night, but there was no moon--objects on deck
|
|
were barely discernible.
|
|
|
|
From the shadows of the cabin two figures crept stealthily
|
|
upon the ape-man from behind. The lapping of the waves
|
|
against the ship's sides, the whirring of the propeller,
|
|
the throbbing of the engines, drowned the almost soundless
|
|
approach of the two.
|
|
|
|
They were quite close to him now, and crouching low, like
|
|
tacklers on a gridiron. One of them raised his hand and
|
|
lowered it, as though counting off seconds--one--two--three!
|
|
As one man the two leaped for their victim. Each grasped a
|
|
leg, and before Tarzan of the Apes, lightning though he was,
|
|
could turn to save himself he had been pitched over the low
|
|
rail and was falling into the Atlantic.
|
|
|
|
Hazel Strong was looking from her darkened port across
|
|
the dark sea. Suddenly a body shot past her eyes from
|
|
the deck above. It dropped so quickly into the dark waters
|
|
below that she could not be sure of what it was--it might
|
|
have been a man, she could not say. She listened for some
|
|
outcry from above--for the always-fearsome call, "Man overboard!"
|
|
but it did not come. All was silence on the ship above--all
|
|
was silence in the sea below.
|
|
|
|
The girl decided that she had but seen a bundle of refuse
|
|
thrown overboard by one of the ship's crew, and a moment
|
|
later sought her berth.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 13
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Wreck of the "Lady Alice"
|
|
|
|
|
|
The next morning at breakfast Tarzan's place was vacant.
|
|
Miss Strong was mildly curious, for Mr. Caldwell had
|
|
always made it a point to wait that he might breakfast
|
|
with her and her mother. As she was sitting on deck later
|
|
Monsieur Thuran paused to exchange a half dozen pleasant
|
|
words with her. He seemed in most excellent spirits--his
|
|
manner was the extreme of affability. As he passed on Miss
|
|
Strong thought what a very delightful man was Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
|
|
The day dragged heavily. She missed the quiet companionship
|
|
of Mr. Caldwell--there had been something about him
|
|
that had made the girl like him from the first; he had talked
|
|
so entertainingly of the places he had seen--the peoples
|
|
and their customs--the wild beasts; and he had always had a
|
|
droll way of drawing striking comparisons between savage
|
|
animals and civilized men that showed a considerable
|
|
knowledge of the former, and a keen, though somewhat cynical,
|
|
estimate of the latter.
|
|
|
|
When Monsieur Thuran stopped again to chat with her in
|
|
the afternoon she welcomed the break in the day's monotony.
|
|
But she had begun to become seriously concerned in Mr.
|
|
Caldwell's continued absence; somehow she constantly
|
|
associated it with the start she had had the night before,
|
|
when the dark object fell past her port into the sea.
|
|
Presently she broached the subject to Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
Had he seen Mr. Caldwell today? He had not. Why?
|
|
|
|
"He was not at breakfast as usual, nor have I seen him
|
|
once since yesterday," explained the girl.
|
|
|
|
Monsieur Thuran was extremely solicitous.
|
|
|
|
"I did not have the pleasure of intimate acquaintance
|
|
with Mr. Caldwell," he said. "He seemed a most estimable
|
|
gentleman, however. Can it be that he is indisposed,
|
|
and has remained in his stateroom? It would not be strange."
|
|
|
|
"No," replied the girl, "it would not be strange, of course;
|
|
but for some inexplicable reason I have one of those foolish
|
|
feminine presentiments that all is not right with Mr. Caldwell.
|
|
It is the strangest feeling--it is as though I knew that
|
|
he was not on board the ship."
|
|
|
|
Monsieur Thuran laughed pleasantly. "Mercy, my dear
|
|
Miss Strong," he said; "where in the world could he be then?
|
|
We have not been within sight of land for days."
|
|
|
|
"Of course, it is ridiculous of me," she admitted. And then:
|
|
"But I am not going to worry about it any longer; I
|
|
am going to find out where Mr. Caldwell is," and she
|
|
motioned to a passing steward.
|
|
|
|
"That may be more difficult than you imagine, my dear girl,"
|
|
thought Monsieur Thuran, but aloud he said: "By all means."
|
|
|
|
"Find Mr. Caldwell, please," she said to the steward, "and tell
|
|
him that his friends are much worried by his continued absence."
|
|
|
|
"You are very fond of Mr. Caldwell?" suggested Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
|
|
"I think he is splendid," replied the girl. "And mamma is
|
|
perfectly infatuated with him. He is the sort of man with
|
|
whom one has a feeling of perfect security--no one could
|
|
help but have confidence in Mr. Caldwell."
|
|
|
|
A moment later the steward returned to say that Mr. Caldwell
|
|
was not in his stateroom. "I cannot find him, Miss Strong,
|
|
and"--he hesitated--"I have learned that his berth was not
|
|
occupied last night. I think that I had better report the
|
|
matter to the captain."
|
|
|
|
"Most assuredly," exclaimed Miss Strong. "I shall go
|
|
with you to the captain myself. It is terrible! I know that
|
|
something awful has happened. My presentiments were not
|
|
false, after all."
|
|
|
|
It was a very frightened young woman and an excited steward
|
|
who presented themselves before the captain a few moments later.
|
|
He listened to their stories in silence--a look of concern
|
|
marking his expression as the steward assured him that he
|
|
had sought for the missing passenger in every part of the
|
|
ship that a passenger might be expected to frequent.
|
|
|
|
"And are you sure, Miss Strong, that you saw a body fall
|
|
overboard last night?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"There is not the slightest doubt about that," she answered.
|
|
"I cannot say that it was a human body--there was no outcry.
|
|
It might have been only what I thought it was--a bundle of refuse.
|
|
But if Mr. Caldwell is not found on board I shall always be
|
|
positive that it was he whom I saw fall past my port."
|
|
|
|
The captain ordered an immediate and thorough search
|
|
of the entire ship from stem to stern--no nook or cranny was
|
|
to be overlooked. Miss Strong remained in his cabin, waiting
|
|
the outcome of the quest. The captain asked her many
|
|
questions, but she could tell him nothing about the missing
|
|
man other than what she had herself seen during their brief
|
|
acquaintance on shipboard. For the first time she suddenly
|
|
realized how very little indeed Mr. Caldwell had told her about
|
|
himself or his past life. That he had been born in Africa
|
|
and educated in Paris was about all she knew, and this
|
|
meager information had been the result of her surprise that
|
|
an Englishman should speak English with such a marked
|
|
French accent.
|
|
|
|
"Did he ever speak of any enemies?" asked the captain.
|
|
|
|
"Never."
|
|
|
|
"Was he acquainted with any of the other passengers?"
|
|
|
|
"Only as he had been with me--through the circumstance
|
|
of casual meeting as fellow shipmates."
|
|
|
|
"Er--was he, in your opinion, Miss Strong, a man who
|
|
drank to excess?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know that he drank at all--he certainly had not
|
|
been drinking up to half an hour before I saw that body
|
|
fall overboard," she answered, "for I was with him on deck
|
|
up to that time."
|
|
|
|
"It is very strange," said the captain. "He did not look
|
|
to me like a man who was subject to fainting spells, or
|
|
anything of that sort. And even had he been it is scarcely
|
|
credible that he should have fallen completely over the
|
|
rail had he been taken with an attack while leaning upon it
|
|
--he would rather have fallen inside, upon the deck. If he is
|
|
not on board, Miss Strong, he was thrown overboard--and
|
|
the fact that you heard no outcry would lead to the assumption
|
|
that he was dead before he left the ship's deck--murdered."
|
|
|
|
The girl shuddered.
|
|
|
|
It was a full hour later that the first officer returned to
|
|
report the outcome of the search.
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Caldwell is not on board, sir," he said.
|
|
|
|
"I fear that there is something more serious than accident
|
|
here, Mr. Brently," said the captain. "I wish that you would
|
|
make a personal and very careful examination of Mr. Caldwell's
|
|
effects, to ascertain if there is any clew to a motive either
|
|
for suicide or murder--sift the thing to the bottom."
|
|
|
|
"Aye, aye, sir!" responded Mr. Brently, and left to commence
|
|
his investigation.
|
|
|
|
Hazel Strong was prostrated. For two days she did not
|
|
leave her cabin, and when she finally ventured on deck she was
|
|
very wan and white, with great, dark circles beneath her eyes.
|
|
Waking or sleeping, it seemed that she constantly saw that
|
|
dark body dropping, swift and silent, into the cold, grim sea.
|
|
|
|
Shortly after her first appearance on deck following the
|
|
tragedy, Monsieur Thuran joined her with many expressions
|
|
of kindly solicitude.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, but it is terrible, Miss Strong," he said. "I cannot rid
|
|
my mind of it."
|
|
|
|
"Nor I," said the girl wearily. "I feel that he might have
|
|
been saved had I but given the alarm."
|
|
|
|
"You must not reproach yourself, my dear Miss Strong,"
|
|
urged Monsieur Thuran. "It was in no way your fault.
|
|
Another would have done as you did. Who would think that
|
|
because something fell into the sea from a ship that it must
|
|
necessarily be a man? Nor would the outcome have been
|
|
different had you given an alarm. For a while they would
|
|
have doubted your story, thinking it but the nervous
|
|
hallucination of a woman--had you insisted it would have been
|
|
too late to have rescued him by the time the ship could have
|
|
been brought to a stop, and the boats lowered and rowed
|
|
back miles in search of the unknown spot where the tragedy
|
|
had occurred. No, you must not censure yourself. You have
|
|
done more than any other of us for poor Mr. Caldwell--you
|
|
were the only one to miss him. It was you who instituted
|
|
the search."
|
|
|
|
The girl could not help but feel grateful to him for his
|
|
kind and encouraging words. He was with her often--almost
|
|
constantly for the remainder of the voyage--and she
|
|
grew to like him very much indeed. Monsieur Thuran had
|
|
learned that the beautiful Miss Strong, of Baltimore, was an
|
|
American heiress--a very wealthy girl in her own right, and
|
|
with future prospects that quite took his breath away when he
|
|
contemplated them, and since he spent most of his time in that
|
|
delectable pastime it is a wonder that he breathed at all.
|
|
|
|
It had been Monsieur Thuran's intention to leave the ship at
|
|
the first port they touched after the disappearance of Tarzan.
|
|
Did he not have in his coat pocket the thing he had
|
|
taken passage upon this very boat to obtain? There was
|
|
nothing more to detain him here. He could not return to
|
|
the Continent fast enough, that he might board the first
|
|
express for St. Petersburg.
|
|
|
|
But now another idea had obtruded itself, and was rapidly
|
|
crowding his original intentions into the background.
|
|
That American fortune was not to be sneezed at, nor was
|
|
its possessor a whit less attractive.
|
|
|
|
"SAPRISTI! but she would cause a sensation in St. Petersburg."
|
|
And he would, too, with the assistance of her inheritance.
|
|
|
|
After Monsieur Thuran had squandered a few million dollars,
|
|
he discovered that the vocation was so entirely to his
|
|
liking that he would continue on down to Cape Town, where
|
|
he suddenly decided that he had pressing engagements
|
|
that might detain him there for some time.
|
|
|
|
Miss Strong had told him that she and her mother were to
|
|
visit the latter's brother there--they had not decided upon the
|
|
duration of their stay, and it would probably run into months.
|
|
|
|
She was delighted when she found that Monsieur Thuran
|
|
was to be there also.
|
|
|
|
"I hope that we shall be able to continue our acquaintance,"
|
|
she said. "You must call upon mamma and me as
|
|
soon as we are settled."
|
|
|
|
Monsieur Thuran was delighted at the prospect, and lost
|
|
no time in saying so. Mrs. Strong was not quite so favorably
|
|
impressed by him as her daughter.
|
|
|
|
"I do not know why I should distrust him," she said to
|
|
Hazel one day as they were discussing him. "He seems a
|
|
perfect gentleman in every respect, but sometimes there
|
|
is something about his eyes--a fleeting expression which
|
|
I cannot describe, but which when I see it gives me a
|
|
very uncanny feeling."
|
|
|
|
The girl laughed. "You are a silly dear, mamma," she said.
|
|
|
|
"I suppose so, but I am sorry that we have not poor Mr.
|
|
Caldwell for company instead."
|
|
|
|
"And I, too," replied her daughter.
|
|
|
|
Monsieur Thuran became a frequent visitor at the home of
|
|
Hazel Strong's uncle in Cape Town. His attentions were very
|
|
marked, but they were so punctiliously arranged to meet
|
|
the girl's every wish that she came to depend upon him more
|
|
and more. Did she or her mother or a cousin require an
|
|
escort--was there a little friendly service to be rendered,
|
|
the genial and ubiquitous Monsieur Thuran was always available.
|
|
Her uncle and his family grew to like him for his unfailing
|
|
courtesy and willingness to be of service. Monsieur Thuran
|
|
was becoming indispensable. At length, feeling the moment
|
|
propitious, he proposed. Miss Strong was startled.
|
|
She did not know what to say.
|
|
|
|
"I had never thought that you cared for me in any such
|
|
way," she told him. "I have looked upon you always as a
|
|
very dear friend. I shall not give you my answer now.
|
|
Forget that you have asked me to be your wife. Let us go
|
|
on as we have been--then I can consider you from an entirely
|
|
different angle for a time. It may be that I shall discover
|
|
that my feeling for you is more than friendship. I certainly
|
|
have not thought for a moment that I loved you."
|
|
|
|
This arrangement was perfectly satisfactory to Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
He deeply regretted that he had been hasty, but he had
|
|
loved her for so long a time, and so devotedly, that he
|
|
thought that every one must know it.
|
|
|
|
"From the first time I saw you, Hazel," he said, "I have
|
|
loved you. I am willing to wait, for I am certain that so great
|
|
and pure a love as mine will be rewarded. All that I care to
|
|
know is that you do not love another. Will you tell me?"
|
|
|
|
"I have never been in love in my life," she replied, and he
|
|
was quite satisfied. On the way home that night he purchased
|
|
a steam yacht, and built a million-dollar villa on the Black Sea.
|
|
|
|
The next day Hazel Strong enjoyed one of the happiest surprises
|
|
of her life--she ran face to face upon Jane Porter as she was
|
|
coming out of a jeweler's shop.
|
|
|
|
"Why, Jane Porter!" she exclaimed. "Where in the world
|
|
did you drop from? Why, I can't believe my own eyes."
|
|
|
|
"Well, of all things!" cried the equally astonished Jane.
|
|
"And here I have been wasting whole reams of perfectly good
|
|
imagination picturing you in Baltimore--the very idea!" And
|
|
she threw her arms about her friend once more, and kissed
|
|
her a dozen times.
|
|
|
|
By the time mutual explanations had been made Hazel
|
|
knew that Lord Tennington's yacht had put in at Cape Town
|
|
for at least a week's stay, and at the end of that time was to
|
|
continue on her voyage--this time up the West Coast--and so
|
|
back to England. "Where," concluded Jane, "I am to be married."
|
|
|
|
"Then you are not married yet?" asked Hazel.
|
|
|
|
"Not yet," replied Jane, and then, quite irrelevantly, "I wish
|
|
England were a million miles from here.
|
|
|
|
Visits were exchanged between the yacht and Hazel's relatives.
|
|
Dinners were arranged, and trips into the surrounding
|
|
country to entertain the visitors. Monsieur Thuran was a
|
|
welcome guest at every function. He gave a dinner himself to the
|
|
men of the party, and managed to ingratiate himself in the
|
|
good will of Lord Tennington by many little acts of hospitality.
|
|
|
|
Monsieur Thuran had heard dropped a hint of something
|
|
which might result from this unexpected visit of Lord
|
|
Tennington's yacht, and he wanted to be counted in on it.
|
|
Once when he was alone with the Englishman he took occasion to
|
|
make it quite plain that his engagement to Miss Strong was
|
|
to be announced immediately upon their return to America.
|
|
"But not a word of it, my dear Tennington--not a word of it."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly, I quite understand, my dear fellow," Tennington
|
|
had replied. "But you are to be congratulated--ripping
|
|
girl, don't you know--really."
|
|
|
|
The next day it came. Mrs. Strong, Hazel, and Monsieur
|
|
Thuran were Lord Tennington's guests aboard his yacht.
|
|
Mrs. Strong had been telling them how much she had enjoyed
|
|
her visit at Cape Town, and that she regretted that a letter
|
|
just received from her attorneys in Baltimore had necessitated
|
|
her cutting her visit shorter than they had intended.
|
|
|
|
"When do you sail?" asked Tennington.
|
|
|
|
"The first of the week, I think," she replied.
|
|
"Indeed?" exclaimed Monsieur Thuran. "I am very fortunate.
|
|
I, too, have found that I must return at once, and now
|
|
I shall have the honor of accompanying and serving you."
|
|
|
|
"That is nice of you, Monsieur Thuran," replied Mrs. Strong.
|
|
"I am sure that we shall be glad to place ourselves under
|
|
your protection." But in the bottom of her heart was
|
|
the wish that they might escape him. Why, she could not
|
|
have told.
|
|
|
|
"By Jove!" ejaculated Lord Tennington, a moment later.
|
|
"Bully idea, by Jove!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Tennington, of course," ventured Clayton; "it must
|
|
be a bully idea if you had it, but what the deuce is it?
|
|
Goin' to steam to China via the south pole?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I say now, Clayton," returned Tennington, "you
|
|
needn't be so rough on a fellow just because you didn't
|
|
happen to suggest this trip yourself--you've acted a regular
|
|
bounder ever since we sailed.
|
|
|
|
"No, sir," he continued, "it's a bully idea, and you'll all
|
|
say so. It's to take Mrs. Strong and Miss Strong, and Thuran,
|
|
too, if he'll come, as far as England with us on the yacht.
|
|
Now, isn't that a corker?"
|
|
|
|
"Forgive me, Tenny, old boy," cried Clayton. "It certainly
|
|
IS a corking idea--I never should have suspected you of it.
|
|
You're quite sure it's original, are you?"
|
|
|
|
"And we'll sail the first of the week, or any other time that
|
|
suits your convenience, Mrs. Strong," concluded the big-hearted
|
|
Englishman, as though the thing were all arranged
|
|
except the sailing date.
|
|
|
|
"Mercy, Lord Tennington, you haven't even given us an
|
|
opportunity to thank you, much less decide whether we shall
|
|
be able to accept your generous invitation," said Mrs. Strong.
|
|
|
|
"Why, of course you'll come," responded Tennington.
|
|
"We'll make as good time as any passenger boat, and you'll
|
|
be fully as comfortable; and, anyway, we all want you, and
|
|
won't take no for an answer."
|
|
|
|
And so it was settled that they should sail the following Monday.
|
|
|
|
Two days out the girls were sitting in Hazel's cabin,
|
|
looking at some prints she had had finished in Cape Town.
|
|
They represented all the pictures she had taken since she
|
|
had left America, and the girls were both engrossed in them,
|
|
Jane asking many questions, and Hazel keeping up a perfect torrent
|
|
of comment and explanation of the various scenes and people.
|
|
|
|
"And here," she said suddenly, "here's a man you know.
|
|
Poor fellow, I have so often intended asking you about him,
|
|
but I never have been able to think of it when we were together."
|
|
She was holding the little print so that Jane did not see
|
|
the face of the man it portrayed.
|
|
|
|
"His name was John Caldwell," continued Hazel. "Do you recall him?
|
|
He said that he met you in America. He is an Englishman."
|
|
|
|
"I do not recollect the name," replied Jane. "Let me
|
|
see the picture."
|
|
"The poor fellow was lost overboard on our trip down the
|
|
coast," she said, as she handed the print to Jane.
|
|
|
|
"Lost over--Why, Hazel, Hazel--don't tell me that he is
|
|
dead--drowned at sea! Hazel! Why don't you say that you are joking!"
|
|
And before the astonished Miss Strong could catch her
|
|
Jane Porter had slipped to the floor in a swoon.
|
|
|
|
After Hazel had restored her chum to consciousness she
|
|
sat looking at her for a long time before either spoke.
|
|
|
|
"I did not know, Jane," said Hazel, in a constrained voice,
|
|
"that you knew Mr. Caldwell so intimately that his death
|
|
could prove such a shock to you."
|
|
|
|
"John Caldwell?" questioned Miss Porter. "You do not mean
|
|
to tell me that you do not know who this man was, Hazel?"
|
|
|
|
"Why, yes, Jane; I know perfectly well who he was--his
|
|
name was John Caldwell; he was from London."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Hazel, I wish I could believe it," moaned the girl.
|
|
"I wish I could believe it, but those features are burned so
|
|
deep into my memory and my heart that I should recognize
|
|
them anywhere in the world from among a thousand others,
|
|
who might appear identical to any one but me."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean, Jane?" cried Hazel, now thoroughly alarmed.
|
|
"Who do you think it is?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't think, Hazel. I know that that is a picture of
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes."
|
|
|
|
"Jane!"
|
|
|
|
"I cannot be mistaken. Oh, Hazel, are you sure that he is dead?
|
|
Can there be no mistake?"
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid not, dear," answered Hazel sadly. "I wish I
|
|
could think that you are mistaken, but now a hundred and
|
|
one little pieces of corroborative evidence occur to me that
|
|
meant nothing to me while I thought that he was John Caldwell,
|
|
of London. He said that he had been born in Africa,
|
|
and educated in France."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, that would be true," murmured Jane Porter dully.
|
|
|
|
"The first officer, who searched his luggage, found nothing
|
|
to identify John Caldwell, of London. Practically all his
|
|
belongings had been made, or purchased, in Paris. Everything
|
|
that bore an initial was marked either with a `T' alone, or
|
|
with `J. C. T.' We thought that he was traveling incognito
|
|
under his first two names--the J. C. standing for John Caldwell."
|
|
|
|
"Tarzan of the Apes took the name Jean C. Tarzan," said
|
|
Jane, in the same lifeless monotone. "And he is dead! Oh!
|
|
Hazel, it is horrible! He died all alone in this terrible ocean!
|
|
It is unbelievable that that brave heart should have ceased
|
|
to beat--that those mighty muscles are quiet and cold forever!
|
|
That he who was the personification of life and health
|
|
and manly strength should be the prey of slimy, crawling
|
|
things, that--" But she could go no further, and with a little
|
|
moan she buried her head in her arms, and sank sobbing to the floor.
|
|
|
|
For days Miss Porter was ill, and would see no one except
|
|
Hazel and the faithful Esmeralda. When at last she came on
|
|
deck all were struck by the sad change that had taken place
|
|
in her. She was no longer the alert, vivacious American
|
|
beauty who had charmed and delighted all who came in contact
|
|
with her. Instead she was a very quiet and sad little
|
|
girl--with an expression of hopeless wistfulness that none
|
|
but Hazel Strong could interpret.
|
|
|
|
The entire party strove their utmost to cheer and amuse
|
|
her, but all to no avail. Occasionally the jolly Lord
|
|
Tennington would wring a wan smile from her, but for the
|
|
most part she sat with wide eyes looking out across the sea.
|
|
|
|
With Jane Porter's illness one misfortune after another
|
|
seemed to attack the yacht. First an engine broke down, and
|
|
they drifted for two days while temporary repairs were being made.
|
|
Then a squall struck them unaware, that carried overboard
|
|
nearly everything above deck that was portable. Later two of
|
|
the seamen fell to fighting in the forecastle, with the
|
|
result that one of them was badly wounded with a knife, and
|
|
the other had to be put in irons. Then, to cap the climax,
|
|
the mate fell overboard at night, and was drowned before
|
|
help could reach him. The yacht cruised about the spot for
|
|
ten hours, but no sign of the man was seen after he
|
|
disappeared from the deck into the sea.
|
|
|
|
Every member of the crew and guests was gloomy and depressed
|
|
after these series of misfortunes. All were apprehensive of
|
|
worse to come, and this was especially true of the
|
|
seamen who recalled all sorts of terrible omens and warnings
|
|
that had occurred during the early part of the voyage, and
|
|
which they could now clearly translate into the precursors of
|
|
some grim and terrible tragedy to come.
|
|
|
|
Nor did the croakers have long to wait. The second night
|
|
after the drowning of the mate the little yacht was suddenly
|
|
wracked from stem to stern. About one o'clock in the
|
|
morning there was a terrific impact that threw the slumbering
|
|
guests and crew from berth and bunk. A mighty shudder ran
|
|
through the frail craft; she lay far over to starboard; the
|
|
engines stopped. For a moment she hung there with her decks
|
|
at an angle of forty-five degrees--then, with a sullen, rending
|
|
sound, she slipped back into the sea and righted.
|
|
|
|
Instantly the men rushed upon deck, followed closely by
|
|
the women. Though the night was cloudy, there was little
|
|
wind or sea, nor was it so dark but that just off the port
|
|
bow a black mass could be discerned floating low in the water.
|
|
|
|
"A derelict," was the terse explanation of the officer of the watch.
|
|
|
|
Presently the engineer hurried on deck in search of the captain.
|
|
|
|
"That patch we put on the cylinder head's blown out, sir," he
|
|
reported, "and she's makin' water fast for'ard on the port bow."
|
|
|
|
An instant later a seaman rushed up from below.
|
|
|
|
"My Gawd!" he cried. "Her whole bleedin' bottom's ripped
|
|
out. She can't float twenty minutes."
|
|
|
|
"Shut up!" roared Tennington. "Ladies, go below and get
|
|
some of your things together. It may not be so bad as that,
|
|
but we may have to take to the boats. It will be safer
|
|
to be prepared. Go at once, please. And, Captain Jerrold,
|
|
send some competent man below, please, to ascertain the exact
|
|
extent of the damage. In the meantime I might suggest that
|
|
you have the boats provisioned."
|
|
|
|
The calm, low voice of the owner did much to reassure
|
|
the entire party, and a moment later all were occupied with
|
|
the duties he had suggested. By the time the ladies had
|
|
returned to the deck the rapid provisioning of the boats had
|
|
been about completed, and a moment later the officer who
|
|
had gone below had returned to report. But his opinion was
|
|
scarcely needed to assure the huddled group of men and
|
|
women that the end of the LADY ALICE was at hand.
|
|
|
|
"Well, sir?" said the captain, as his officer hesitated.
|
|
|
|
"I dislike to frighten the ladies, sir," he said, "but she
|
|
can't float a dozen minutes, in my opinion. There's a hole in
|
|
her you could drive a bally cow through, sir."
|
|
|
|
For five minutes the LADY ALICE had been settling rapidly
|
|
by the bow. Already her stern loomed high in the air, and
|
|
foothold on the deck was of the most precarious nature.
|
|
She carried four boats, and these were all filled and lowered
|
|
away in safety. As they pulled rapidly from the stricken
|
|
little vessel Jane Porter turned to have one last look at her.
|
|
Just then there came a loud crash and an ominous rumbling
|
|
and pounding from the heart of the ship--her machinery had
|
|
broken loose, and was dashing its way toward the bow,
|
|
tearing out partitions and bulkheads as it went--the stern rose
|
|
rapidly high above them; for a moment she seemed to pause
|
|
there--a vertical shaft protruding from the bosom of the
|
|
ocean, and then swiftly she dove headforemost beneath the waves.
|
|
|
|
In one of the boats the brave Lord Tennington wiped a tear
|
|
from his eye--he had not seen a fortune in money go down
|
|
forever into the sea, but a dear, beautiful friend whom he
|
|
had loved.
|
|
|
|
At last the long night broke, and a tropical sun smote
|
|
down upon the rolling water. Jane Porter had dropped into a
|
|
fitful slumber--the fierce light of the sun upon her upturned
|
|
face awoke her. She looked about her. In the boat with her
|
|
were three sailors, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran. Then she
|
|
looked for the other boats, but as far as the eye could reach
|
|
there was nothing to break the fearful monotony of that
|
|
waste of waters--they were alone in a small boat upon the
|
|
broad Atlantic.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 14
|
|
|
|
|
|
Back to the Primitive
|
|
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan struck the water, his first impulse was to swim clear
|
|
of the ship and possible danger from her propellers. He knew
|
|
whom to thank for his present predicament, and as he lay in
|
|
the sea, just supporting himself by a gentle movement of his
|
|
hands, his chief emotion was one of chagrin that he had been
|
|
so easily bested by Rokoff.
|
|
|
|
He lay thus for some time, watching the receding and
|
|
rapidly diminishing lights of the steamer without it ever once
|
|
occurring to him to call for help. He never had called for
|
|
help in his life, and so it is not strange that he did not think
|
|
of it now. Always had he depended upon his own prowess
|
|
and resourcefulness, nor had there ever been since the days
|
|
of Kala any to answer an appeal for succor. When it did
|
|
occur to him it was too late.
|
|
|
|
There was, thought Tarzan, a possible one chance in a
|
|
hundred thousand that he might be picked up, and an even
|
|
smaller chance that he would reach land, so he determined
|
|
that to combine what slight chances there were, he would
|
|
swim slowly in the direction of the coast--the ship might
|
|
have been closer in than he had known.
|
|
|
|
His strokes were long and easy--it would be many hours
|
|
before those giant muscles would commence to feel fatigue.
|
|
As he swam, guided toward the east by the stars, he noticed
|
|
that he felt the weight of his shoes, and so he removed them.
|
|
His trousers went next, and he would have removed his coat
|
|
at the same time but for the precious papers in its pocket.
|
|
To assure himself that he still had them he slipped his
|
|
hand in to feel, but to his consternation they were gone.
|
|
|
|
Now he knew that something more than revenge had
|
|
prompted Rokoff to pitch him overboard--the Russian had
|
|
managed to obtain possession of the papers Tarzan had
|
|
wrested from him at Bou Saada. The ape-man swore softly,
|
|
and let his coat and shirt sink into the Atlantic. Before many
|
|
hours he had divested himself of his remaining garments,
|
|
and was swimming easily and unencumbered toward the east.
|
|
|
|
The first faint evidence of dawn was paling the stars ahead
|
|
of him when the dim outlines of a low-lying black mass
|
|
loomed up directly in his track. A few strong strokes brought
|
|
him to its side--it was the bottom of a wave-washed derelict.
|
|
Tarzan clambered upon it--he would rest there until daylight
|
|
at least. He had no intention to remain there inactive--a prey
|
|
to hunger and thirst. If he must die he preferred dying in
|
|
action while making some semblance of an attempt to save himself.
|
|
|
|
The sea was quiet, so that the wreck had only a gently
|
|
undulating motion, that was nothing to the swimmer who
|
|
had had no sleep for twenty hours. Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
curled up upon the slimy timbers, and was soon asleep.
|
|
|
|
The heat of the sun awoke him early in the forenoon.
|
|
His first conscious sensation was of thirst, which grew
|
|
almost to the proportions of suffering with full returning
|
|
consciousness; but a moment later it was forgotten in the
|
|
joy of two almost simultaneous discoveries. The first was
|
|
a mass of wreckage floating beside the derelict in the midst
|
|
of which, bottom up, rose and fell an overturned lifeboat;
|
|
the other was the faint, dim line of a far-distant shore
|
|
showing on the horizon in the east.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan dove into the water, and swam around the wreck
|
|
to the lifeboat. The cool ocean refreshed him almost as
|
|
much as would a draft of water, so that it was with renewed
|
|
vigor that he brought the smaller boat alongside the derelict,
|
|
and, after many herculean efforts, succeeded in dragging it
|
|
onto the slimy ship's bottom. There he righted and examined
|
|
it--the boat was quite sound, and a moment later floated upright
|
|
alongside the wreck. Then Tarzan selected several pieces
|
|
of wreckage that might answer him as paddles, and presently
|
|
was making good headway toward the far-off shore.
|
|
|
|
It was late in the afternoon by the time he came close
|
|
enough to distinguish objects on land, or to make out the
|
|
contour of the shore line. Before him lay what appeared to
|
|
be the entrance to a little, landlocked harbor. The wooded
|
|
point to the north was strangely familiar. Could it be
|
|
possible that fate had thrown him up at the very threshold
|
|
of his own beloved jungle! But as the bow of his boat
|
|
entered the mouth of the harbor the last shred of doubt was
|
|
cleared away, for there before him upon the farther shore,
|
|
under the shadows of his primeval forest, stood his own
|
|
cabin--built before his birth by the hand of his long-dead
|
|
father, John Clayton, Lord Greystoke.
|
|
|
|
With long sweeps of his giant muscles Tarzan sent the little
|
|
craft speeding toward the beach. Its prow had scarcely
|
|
touched when the ape-man leaped to shore--his heart beat
|
|
fast in joy and exultation as each long-familiar object came
|
|
beneath his roving eyes--the cabin, the beach, the little
|
|
brook, the dense jungle, the black, impenetrable forest.
|
|
The myriad birds in their brilliant plumage--the gorgeous
|
|
tropical blooms upon the festooned creepers falling in great
|
|
loops from the giant trees.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes had come into his own again, and that
|
|
all the world might know it he threw back his young head,
|
|
and gave voice to the fierce, wild challenge of his tribe.
|
|
For a moment silence reigned upon the jungle, and then,
|
|
low and weird, came an answering challenge--it was the
|
|
deep roar of Numa, the lion; and from a great distance,
|
|
faintly, the fearsome answering bellow of a bull ape.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan went to the brook first, and slaked his thirst.
|
|
Then he approached his cabin. The door was still closed
|
|
and latched as he and D'Arnot had left it. He raised the
|
|
latch and entered. Nothing had been disturbed; there were
|
|
the table, the bed, and the little crib built by his
|
|
father--the shelves and cupboards just as they had stood
|
|
for ever twenty-three years--just as he had left them
|
|
nearly two years before.
|
|
|
|
His eyes satisfied, Tarzan's stomach began to call aloud for
|
|
attention--the pangs of hunger suggested a search for food.
|
|
There was nothing in the cabin, nor had he any weapons;
|
|
but upon a wall hung one of his old grass ropes. It had
|
|
been many times broken and spliced, so that he had discarded
|
|
it for a better one long before. Tarzan wished that he had a knife.
|
|
Well, unless he was mistaken he should have that and a spear and
|
|
bows and arrows before another sun had set--the rope would take
|
|
care of that, and in the meantime it must be made to procure
|
|
food for him. He coiled it carefully, and, throwing it about
|
|
his shoulder, went out, closing the door behind him.
|
|
|
|
Close to the cabin the jungle commenced, and into it
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes plunged, wary and noiseless--once more
|
|
a savage beast hunting its food. For a time he kept to the
|
|
ground, but finally, discovering no spoor indicative of
|
|
nearby meat, he took to the trees. With the first dizzy swing
|
|
from tree to tree all the old joy of living swept over him.
|
|
Vain regrets and dull heartache were forgotten. Now was he living.
|
|
Now, indeed, was the true happiness of perfect freedom his.
|
|
Who would go back to the stifling, wicked cities of civilized
|
|
man when the mighty reaches of the great jungle offered peace
|
|
and liberty? Not he.
|
|
|
|
While it was yet light Tarzan came to a drinking place by
|
|
the side of a jungle river. There was a ford there, and for
|
|
countless ages the beasts of the forest had come down to
|
|
drink at this spot. Here of a night might always be found
|
|
either Sabor or Numa crouching in the dense foliage of the
|
|
surrounding jungle awaiting an antelope or a water buck for
|
|
their meal. Here came Horta, the boar, to water, and here
|
|
came Tarzan of the Apes to make a kill, for he was very empty.
|
|
|
|
On a low branch he squatted above the trail. For an hour
|
|
he waited. It was growing dark. A little to one side of the
|
|
ford in the densest thicket he heard the faint sound of padded
|
|
feet, and the brushing of a huge body against tall grasses
|
|
and tangled creepers. None other than Tarzan might have
|
|
heard it, but the ape-man heard and translated--it was Numa,
|
|
the lion, on the same errand as himself. Tarzan smiled.
|
|
|
|
Presently he heard an animal approaching warily along
|
|
the trail toward the drinking place. A moment more and it
|
|
came in view--it was Horta, the boar. Here was delicious
|
|
meat--and Tarzan's mouth watered. The grasses where Numa
|
|
lay were very still now--ominously still. Horta passed
|
|
beneath Tarzan--a few more steps and he would be within the
|
|
radius of Numa's spring. Tarzan could imagine how old
|
|
Numa's eyes were shining--how he was already sucking
|
|
in his breath for the awful roar which would freeze his prey
|
|
for the brief instant between the moment of the spring and
|
|
the sinking of terrible fangs into splintering bones.
|
|
|
|
But as Numa gathered himself, a slender rope flew through
|
|
the air from the low branches of a near-by tree. A noose
|
|
settled about Horta's neck. There was a frightened grunt,
|
|
a squeal, and then Numa saw his quarry dragged backward
|
|
up the trail, and, as he sprang, Horta, the boar, soared
|
|
upward beyond his clutches into the tree above, and a mocking
|
|
face looked down and laughed into his own.
|
|
|
|
Then indeed did Numa roar. Angry, threatening, hungry,
|
|
he paced back and forth beneath the taunting ape-man.
|
|
Now he stopped, and, rising on his hind legs against the stem
|
|
of the tree that held his enemy, sharpened his huge claws upon
|
|
the bark, tearing out great pieces that laid bare the white
|
|
wood beneath.
|
|
|
|
And in the meantime Tarzan had dragged the struggling
|
|
Horta to the limb beside him. Sinewy fingers completed the
|
|
work the choking noose had commenced. The ape-man had
|
|
no knife, but nature had equipped him with the means of
|
|
tearing his food from the quivering flank of his prey, and
|
|
gleaming teeth sank into the succulent flesh while the raging
|
|
lion looked on from below as another enjoyed the dinner
|
|
that he had thought already his.
|
|
|
|
It was quite dark by the time Tarzan had gorged himself.
|
|
Ah, but it had been delicious! Never had he quite accustomed
|
|
himself to the ruined flesh that civilized men had served
|
|
him, and in the bottom of his savage heart there had
|
|
constantly been the craving for the warm meat of the
|
|
fresh kill, and the rich, red blood.
|
|
|
|
He wiped his bloody hands upon a bunch of leaves,
|
|
slung the remains of his kill across his shoulder, and swung
|
|
off through the middle terrace of the forest toward his cabin,
|
|
and at the same instant Jane Porter and William Cecil
|
|
Clayton arose from a sumptuous dinner upon the LADY
|
|
ALICE, thousands of miles to the east, in the Indian Ocean.
|
|
|
|
Beneath Tarzan walked Numa, the lion, and when the ape-man
|
|
deigned to glance downward he caught occasional glimpses
|
|
of the baleful green eyes following through the darkness.
|
|
Numa did not roar now--instead, he moved stealthily,
|
|
like the shadow of a great cat; but yet he took no step
|
|
that did not reach the sensitive ears of the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan wondered if he would stalk him to his cabin door.
|
|
He hoped not, for that would mean a night's sleep curled in
|
|
the crotch of a tree, and he much preferred the bed of
|
|
grasses within his own abode. But he knew just the tree
|
|
and the most comfortable crotch, if necessity demanded that
|
|
he sleep out. A hundred times in the past some great jungle
|
|
cat had followed him home, and compelled him to seek shelter
|
|
in this same tree, until another mood or the rising sun had
|
|
sent his enemy away.
|
|
|
|
But presently Numa gave up the chase and, with a series
|
|
of blood-curdling moans and roars, turned angrily back in
|
|
search of another and an easier dinner. So Tarzan came to his
|
|
cabin unattended, and a few moments later was curled up in
|
|
the mildewed remnants of what had once been a bed of grasses.
|
|
Thus easily did Monsieur Jean C. Tarzan slough the thin skin
|
|
of his artificial civilization, and sink happy and contented
|
|
into the deep sleep of the wild beast that has fed to repletion.
|
|
Yet a woman's "yes" would have bound him to that other life
|
|
forever, and made the thought of this savage existence repulsive.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan slept late into the following forenoon, for he had
|
|
been very tired from the labors and exertion of the long
|
|
night and day upon the ocean, and the jungle jaunt that had
|
|
brought into play muscles that he had scarce used for nearly
|
|
two years. When he awoke he ran to the brook first to drink.
|
|
Then he took a plunge into the sea, swimming about for
|
|
a quarter of an hour. Afterward he returned to his cabin,
|
|
and breakfasted off the flesh of Horta. This done, he buried
|
|
the balance of the carcass in the soft earth outside the cabin,
|
|
for his evening meal.
|
|
|
|
Once more he took his rope and vanished into the jungle.
|
|
This time he hunted nobler quarry--man; although had you
|
|
asked him his own opinion he could have named a dozen
|
|
other denizens of the jungle which he considered far the
|
|
superiors in nobility of the men he hunted. Today Tarzan
|
|
was in quest of weapons. He wondered if the women and
|
|
children had remained in Mbonga's village after the punitive
|
|
expedition from the French cruiser had massacred all the
|
|
warriors in revenge for D'Arnot's supposed death. He hoped
|
|
that he should find warriors there, for he knew not how
|
|
long a quest he should have to make were the village deserted.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man traveled swiftly through the forest, and about
|
|
noon came to the site of the village, but to his disappointment
|
|
found that the jungle had overgrown the plantain fields
|
|
and that the thatched huts had fallen in decay. There was no
|
|
sign of man. He clambered about among the ruins for half
|
|
an hour, hoping that he might discover some forgotten
|
|
weapon, but his search was without fruit, and so he took up
|
|
his quest once more, following up the stream, which flowed
|
|
from a southeasterly direction. He knew that near fresh
|
|
water he would be most likely to find another settlement.
|
|
|
|
As he traveled he hunted as he had hunted with his ape
|
|
people in the past, as Kala had taught him to hunt, turning
|
|
over rotted logs to find some toothsome vermin, running high
|
|
into the trees to rob a bird's nest, or pouncing upon a tiny
|
|
rodent with the quickness of a cat. There were other things
|
|
that he ate, too, but the less detailed the account of an ape's
|
|
diet, the better--and Tarzan was again an ape, the same fierce,
|
|
brutal anthropoid that Kala had taught him to be, and that
|
|
he had been for the first twenty years of his life.
|
|
|
|
Occasionally he smiled as he recalled some friend who
|
|
might even at the moment be sitting placid and immaculate
|
|
within the precincts of his select Parisian club--just as Tarzan
|
|
had sat but a few months before; and then he would stop,
|
|
as though turned suddenly to stone as the gentle breeze
|
|
carried to his trained nostrils the scent of some new prey or
|
|
a formidable enemy.
|
|
|
|
That night he slept far inland from his cabin, securely
|
|
wedged into the crotch of a giant tree, swaying a hundred
|
|
feet above the ground. He had eaten heartily again--this
|
|
time from the flesh of Bara, the deer, who had fallen prey to
|
|
his quick noose.
|
|
|
|
Early the next morning he resumed his journey, always
|
|
following the course of the stream. For three days he
|
|
continued his quest, until he had come to a part of the
|
|
jungle in which he never before had been. Occasionally upon
|
|
the higher ground the forest was much thinner, and in the far
|
|
distance through the trees he could see ranges of mighty
|
|
mountains, with wide plains in the foreground. Here, in the
|
|
open spaces, were new game--countless antelope and vast
|
|
herds of zebra. Tarzan was entranced--he would make a long
|
|
visit to this new world.
|
|
|
|
On the morning of the fourth day his nostrils were suddenly
|
|
surprised by a faint new scent. It was the scent of man,
|
|
but yet a long way off. The ape-man thrilled with pleasure.
|
|
Every sense was on the alert as with crafty stealth he
|
|
moved quickly through the trees, up-wind, in the direction
|
|
of his prey. Presently he came upon it--a lone warrior
|
|
treading softly through the jungle.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan followed close above his quarry, waiting for a
|
|
clearer space in which to hurl his rope. As he stalked
|
|
the unconscious man, new thoughts presented themselves to
|
|
the ape-man--thoughts born of the refining influences of
|
|
civilization, and of its cruelties. It came to him that
|
|
seldom if ever did civilized man kill a fellow being without
|
|
some pretext, however slight. It was true that Tarzan wished
|
|
this man's weapons and ornaments, but was it necessary to take
|
|
his life to obtain them?
|
|
|
|
The longer he thought about it, the more repugnant became
|
|
the thought of taking human life needlessly; and thus
|
|
it happened that while he was trying to decide just what
|
|
to do, they had come to a little clearing, at the far side of
|
|
which lay a palisaded village of beehive huts.
|
|
|
|
As the warrior emerged from the forest, Tarzan caught a
|
|
fleeting glimpse of a tawny hide worming its way through the
|
|
matted jungle grasses in his wake--it was Numa, the lion.
|
|
He, too, was stalking the black man. With the instant that
|
|
Tarzan realized the native's danger his attitude toward his
|
|
erstwhile prey altered completely--now he was a fellow man
|
|
threatened by a common enemy.
|
|
|
|
Numa was about to charge--there was little time in which
|
|
to compare various methods or weigh the probable results
|
|
of any. And then a number of things happened, almost
|
|
simultaneously--the lion sprang from his ambush toward the
|
|
retreating black--Tarzan cried out in warning--and the black
|
|
turned just in time to see Numa halted in mid-flight by a
|
|
slender strand of grass rope, the noosed end of which
|
|
had fallen cleanly about his neck.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man had acted so quickly that he had been
|
|
unable to prepare himself to withstand the strain and shock
|
|
of Numa's great weight upon the rope, and so it was that
|
|
though the rope stopped the beast before his mighty talons
|
|
could fasten themselves in the flesh of the black, the strain
|
|
overbalanced Tarzan, who came tumbling to the ground not
|
|
six paces from the infuriated animal. Like lightning Numa
|
|
turned upon this new enemy, and, defenseless as he was,
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes was nearer to death that instant than he
|
|
ever before had been. It was the black who saved him.
|
|
The warrior realized in an instant that he owed his life
|
|
to this strange white man, and he also saw that only a miracle
|
|
could save his preserver from those fierce yellow fangs that
|
|
had been so near to his own flesh.
|
|
|
|
With the quickness of thought his spear arm flew back,
|
|
and then shot forward with all the force of the sinewy
|
|
muscles that rolled beneath the shimmering ebon hide.
|
|
True to its mark the iron-shod weapon flew, transfixing
|
|
Numa's sleek carcass from the right groin to beneath the
|
|
left shoulder. With a hideous scream of rage and pain the
|
|
brute turned again upon the black. A dozen paces he had
|
|
gone when Tarzan's rope brought him to a stand once more--
|
|
then he wheeled again upon the ape-man, only to feel the
|
|
painful prick of a barbed arrow as it sank half its length
|
|
in his quivering flesh. Again he stopped, and by this time
|
|
Tarzan had run twice around the stem of a great tree with
|
|
his rope, and made the end fast.
|
|
|
|
The black saw the trick, and grinned, but Tarzan knew
|
|
that Numa must be quickly finished before those mighty
|
|
teeth had found and parted the slender cord that held him.
|
|
It was a matter of but an instant to reach the black's side
|
|
and drag his long knife from its scabbard. Then he signed
|
|
the warrior to continue to shoot arrows into the great beast
|
|
while he attempted to close in upon him with the knife; so
|
|
as one tantalized upon one side, the other sneaked cautiously
|
|
in upon the other. Numa was furious. He raised his voice
|
|
in a perfect frenzy of shrieks, growls, and hideous moans,
|
|
the while he reared upon his hind legs in futile attempt
|
|
to reach first one and then the other of his tormentors.
|
|
|
|
But at length the agile ape-man saw his chance, and rushed
|
|
in upon the beast's left side behind the mighty shoulder.
|
|
A giant arm encircled the tawny throat, and a long blade sank
|
|
once, true as a die, into the fierce heart. Then Tarzan arose,
|
|
and the black man and the white looked into each other's eyes
|
|
across the body of their kill--and the black made the sign of
|
|
peace and friendship, and Tarzan of the Apes answered in kind.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 15
|
|
|
|
|
|
From Ape to Savage
|
|
|
|
|
|
The noise of their battle with Numa had drawn an excited
|
|
horde of savages from the nearby village, and a moment
|
|
after the lion's death the two men were surrounded by
|
|
lithe, ebon warriors, gesticulating and jabbering--a
|
|
thousand questions that drowned each ventured reply.
|
|
|
|
And then the women came, and the children--eager, curious,
|
|
and, at sight of Tarzan, more questioning than ever.
|
|
The ape-man's new friend finally succeeded in making
|
|
himself heard, and when he had done talking the men and
|
|
women of the village vied with one another in doing honor
|
|
to the strange creature who had saved their fellow and
|
|
battled single-handed with fierce Numa.
|
|
|
|
At last they led him back to their village, where they
|
|
brought him gifts of fowl, and goats, and cooked food.
|
|
When he pointed to their weapons the warriors hastened
|
|
to fetch spear, shield, arrows, and a bow. His friend of the
|
|
encounter presented him with the knife with which he had
|
|
killed Numa. There was nothing in all the village he could
|
|
not have had for the asking.
|
|
|
|
How much easier this was, thought Tarzan, than murder
|
|
and robbery to supply his wants. How close he had been to
|
|
killing this man whom he never had seen before, and who
|
|
now was manifesting by every primitive means at his
|
|
command friendship and affection for his would-be slayer.
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes was ashamed. Hereafter he would at least wait
|
|
until he knew men deserved it before he thought of killing them.
|
|
|
|
The idea recalled Rokoff to his mind. He wished that he
|
|
might have the Russian to himself in the dark jungle for a
|
|
few minutes. There was a man who deserved killing if ever
|
|
any one did. And if he could have seen Rokoff at that moment
|
|
as he assiduously bent every endeavor to the pleasant task
|
|
of ingratiating himself into the affections of the beautiful
|
|
Miss Strong, he would have longed more than ever to mete
|
|
out to the man the fate he deserved.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan's first night with the savages was devoted to a wild
|
|
orgy in his honor. There was feasting, for the hunters had
|
|
brought in an antelope and a zebra as trophies of their skill,
|
|
and gallons of the weak native beer were consumed. As the
|
|
warriors danced in the firelight, Tarzan was again impressed
|
|
by the symmetry of their figures and the regularity of their
|
|
features--the flat noses and thick lips of the typical West
|
|
Coast savage were entirely missing. In repose the faces of the
|
|
men were intelligent and dignified, those of the women
|
|
ofttimes prepossessing.
|
|
|
|
It was during this dance that the ape-man first noticed
|
|
that some of the men and many of the women wore ornaments
|
|
of gold--principally anklets and armlets of great weight,
|
|
apparently beaten out of the solid metal. When he
|
|
expressed a wish to examine one of these, the owner removed
|
|
it from her person and insisted, through the medium of signs,
|
|
that Tarzan accept it as a gift. A close scrutiny of the
|
|
bauble convinced the ape-man that the article was of
|
|
virgin gold, and he was surprised, for it was the first time
|
|
that he had ever seen golden ornaments among the savages
|
|
of Africa, other than the trifling baubles those near the
|
|
coast had purchased or stolen from Europeans. He tried
|
|
to ask them from whence the metal came, but he could not
|
|
make them understand.
|
|
|
|
When the dance was done Tarzan signified his intention
|
|
to leave them, but they almost implored him to accept the
|
|
hospitality of a great hut which the chief set apart for his
|
|
sole use. He tried to explain that he would return in the
|
|
morning, but they could not understand. When he finally
|
|
walked away from them toward the side of the village opposite
|
|
the gate, they were still further mystified as to his intentions.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan, however, knew just what he was about. In the
|
|
past he had had experience with the rodents and vermin
|
|
that infest every native village, and, while he was not
|
|
overscrupulous about such matters, he much preferred the
|
|
fresh air of the swaying trees to the fetid atmosphere of a hut.
|
|
|
|
The natives followed him to where a great tree overhung
|
|
the palisade, and as Tarzan leaped for a lower branch
|
|
and disappeared into the foliage above, precisely after the
|
|
manner of Manu, the monkey, there were loud exclamations
|
|
of surprise and astonishment. For half an hour they called
|
|
to him to return, but as he did not answer them they at
|
|
last desisted, and sought the sleeping-mats within their huts.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan went back into the forest a short distance until
|
|
he had found a tree suited to his primitive requirements,
|
|
and then, curling himself in a great crotch, he fell
|
|
immediately into a deep sleep.
|
|
|
|
The following morning he dropped into the village street
|
|
as suddenly as he had disappeared the preceding night.
|
|
For a moment the natives were startled and afraid, but when
|
|
they recognized their guest of the night before they
|
|
welcomed him with shouts and laughter. That day he
|
|
accompanied a party of warriors to the nearby plains on a
|
|
great hunt, and so dexterous did they find this white man
|
|
with their own crude weapons that another bond of respect
|
|
and admiration was thereby wrought.
|
|
|
|
For weeks Tarzan lived with his savage friends, hunting
|
|
buffalo, antelope, and zebra for meat, and elephant for ivory.
|
|
Quickly he learned their simple speech, their native customs,
|
|
and the ethics of their wild, primitive tribal life.
|
|
He found that they were not cannibals--that they looked
|
|
with loathing and contempt upon men who ate men.
|
|
|
|
Busuli, the warrior whom he had stalked to the village,
|
|
told him many of the tribal legends--how, many years
|
|
before, his people had come many long marches from the
|
|
north; how once they had been a great and powerful tribe;
|
|
and how the slave raiders had wrought such havoc among
|
|
them with their death-dealing guns that they had been
|
|
reduced to a mere remnant of their former numbers and power.
|
|
|
|
"They hunted us down as one hunts a fierce beast," said Busuli.
|
|
"There was no mercy in them. When it was not slaves they
|
|
sought it was ivory, but usually it was both. Our men were
|
|
killed and our women driven away like sheep. We fought
|
|
against them for many years, but our arrows and spears
|
|
could not prevail against the sticks which spit fire
|
|
and lead and death to many times the distance that our
|
|
mightiest warrior could place an arrow. At last, when my
|
|
father was a young man, the Arabs came again, but our
|
|
warriors saw them a long way off, and Chowambi, who was
|
|
chief then, told his people to gather up their belongings
|
|
and come away with him--that he would lead them far to
|
|
the south until they found a spot to which the Arab raiders
|
|
did not come.
|
|
|
|
"And they did as he bid, carrying all their belongings,
|
|
including many tusks of ivory. For months they wandered,
|
|
suffering untold hardships and privations, for much of the
|
|
way was through dense jungle, and across mighty mountains,
|
|
but finally they came to this spot, and although they sent
|
|
parties farther on to search for an even better location,
|
|
none has ever been found."
|
|
|
|
"And the raiders have never found you here?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"About a year ago a small party of Arabs and Manyuema
|
|
stumbled upon us, but we drove them off, killing many.
|
|
For days we followed them, stalking them for the wild beasts
|
|
they are, picking them off one by one, until but a handful
|
|
remained, but these escaped us."
|
|
|
|
As Busuli talked he fingered a heavy gold armlet that
|
|
encircled the glossy hide of his left arm. Tarzan's eyes
|
|
had been upon the ornament, but his thoughts were elsewhere.
|
|
Presently he recalled the question he had tried to ask when
|
|
he first came to the tribe--the question he could not at that
|
|
time make them understand. For weeks he had forgotten so trivial
|
|
a thing as gold, for he had been for the time a truly
|
|
primeval man with no thought beyond today. But of a sudden
|
|
the sight of gold awakened the sleeping civilization that was
|
|
in him, and with it came the lust for wealth. That lesson
|
|
Tarzan had learned well in his brief experience of the ways
|
|
of civilized man. He knew that gold meant power and pleasure.
|
|
He pointed to the bauble.
|
|
|
|
"From whence came the yellow metal, Busuli?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
The black pointed toward the southeast.
|
|
|
|
"A moon's march away--maybe more," he replied.
|
|
|
|
"Have you been there?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"No, but some of our people were there years ago, when
|
|
my father was yet a young man. One of the parties that
|
|
searched farther for a location for the tribe when first they
|
|
settled here came upon a strange people who wore many
|
|
ornaments of yellow metal. Their spears were tipped with it,
|
|
as were their arrows, and they cooked in vessels made all
|
|
of solid metal like my armlet.
|
|
|
|
"They lived in a great village in huts that were built of
|
|
stone and surrounded by a great wall. They were very fierce,
|
|
rushing out and falling upon our warriors before ever they
|
|
learned that their errand was a peaceful one. Our men were
|
|
few in number, but they held their own at the top of a little
|
|
rocky hill, until the fierce people went back at sunset into their
|
|
wicked city. Then our warriors came down from their hill,
|
|
and, after taking many ornaments of yellow metal from the
|
|
bodies of those they had slain, they marched back out of
|
|
the valley, nor have any of us ever returned.
|
|
|
|
"They are wicked people--neither white like you nor black
|
|
like me, but covered with hair as is Bolgani, the gorilla.
|
|
Yes, they are very bad people indeed, and Chowambi was
|
|
glad to get out of their country."
|
|
|
|
"And are none of those alive who were with Chowambi, and saw
|
|
these strange people and their wonderful city?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"Waziri, our chief, was there," replied Busuli. "He was
|
|
a very young man then, but he accompanied Chowambi,
|
|
who was his father."
|
|
|
|
So that night Tarzan asked Waziri about it, and Waziri, who
|
|
was now an old man, said that it was a long march, but that
|
|
the way was not difficult to follow. He remembered it well.
|
|
|
|
"For ten days we followed this river which runs beside
|
|
our village. Up toward its source we traveled until on the
|
|
tenth day we came to a little spring far up upon the side of a
|
|
lofty mountain range. In this little spring our river is born.
|
|
The next day we crossed over the top of the mountain, and
|
|
upon the other side we came to a tiny rivulet which we
|
|
followed down into a great forest. For many days we
|
|
traveled along the winding banks of the rivulet that had now
|
|
become a river, until we came to a greater river, into which
|
|
it emptied, and which ran down the center of a mighty valley.
|
|
|
|
"Then we followed this large river toward its source, hoping
|
|
to come to more open land. After twenty days of marching
|
|
from the time we had crossed the mountains and passed out of
|
|
our own country we came again to another range of mountains.
|
|
Up their side we followed the great river, that had now
|
|
dwindled to a tiny rivulet, until we came to a little cave
|
|
near the mountain-top. In this cave was the mother of the river.
|
|
|
|
"I remember that we camped there that night, and that it
|
|
was very cold, for the mountains were high. The next day
|
|
we decided to ascend to the top of the mountains, and see
|
|
what the country upon the other side looked like, and if
|
|
it seemed no better than that which we had so far traversed
|
|
we would return to our village and tell them that they had
|
|
already found the best place in all the world to live.
|
|
|
|
"And so we clambered up the face of the rocky cliffs
|
|
until we reached the summit, and there from a flat
|
|
mountain-top we saw, not far beneath us, a shallow valley,
|
|
very narrow; and upon the far side of it was a great village
|
|
of stone, much of which had fallen and crumbled into decay."
|
|
|
|
The balance of Waziri's story was practically the same as
|
|
that which Busuli had told.
|
|
|
|
"I should like to go there and see this strange city," said
|
|
Tarzan, "and get some of their yellow metal from its fierce
|
|
inhabitants."
|
|
|
|
"It is a long march," replied Waziri, "and I am an old
|
|
man, but if you will wait until the rainy season is over and
|
|
the rivers have gone down I will take some of my warriors
|
|
and go with you."
|
|
|
|
And Tarzan had to be contented with that arrangement,
|
|
though he would have liked it well enough to have set off the
|
|
next morning--he was as impatient as a child. Really Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes was but a child, or a primeval man, which is
|
|
the same thing in a way.
|
|
|
|
The next day but one a small party of hunters returned to
|
|
the village from the south to report a large herd of elephant
|
|
some miles away. By climbing trees they had had a fairly
|
|
good view of the herd, which they described as numbering
|
|
several large tuskers, a great many cows and calves,
|
|
and full-grown bulls whose ivory would be worth having.
|
|
|
|
The balance of the day and evening was filled with preparation
|
|
for a great hunt--spears were overhauled, quivers were
|
|
replenished, bows were restrung; and all the while the
|
|
village witch doctor passed through the busy throngs disposing
|
|
of various charms and amulets designed to protect the possessor
|
|
from hurt, or bring him good fortune in the morrow's hunt.
|
|
|
|
At dawn the hunters were off. There were fifty sleek, black
|
|
warriors, and in their midst, lithe and active as a young
|
|
forest god, strode Tarzan of the Apes, his brown skin
|
|
contrasting oddly with the ebony of his companions. Except for
|
|
color he was one of them. His ornaments and weapons were
|
|
the same as theirs--he spoke their language--he laughed
|
|
and joked with them, and leaped and shouted in the brief
|
|
wild dance that preceded their departure from the village, to
|
|
all intent and purpose a savage among savages. Nor, had he
|
|
questioned himself, is it to be doubted that he would have
|
|
admitted that he was far more closely allied to these people
|
|
and their life than to the Parisian friends whose ways,
|
|
apelike, he had successfully mimicked for a few short months.
|
|
|
|
But he did think of D'Arnot, and a grin of amusement
|
|
showed his strong white teeth as he pictured the immaculate
|
|
Frenchman's expression could he by some means see Tarzan
|
|
as he was that minute. Poor Paul, who had prided himself on
|
|
having eradicated from his friend the last traces of wild savagery.
|
|
"How quickly have I fallen!" thought Tarzan; but in his heart
|
|
he did not consider it a fall--rather, he pitied the poor
|
|
creatures of Paris, penned up like prisoners in their silly
|
|
clothes, and watched by policemen all their poor lives,
|
|
that they might do nothing that was not entirely artificial
|
|
and tiresome.
|
|
|
|
A two hours' march brought them close to the vicinity in
|
|
which the elephants had been seen the previous day.
|
|
From there on they moved very quietly indeed searching for
|
|
the spoor of the great beasts. At length they found the
|
|
well-marked trail along which the herd had passed not many
|
|
hours before. In single file they followed it for about half
|
|
an hour. It was Tarzan who first raised his hand in signal
|
|
that the quarry was at hand--his sensitive nose had warned
|
|
him that the elephants were not far ahead of them.
|
|
|
|
The blacks were skeptical when he told them how he knew.
|
|
|
|
"Come with me," said Tarzan, "and we shall see."
|
|
|
|
With the agility of a squirrel he sprang into a tree and ran
|
|
nimbly to the top. One of the blacks followed more slowly
|
|
and carefully. When he had reached a lofty limb beside the
|
|
ape-man the latter pointed to the south, and there, some few
|
|
hundred yards away, the black saw a number of huge black
|
|
backs swaying back and forth above the top of the lofty
|
|
jungle grasses. He pointed the direction to the watchers below,
|
|
indicating with his fingers the number of beasts he could count.
|
|
|
|
Immediately the hunters started toward the elephants.
|
|
The black in the tree hastened down, but Tarzan stalked, after
|
|
his own fashion, along the leafy way of the middle terrace.
|
|
|
|
It is no child's play to hunt wild elephants with the crude
|
|
weapons of primitive man. Tarzan knew that few native
|
|
tribes ever attempted it, and the fact that his tribe did so
|
|
gave him no little pride--already he was commencing to
|
|
think of himself as a member of the little community.
|
|
As Tarzan moved silently through the trees he saw the
|
|
warriors below creeping in a half circle upon the still
|
|
unsuspecting elephants. Finally they were within sight of the
|
|
great beasts. Now they singled out two large tuskers, and at
|
|
a signal the fifty men rose from the ground where they had
|
|
lain concealed, and hurled their heavy war spears at the two
|
|
marked beasts. There was not a single miss; twenty-five
|
|
spears were embedded in the sides of each of the giant animals.
|
|
One never moved from the spot where it stood when the
|
|
avalanche of spears struck it, for two, perfectly aimed,
|
|
had penetrated its heart, and it lunged forward upon
|
|
its knees, rolling to the ground without a struggle.
|
|
|
|
The other, standing nearly head-on toward the hunters,
|
|
had not proved so good a mark, and though every spear
|
|
struck not one entered the great heart. For a moment the
|
|
huge bull stood trumpeting in rage and pain, casting about
|
|
with its little eyes for the author of its hurt. The blacks
|
|
had faded into the jungle before the weak eyes of the monster
|
|
had fallen upon any of them, but now he caught the sound of
|
|
their retreat, and, amid a terrific crashing of underbrush
|
|
and branches, he charged in the direction of the noise.
|
|
|
|
It so happened that chance sent him in the direction of
|
|
Busuli, whom he was overtaking so rapidly that it was as
|
|
though the black were standing still instead of racing at full
|
|
speed to escape the certain death which pursued him.
|
|
Tarzan had witnessed the entire performance from the branches
|
|
of a nearby tree, and now that he saw his friend's peril he
|
|
raced toward the infuriated beast with loud cries, hoping to
|
|
distract him.
|
|
|
|
But it had been as well had he saved his breath, for the
|
|
brute was deaf and blind to all else save the particular
|
|
object of his rage that raced futilely before him.
|
|
And now Tarzan saw that only a miracle could save Busuli,
|
|
and with the same unconcern with which he had once hunted
|
|
this very man he hurled himself into the path of the elephant
|
|
to save the black warrior's life.
|
|
|
|
He still grasped his spear, and while Tantor was yet six
|
|
or eight paces behind his prey, a sinewy white warrior
|
|
dropped as from the heavens, almost directly in his path.
|
|
With a vicious lunge the elephant swerved to the right to
|
|
dispose of this temerarious foeman who dared intervene
|
|
between himself and his intended victim; but he had not
|
|
reckoned on the lightning quickness that could galvanize
|
|
those steel muscles into action so marvelously swift as to
|
|
baffle even a keener eyesight than Tantor's.
|
|
|
|
And so it happened that before the elephant realized that
|
|
his new enemy had leaped from his path Tarzan had driven
|
|
his iron-shod spear from behind the massive shoulder straight
|
|
into the fierce heart, and the colossal pachyderm had toppled
|
|
to his death at the feet of the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
Busuli had not beheld the manner of his deliverance, but
|
|
Waziri, the old chief, had seen, and several of the other
|
|
warriors, and they hailed Tarzan with delight as they swarmed
|
|
about him and his great kill. When he leaped upon the mighty
|
|
carcass, and gave voice to the weird challenge with which he
|
|
announced a great victory, the blacks shrank back in fear,
|
|
for to them it marked the brutal Bolgani, whom they feared
|
|
fully as much as they feared Numa, the lion; but with a fear
|
|
with which was mixed a certain uncanny awe of the manlike
|
|
thing to which they attributed supernatural powers.
|
|
|
|
But when Tarzan lowered his raised head and smiled upon
|
|
them they were reassured, though they did not understand.
|
|
Nor did they ever fully understand this strange creature
|
|
who ran through the trees as quickly as Manu, yet was even
|
|
more at home upon the ground than themselves; who was
|
|
except as to color like unto themselves, yet as powerful
|
|
as ten of them, and singlehanded a match for the fiercest
|
|
denizens of the fierce jungle.
|
|
|
|
When the remainder of the warriors had gathered, the
|
|
hunt was again taken up and the stalking of the retreating
|
|
herd once more begun; but they had covered a bare hundred
|
|
yards when from behind them, at a great distance,
|
|
sounded faintly a strange popping.
|
|
|
|
For an instant they stood like a group of statuary,
|
|
intently listening. Then Tarzan spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Guns!" he said. "The village is being attacked."
|
|
|
|
"Come!" cried Waziri. "The Arab raiders have returned
|
|
with their cannibal slaves for our ivory and our women!"
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 16
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Ivory Raiders
|
|
|
|
|
|
Waziri's warriors marched at a rapid trot through the
|
|
jungle in the direction of the village. For a few minutes,
|
|
the sharp cracking of guns ahead warned them to haste,
|
|
but finally the reports dwindled to an occasional shot,
|
|
presently ceasing altogether. Nor was this less ominous
|
|
than the rattle of musketry, for it suggested but a single
|
|
solution to the little band of rescuers--that the illy
|
|
garrisoned village had already succumbed to the onslaught
|
|
of a superior force.
|
|
|
|
The returning hunters had covered a little more than
|
|
three miles of the five that had separated them from the
|
|
village when they met the first of the fugitives who had
|
|
escaped the bullets and clutches of the foe. There were a
|
|
dozen women, youths, and girls in the party, and so excited
|
|
were they that they could scarce make themselves understood
|
|
as they tried to relate to Waziri the calamity that had
|
|
befallen his people.
|
|
|
|
"They are as many as the leaves of the forest," cried one
|
|
of the women, in attempting to explain the enemy's force.
|
|
"There are many Arabs and countless Manyuema, and they
|
|
all have guns. They crept close to the village before we
|
|
knew that they were about, and then, with many shouts,
|
|
they rushed in upon us, shooting down men, and women,
|
|
and children. Those of us who could fled in all directions
|
|
into the jungle, but more were killed. I do not know whether
|
|
they took any prisoners or not--they seemed only bent
|
|
upon killing us all. The Manyuema called us many names,
|
|
saying that they would eat us all before they left our
|
|
country--that this was our punishment for killing their
|
|
friends last year. I did not hear much, for I ran away quickly."
|
|
|
|
The march toward the village was now resumed, more
|
|
slowly and with greater stealth, for Waziri knew that it was
|
|
too late to rescue--their only mission could be one of revenge.
|
|
Inside the next mile a hundred more fugitives were met.
|
|
There were many men among these, and so the fighting
|
|
strength of the party was augmented.
|
|
|
|
Now a dozen warriors were sent creeping ahead to reconnoiter.
|
|
Waziri remained with the main body, which advanced in a thin
|
|
line that spread in a great crescent through the forest.
|
|
By the chief's side walked Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
Presently one of the scouts returned. He had come within
|
|
sight of the village.
|
|
|
|
"They are all within the palisade," he whispered.
|
|
|
|
"Good!" said Waziri. "We shall rush in upon them and
|
|
slay them all," and he made ready to send word along the
|
|
line that they were to halt at the edge of the clearing until
|
|
they saw him rush toward the village--then all were to follow.
|
|
|
|
"Wait!" cautioned Tarzan. "If there are even fifty guns
|
|
within the palisade we shall be repulsed and slaughtered.
|
|
Let me go alone through the trees, so that I may look down
|
|
upon them from above, and see just how many there be, and
|
|
what chance we might have were we to charge. It were foolish
|
|
to lose a single man needlessly if there be no hope of success.
|
|
I have an idea that we can accomplish more by cunning than
|
|
by force. Will you wait, Waziri?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said the old chief. "Go!"
|
|
|
|
So Tarzan sprang into the trees and disappeared in the
|
|
direction of the village. He moved more cautiously than was
|
|
his wont, for he knew that men with guns could reach him
|
|
quite as easily in the treetops as on the ground. And when
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes elected to adopt stealth, no creature in
|
|
all the jungle could move so silently or so completely efface
|
|
himself from the sight of an enemy.
|
|
|
|
In five minutes he had wormed his way to the great tree
|
|
that overhung the palisade at one end of the village, and
|
|
from his point of vantage looked down upon the savage
|
|
horde beneath. He counted fifty Arabs and estimated that
|
|
there were five times as many Manyuema. The latter were
|
|
gorging themselves upon food and, under the very noses of
|
|
their white masters, preparing the gruesome feast which is the
|
|
PIECE DE RESISTANCE that follows a victory in which the
|
|
bodies of their slain enemies fall into their horrid hands.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man saw that to charge that wild horde, armed
|
|
as they were with guns, and barricaded behind the locked
|
|
gates of the village, would be a futile task, and so he
|
|
returned to Waziri and advised him to wait; that he, Tarzan,
|
|
had a better plan.
|
|
|
|
But a moment before one of the fugitives had related to
|
|
Waziri the story of the atrocious murder of the old chief's
|
|
wife, and so crazed with rage was the old man that he cast
|
|
discretion to the winds. Calling his warriors about him, he
|
|
commanded them to charge, and, with brandishing spears
|
|
and savage yells, the little force of scarcely more than a
|
|
hundred dashed madly toward the village gates. Before the
|
|
clearing had been half crossed the Arabs opened up a
|
|
withering fire from behind the palisade.
|
|
|
|
With the first volley Waziri fell. The speed of the
|
|
chargers slackened. Another volley brought down a half
|
|
dozen more. A few reached the barred gates, only to be shot
|
|
in their tracks, without the ghost of a chance to gain the
|
|
inside of the palisade, and then the whole attack crumpled,
|
|
and the remaining warriors scampered back into the forest.
|
|
As they ran the raiders opened the gates, rushing after them,
|
|
to complete the day's work with the utter extermination of
|
|
the tribe. Tarzan had been among the last to turn back toward
|
|
the forest, and now, as he ran slowly, he turned from time to
|
|
time to speed a well-aimed arrow into the body of a pursuer.
|
|
|
|
Once within the jungle, he found a little knot of determined
|
|
blacks waiting to give battle to the oncoming horde,
|
|
but Tarzan cried to them to scatter, keeping out of
|
|
harm's way until they could gather in force after dark.
|
|
|
|
"Do as I tell you," he urged, "and I will lead you to
|
|
victory over these enemies of yours. Scatter through the
|
|
forest, picking up as many stragglers as you can find, and at
|
|
night, if you think that you have been followed, come by
|
|
roundabout ways to the spot where we killed the elephants today.
|
|
Then I will explain my plan, and you will find that it is good.
|
|
You cannot hope to pit your puny strength and simple weapons
|
|
against the numbers and the guns of the Arabs and the Manyuema."
|
|
|
|
They finally assented. "When you scatter," explained Tarzan,
|
|
in conclusion, "your foes will have to scatter to follow you,
|
|
and so it may happen that if you are watchful you can drop
|
|
many a Manyuema with your arrows from behind some great trees."
|
|
|
|
They had barely time to hasten away farther into the forest
|
|
before the first of the raiders had crossed the clearing and
|
|
entered it in pursuit of them.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan ran a short distance along the ground before he
|
|
took to the trees. Then he raced quickly to the upper terrace,
|
|
there doubling on his tracks and making his way rapidly
|
|
back toward the village. Here he found that every Arab and
|
|
Manyuema had joined in the pursuit, leaving the village
|
|
deserted except for the chained prisoners and a single guard.
|
|
|
|
The sentry stood at the open gate, looking in the direction
|
|
of the forest, so that he did not see the agile giant that
|
|
dropped to the ground at the far end of the village street.
|
|
With drawn bow the ape-man crept stealthily toward his
|
|
unsuspecting victim. The prisoners had already discovered
|
|
him, and with wide eyes filled with wonder and with hope
|
|
they watched their would-be rescuer. Now he halted not ten
|
|
paces from the unconscious Manyuema. The shaft was
|
|
drawn back its full length at the height of the keen gray
|
|
eye that sighted along its polished surface. There was a
|
|
sudden twang as the brown fingers released their hold, and
|
|
without a sound the raider sank forward upon his face, a
|
|
wooden shaft transfixing his heart and protruding a foot
|
|
from his black chest.
|
|
|
|
Then Tarzan turned his attention to the fifty women and
|
|
youths chained neck to neck on the long slave chain.
|
|
There was no releasing of the ancient padlocks in the time that
|
|
was left him, so the ape-man called to them to follow him as
|
|
they were, and, snatching the gun and cartridge belt from the
|
|
dead sentry, he led the now happy band out through the village
|
|
gate and into the forest upon the far side of the clearing.
|
|
|
|
It was a slow and arduous march, for the slave chain was new
|
|
to these people, and there were many delays as one of their
|
|
number would stumble and fall, dragging others down with her.
|
|
Then, too, Tarzan had been forced to make a wide detour to
|
|
avoid any possibility of meeting with returning raiders.
|
|
He was partially guided by occasional shots which
|
|
indicated that the Arab horde was still in touch with the
|
|
villagers; but he knew that if they would but follow his
|
|
advice there would be but few casualties other than on the
|
|
side of the marauders.
|
|
|
|
Toward dusk the firing ceased entirely, and Tarzan knew
|
|
that the Arabs had all returned to the village. He could
|
|
scarce repress a smile of triumph as he thought of their rage
|
|
on discovering that their guard had been killed and their
|
|
prisoners taken away. Tarzan had wished that he might have
|
|
taken some of the great store of ivory the village contained,
|
|
solely for the purpose of still further augmenting the wrath
|
|
of his enemies; but he knew that that was not necessary for
|
|
its salvation, since he already had a plan mapped out which
|
|
would effectually prevent the Arabs leaving the country with
|
|
a single tusk. And it would have been cruel to have needlessly
|
|
burdened these poor, overwrought women with the extra
|
|
weight of the heavy ivory.
|
|
|
|
It was after midnight when Tarzan, with his slow-moving
|
|
caravan, approached the spot where the elephants lay.
|
|
Long before they reached it they had been guided by the
|
|
huge fire the natives had built in the center of a hastily
|
|
improvised BOMA, partially for warmth and partially to
|
|
keep off chance lions.
|
|
|
|
When they had come close to the encampment Tarzan
|
|
called aloud to let them know that friends were coming.
|
|
It was a joyous reception the little party received when the
|
|
blacks within the BOMA saw the long file of fettered friends
|
|
and relatives enter the firelight. These had all been given up
|
|
as lost forever, as had Tarzan as well, so that the happy blacks
|
|
would have remained awake all night to feast on elephant
|
|
meat and celebrate the return of their fellows, had not
|
|
Tarzan insisted that they take what sleep they could, against
|
|
the work of the coming day.
|
|
|
|
At that, sleep was no easy matter, for the women who
|
|
had lost their men or their children in the day's massacre
|
|
and battle made night hideous with their continued wailing
|
|
and howling. Finally, however, Tarzan succeeded in silencing
|
|
them, on the plea that their noise would attract the Arabs to
|
|
their hiding-place, when all would be slaughtered.
|
|
|
|
When dawn came Tarzan explained his plan of battle to
|
|
the warriors, and without demur one and all agreed that it
|
|
was the safest and surest way in which to rid themselves of
|
|
their unwelcome visitors and be revenged for the murder of
|
|
their fellows.
|
|
|
|
First the women and children, with a guard of some
|
|
twenty old warriors and youths, were started southward, to
|
|
be entirely out of the zone of danger. They had instructions
|
|
to erect temporary shelter and construct a protecting BOMA
|
|
of thorn bush; for the plan of campaign which Tarzan had
|
|
chosen was one which might stretch out over many days,
|
|
or even weeks, during which time the warriors would not
|
|
return to the new camp.
|
|
|
|
Two hours after daylight a thin circle of black warriors
|
|
surrounded the village. At intervals one was perched high
|
|
in the branches of a tree which could overlook the palisade.
|
|
Presently a Manyuema within the village fell, pierced by a
|
|
single arrow. There had been no sound of attack--none of
|
|
the hideous war-cries or vainglorious waving of menacing
|
|
spears that ordinarily marks the attack of savages--just a
|
|
silent messenger of death from out of the silent forest.
|
|
|
|
The Arabs and their followers were thrown into a fine
|
|
rage at this unprecedented occurrence. They ran for the
|
|
gates, to wreak dire vengeance upon the foolhardy perpetrator
|
|
of the outrage; but they suddenly realized that they did
|
|
not know which way to turn to find the foe. As they stood
|
|
debating with many angry shouts and much gesticulating,
|
|
one of the Arabs sank silently to the ground in their very
|
|
midst--a thin arrow protruding from his heart.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan had placed the finest marksmen of the tribe in the
|
|
surrounding trees, with directions never to reveal themselves
|
|
while the enemy was faced in their direction. As a black
|
|
released his messenger of death he would slink behind
|
|
the sheltering stem of the tree he had selected, nor would
|
|
he again aim until a watchful eye told him that none was
|
|
looking toward his tree.
|
|
|
|
Three times the Arabs started across the clearing in the
|
|
direction from which they thought the arrows came, but
|
|
each time another arrow would come from behind to take
|
|
its toll from among their number. Then they would turn and
|
|
charge in a new direction. Finally they set out upon a
|
|
determined search of the forest, but the blacks melted
|
|
before them, so that they saw no sign of an enemy.
|
|
|
|
But above them lurked a grim figure in the dense foliage
|
|
of the mighty trees--it was Tarzan of the Apes, hovering over
|
|
them as if he had been the shadow of death. Presently a
|
|
Manyuema forged ahead of his companions; there was none
|
|
to see from what direction death came, and so it came
|
|
quickly, and a moment later those behind stumbled over
|
|
the dead body of their comrade--the inevitable arrow piercing
|
|
the still heart.
|
|
|
|
It does not take a great deal of this manner of warfare to
|
|
get upon the nerves of white men, and so it is little to be
|
|
wondered at that the Manyuema were soon panic-stricken.
|
|
Did one forge ahead an arrow found his heart; did one lag
|
|
behind he never again was seen alive; did one stumble to
|
|
one side, even for a bare moment from the sight of his fellows,
|
|
he did not return--and always when they came upon
|
|
the bodies of their dead they found those terrible arrows
|
|
driven with the accuracy of superhuman power straight
|
|
through the victim's heart. But worse than all else was the
|
|
hideous fact that not once during the morning had they seen
|
|
or heard the slightest sign of an enemy other than the
|
|
pitiless arrows.
|
|
|
|
When finally they returned to the village it was no better.
|
|
Every now and then, at varying intervals that were maddening
|
|
in the terrible suspense they caused, a man would plunge
|
|
forward dead. The blacks besought their masters to leave
|
|
this terrible place, but the Arabs feared to take up the march
|
|
through the grim and hostile forest beset by this new and
|
|
terrible enemy while laden with the great store of ivory they
|
|
had found within the village; but, worse yet, they hated to
|
|
leave the ivory behind.
|
|
|
|
Finally the entire expedition took refuge within the thatched
|
|
huts--here, at least, they would be free from the arrows.
|
|
Tarzan, from the tree above the village, had marked the hut
|
|
into which the chief Arabs had gone, and, balancing himself
|
|
upon an overhanging limb, he drove his heavy spear with
|
|
all the force of his giant muscles through the thatched roof.
|
|
A howl of pain told him that it had found a mark.
|
|
With this parting salute to convince them that there was no
|
|
safety for them anywhere within the country, Tarzan returned
|
|
to the forest, collected his warriors, and withdrew a mile
|
|
to the south to rest and eat. He kept sentries in several
|
|
trees that commanded a view of the trail toward the
|
|
village, but there was no pursuit.
|
|
|
|
An inspection of his force showed not a single casualty--not
|
|
even a minor wound; while rough estimates of the enemies'
|
|
loss convinced the blacks that no fewer than twenty
|
|
had fallen before their arrows. They were wild with elation,
|
|
and were for finishing the day in one glorious rush upon the
|
|
village, during which they would slaughter the last of
|
|
their foemen. They were even picturing the various tortures
|
|
they would inflict, and gloating over the suffering of the
|
|
Manyuema, for whom they entertained a peculiar hatred,
|
|
when Tarzan put his foot down flatly upon the plan.
|
|
|
|
"You are crazy!" he cried. "I have shown you the only
|
|
way to fight these people. Already you have killed twenty
|
|
of them without the loss of a single warrior, whereas,
|
|
yesterday, following your own tactics, which you would now
|
|
renew, you lost at least a dozen, and killed not a single
|
|
Arab or Manyuema. You will fight just as I tell you to fight,
|
|
or I shall leave you and go back to my own country."
|
|
|
|
They were frightened when he threatened this, and
|
|
promised to obey him scrupulously if he would but promise
|
|
not to desert them.
|
|
|
|
"Very well," he said. "We shall return to the elephant
|
|
BOMA for the night. I have a plan to give the Arabs a little
|
|
taste of what they may expect if they remain in our country,
|
|
but I shall need no help. Come! If they suffer no more for
|
|
the balance of the day they will feel reassured, and the
|
|
relapse into fear will be even more nerve-racking than as
|
|
though we continued to frighten them all afternoon."
|
|
|
|
So they marched back to their camp of the previous night, and,
|
|
lighting great fires, ate and recounted the adventures of the
|
|
day until long after dark. Tarzan slept until midnight, then
|
|
he arose and crept into the Cimmerian blackness of the forest.
|
|
An hour later he came to the edge of the clearing before
|
|
the village. There was a camp-fire burning within the palisade.
|
|
The ape-man crept across the clearing until he stood before
|
|
the barred gates. Through the interstices he saw a lone sentry
|
|
sitting before the fire.
|
|
|
|
Quietly Tarzan went to the tree at the end of the village street.
|
|
He climbed softly to his place, and fitted an arrow to his bow.
|
|
For several minutes he tried to sight fairly upon the sentry,
|
|
but the waving branches and flickering firelight convinced
|
|
him that the danger of a miss was too great--he must touch
|
|
the heart full in the center to bring the quiet and sudden
|
|
death his plan required.
|
|
|
|
He had brought, besides, his bow, arrows, and rope, the
|
|
gun he had taken the previous day from the other sentry he
|
|
had killed. Caching all these in a convenient crotch of the
|
|
tree, he dropped lightly to the ground within the palisade,
|
|
armed only with his long knife. The sentry's back was toward him.
|
|
Like a cat Tarzan crept upon the dozing man. He was within
|
|
two paces of him now--another instant and the knife would
|
|
slide silently into the fellow's heart.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan crouched for a spring, for that is ever the quickest
|
|
and surest attack of the jungle beast--when the man,
|
|
warned, by some subtle sense, sprang to his feet and faced
|
|
the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 17
|
|
|
|
|
|
The White Chief of the Waziri
|
|
|
|
|
|
When the eyes of the black Manyuema savage fell
|
|
upon the strange apparition that confronted him with
|
|
menacing knife they went wide in horror. He forgot
|
|
the gun within his hands; he even forgot to cry out--his
|
|
one thought was to escape this fearsome-looking white savage,
|
|
this giant of a man upon whose massive rolling muscles and
|
|
mighty chest the flickering firelight played.
|
|
|
|
But before he could turn Tarzan was upon him, and then
|
|
the sentry thought to scream for aid, but it was too late.
|
|
A great hand was upon his windpipe, and he was being borne
|
|
to the earth. He battled furiously but futilely--with the
|
|
grim tenacity of a bulldog those awful fingers were clinging
|
|
to his throat. Swiftly and surely life was being choked from him.
|
|
His eyes bulged, his tongue protruded, his face turned
|
|
to a ghastly purplish hue--there was a convulsive tremor of
|
|
the stiffening muscles, and the Manyuema sentry lay quite still.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man threw the body across one of his broad
|
|
shoulders and, gathering up the fellow's gun, trotted silently
|
|
up the sleeping village street toward the tree that gave him
|
|
such easy ingress to the palisaded village. He bore the dead
|
|
sentry into the midst of the leafy maze above.
|
|
|
|
First he stripped the body of cartridge belt and such
|
|
ornaments as he craved, wedging it into a convenient crotch
|
|
while his nimble fingers ran over it in search of the loot
|
|
he could not plainly see in the dark. When he had finished he
|
|
took the gun that had belonged to the man, and walked
|
|
far out upon a limb, from the end of which he could obtain
|
|
a better view of the huts. Drawing a careful bead on the
|
|
beehive structure in which he knew the chief Arabs to be,
|
|
he pulled the trigger. Almost instantly there was an
|
|
answering groan. Tarzan smiled. He had made another lucky hit.
|
|
|
|
Following the shot there was a moment's silence in the
|
|
camp, and then Manyuema and Arab came pouring from
|
|
the huts like a swarm of angry hornets; but if the truth were
|
|
known they were even more frightened than they were angry.
|
|
The strain of the preceding day had wrought upon the
|
|
fears of both black and white, and now this single shot in
|
|
the night conjured all manner of terrible conjectures in
|
|
their terrified minds.
|
|
|
|
When they discovered that their sentry had disappeared,
|
|
their fears were in no way allayed, and as though to bolster
|
|
their courage by warlike actions, they began to fire
|
|
rapidly at the barred gates of the village, although no enemy
|
|
was in sight. Tarzan took advantage of the deafening roar of
|
|
this fusillade to fire into the mob beneath him.
|
|
|
|
No one heard his shot above the din of rattling musketry
|
|
in the street, but some who were standing close saw one
|
|
of their number crumple suddenly to the earth. When they
|
|
leaned over him he was dead. They were panic-stricken, and
|
|
it took all the brutal authority of the Arabs to keep the
|
|
Manyuema from rushing helter-skelter into the jungle--anywhere
|
|
to escape from this terrible village.
|
|
|
|
After a time they commenced to quiet down, and as no
|
|
further mysterious deaths occurred among them they took
|
|
heart again. But it was a short-lived respite, for just as
|
|
they had concluded that they would not be disturbed again
|
|
Tarzan gave voice to a weird moan, and as the raiders looked
|
|
up in the direction from which the sound seemed to come,
|
|
the ape-man, who stood swinging the dead body of the sentry
|
|
gently to and fro, suddenly shot the corpse far out above
|
|
their heads.
|
|
|
|
With howls of alarm the throng broke in all directions
|
|
to escape this new and terrible creature who seemed to be
|
|
springing upon them. To their fear-distorted imaginations the
|
|
body of the sentry, falling with wide-sprawled arms and
|
|
legs, assumed the likeness of a great beast of prey. In their
|
|
anxiety to escape, many of the blacks scaled the palisade,
|
|
while others tore down the bars from the gates and rushed
|
|
madly across the clearing toward the jungle.
|
|
|
|
For a time no one turned back toward the thing that had
|
|
frightened them, but Tarzan knew that they would in a moment,
|
|
and when they discovered that it was but the dead
|
|
body of their sentry, while they would doubtless be still
|
|
further terrified, he had a rather definite idea as to what
|
|
they would do, and so he faded silently away toward the
|
|
south, taking the moonlit upper terrace back toward the
|
|
camp of the Waziri.
|
|
|
|
Presently one of the Arabs turned and saw that the thing
|
|
that had leaped from the tree upon them lay still and quiet
|
|
where it had fallen in the center of the village street.
|
|
Cautiously he crept back toward it until he saw that it was
|
|
but a man. A moment later he was beside the figure, and in
|
|
another had recognized it as the corpse of the Manyuema
|
|
who had stood on guard at the village gate.
|
|
|
|
His companions rapidly gathered around at his call, and
|
|
after a moment's excited conversation they did precisely
|
|
what Tarzan had reasoned they would. Raising their guns to
|
|
their shoulders, they poured volley after volley into the tree
|
|
from which the corpse had been thrown--had Tarzan remained
|
|
there he would have been riddled by a hundred bullets.
|
|
|
|
When the Arabs and Manyuema discovered that the only
|
|
marks of violence upon the body of their dead comrade
|
|
were giant finger prints upon his swollen throat they were
|
|
again thrown into deeper apprehension and despair.
|
|
That they were not even safe within a palisaded village
|
|
at night came as a distinct shock to them. That an enemy
|
|
could enter into the midst of their camp and kill their
|
|
sentry with bare hands seemed outside the bounds of reason,
|
|
and so the superstitious Manyuema commenced to attribute
|
|
their ill luck to supernatural causes; nor were the Arabs
|
|
able to offer any better explanation.
|
|
|
|
With at least fifty of their number flying through the black
|
|
jungle, and without the slightest knowledge of when their
|
|
uncanny foemen might resume the cold-blooded slaughter
|
|
they had commenced, it was a desperate band of cut-throats
|
|
that waited sleeplessly for the dawn. Only on the
|
|
promise of the Arabs that they would leave the village at
|
|
daybreak, and hasten onward toward their own land, would
|
|
the remaining Manyuema consent to stay at the village a
|
|
moment longer. Not even fear of their cruel masters was
|
|
sufficient to overcome this new terror.
|
|
|
|
And so it was that when Tarzan and his warriors returned
|
|
to the attack the next morning they found the raiders
|
|
prepared to march out of the village. The Manyuema were
|
|
laden with stolen ivory. As Tarzan saw it he grinned, for he
|
|
knew that they would not carry it far. Then he saw something
|
|
which caused him anxiety--a number of the Manyuema
|
|
were lighting torches in the remnant of the camp-fire.
|
|
They were about to fire the village.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was perched in a tall tree some hundred yards from
|
|
the palisade. Making a trumpet of his hands, he called loudly
|
|
in the Arab tongue: "Do not fire the huts, or we shall kill
|
|
you all! Do not fire the huts, or we shall kill you all!"
|
|
|
|
A dozen times he repeated it. The Manyuema hesitated,
|
|
then one of them flung his torch into the campfire.
|
|
The others were about to do the same when an Arab sprung
|
|
upon them with a stick, beating them toward the huts.
|
|
Tarzan could see that he was commanding them to fire the
|
|
little thatched dwellings. Then he stood erect upon the
|
|
swaying branch a hundred feet above the ground, and,
|
|
raising one of the Arab guns to his shoulder, took careful aim
|
|
and fired. With the report the Arab who was urging on his
|
|
men to burn the village fell in his tracks, and the
|
|
Manyuema threw away their torches and fled from the village.
|
|
The last Tarzan saw of them they were racing toward the jungle,
|
|
while their former masters knelt upon the ground and fired at them.
|
|
|
|
But however angry the Arabs might have been at the
|
|
insubordination of their slaves, they were at least convinced
|
|
that it would be the better part of wisdom to forego the
|
|
pleasure of firing the village that had given them two such
|
|
nasty receptions. In their hearts, however, they swore to
|
|
return again with such force as would enable them to sweep
|
|
the entire country for miles around, until no vestige of
|
|
human life remained.
|
|
|
|
They had looked in vain for the owner of the voice
|
|
which had frightened off the men who had been detailed
|
|
to put the torch to the huts, but not even the keenest eye
|
|
among them had been able to locate him. They had seen
|
|
the puff of smoke from the tree following the shot that
|
|
brought down the Arab, but, though a volley had immediately
|
|
been loosed into its foliage, there had been no indication
|
|
that it had been effective.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan was too intelligent to be caught in any such trap,
|
|
and so the report of his shot had scarcely died away before
|
|
the ape-man was on the ground and racing for another tree
|
|
a hundred yards away. Here he again found a suitable perch
|
|
from which he could watch the preparations of the raiders.
|
|
It occurred to him that he might have considerable more
|
|
fun with them, so again he called to them through
|
|
his improvised trumpet.
|
|
|
|
"Leave the ivory!" he cried. "Leave the ivory! Dead men
|
|
have no use for ivory!"
|
|
|
|
Some of the Manyuema started to lay down their loads,
|
|
but this was altogether too much for the avaricious Arabs.
|
|
With loud shouts and curses they aimed their guns full
|
|
upon the bearers, threatening instant death to any who
|
|
might lay down his load. They could give up firing the
|
|
village, but the thought of abandoning this enormous
|
|
fortune in ivory was quite beyond their conception--better
|
|
death than that.
|
|
|
|
And so they marched out of the village of the Waziri, and
|
|
on the shoulders of their slaves was the ivory ransom of a
|
|
score of kings. Toward the north they marched, back toward
|
|
their savage settlement in the wild and unknown country
|
|
which lies back from the Kongo in the uttermost depths
|
|
of The Great Forest, and on either side of them traveled
|
|
an invisible and relentless foe.
|
|
|
|
Under Tarzan's guidance the black Waziri warriors stationed
|
|
themselves along the trail on either side in the densest underbrush.
|
|
They stood at far intervals, and, as the column passed,
|
|
a single arrow or a heavy spear, well aimed, would pierce
|
|
a Manyuema or an Arab. Then the Waziri would melt into the
|
|
distance and run ahead to take his stand farther on.
|
|
They did not strike unless success were sure and the
|
|
danger of detection almost nothing, and so the arrows
|
|
and the spears were few and far between, but so persistent
|
|
and inevitable that the slow-moving column of heavy-laden
|
|
raiders was in a constant state of panic--panic at
|
|
the uncertainty of who the next would be to fall, and when.
|
|
|
|
It was with the greatest difficulty that the Arabs prevented
|
|
their men a dozen times from throwing away their burdens and
|
|
fleeing like frightened rabbits up the trail toward the north.
|
|
And so the day wore on--a frightful nightmare of a day for the
|
|
raiders--a day of weary but well-repaid work for the Waziri.
|
|
At night the Arabs constructed a rude BOMA in a little
|
|
clearing by a river, and went into camp.
|
|
|
|
At intervals during the night a rifle would bark close
|
|
above their heads, and one of the dozen sentries which
|
|
they now had posted would tumble to the ground. Such a
|
|
condition was insupportable, for they saw that by means of
|
|
these hideous tactics they would be completely wiped out, one
|
|
by one, without inflicting a single death upon their enemy.
|
|
But yet, with the persistent avariciousness of the
|
|
white man, the Arabs clung to their loot, and when morning
|
|
came forced the demoralized Manyuema to take up their
|
|
burdens of death and stagger on into the jungle.
|
|
|
|
For three days the withering column kept up its frightful march.
|
|
Each hour was marked by its deadly arrow or cruel spear.
|
|
The nights were made hideous by the barking of the invisible
|
|
gun that made sentry duty equivalent to a death sentence.
|
|
|
|
On the morning of the fourth day the Arabs were compelled
|
|
to shoot two of their blacks before they could compel
|
|
the balance to take up the hated ivory, and as they did so a
|
|
voice rang out, clear and strong, from the jungle: "Today
|
|
you die, oh, Manyuema, unless you lay down the ivory.
|
|
Fall upon your cruel masters and kill them! You have guns,
|
|
why do you not use them? Kill the Arabs, and we will not
|
|
harm you. We will take you back to our village and feed
|
|
you, and lead you out of our country in safety and in peace.
|
|
Lay down the ivory, and fall upon your masters--we will
|
|
help you. Else you die!"
|
|
|
|
As the voice died down the raiders stood as though turned
|
|
to stone. The Arabs eyed their Manyuema slaves; the slaves
|
|
looked first at one of their fellows, and then at another--they
|
|
were but waiting for some one to take the initiative.
|
|
There were some thirty Arabs left, and about one hundred
|
|
and fifty blacks. All were armed--even those who were
|
|
acting as porters had their rifles slung across their backs.
|
|
|
|
The Arabs drew together. The sheik ordered the Manyuema
|
|
to take up the march, and as he spoke he cocked his rifle
|
|
and raised it. But at the same instant one of the blacks
|
|
threw down his load, and, snatching his rifle from his back,
|
|
fired point-black at the group of Arabs. In an instant the
|
|
camp was a cursing, howling mass of demons, fighting with
|
|
guns and knives and pistols. The Arabs stood together, and
|
|
defended their lives valiantly, but with the rain of lead
|
|
that poured upon them from their own slaves, and the shower
|
|
of arrows and spears which now leaped from the surrounding
|
|
jungle aimed solely at them, there was little question
|
|
from the first what the outcome would be. In ten minutes
|
|
from the time the first porter had thrown down his load the
|
|
last of the Arabs lay dead.
|
|
|
|
When the firing had ceased Tarzan spoke again to the Manyuema:
|
|
|
|
"Take up our ivory, and return it to our village, from
|
|
whence you stole it. We shall not harm you."
|
|
|
|
For a moment the Manyuema hesitated. They had no
|
|
stomach to retrace that difficult three days' trail.
|
|
They talked together in low whispers, and one turned
|
|
toward the jungle, calling aloud to the voice that had
|
|
spoken to them from out of the foliage.
|
|
|
|
"How do we know that when you have us in your village you
|
|
will not kill us all?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"You do not know," replied Tarzan, "other than that we
|
|
have promised not to harm you if you will return our
|
|
ivory to us. But this you do know, that it lies within our
|
|
power to kill you all if you do not return as we direct,
|
|
and are we not more likely to do so if you anger us than
|
|
if you do as we bid?"
|
|
|
|
"Who are you that speaks the tongue of our Arab masters?"
|
|
cried the Manyuema spokesman. "Let us see you, and then
|
|
we shall give you our answer."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan stepped out of the jungle a dozen paces from them.
|
|
|
|
"Look!" he said. When they saw that he was white they
|
|
were filled with awe, for never had they seen a white savage
|
|
before, and at his great muscles and giant frame they were
|
|
struck with wonder and admiration.
|
|
|
|
"You may trust me," said Tarzan. "So long as you do as
|
|
I tell you, and harm none of my people, we shall do you
|
|
no hurt. Will you take up our ivory and return in peace to
|
|
our village, or shall we follow along your trail toward the
|
|
north as we have followed for the past three days?"
|
|
|
|
The recollection of the horrid days that had just passed
|
|
was the thing that finally decided the Manyuema, and so,
|
|
after a short conference, they took up their burdens and set
|
|
off to retrace their steps toward the village of the Waziri.
|
|
At the end of the third day they marched into the village gate,
|
|
and were greeted by the survivors of the recent massacre,
|
|
to whom Tarzan had sent a messenger in their temporary camp
|
|
to the south on the day that the raiders had quitted the
|
|
village, telling them that they might return in safety.
|
|
|
|
It took all the mastery and persuasion that Tarzan possessed
|
|
to prevent the Waziri falling on the Manyuema tooth
|
|
and nail, and tearing them to pieces, but when he had
|
|
explained that he had given his word that they would not be
|
|
molested if they carried the ivory back to the spot from
|
|
which they had stolen it, and had further impressed upon
|
|
his people that they owed their entire victory to him, they
|
|
finally acceded to his demands, and allowed the cannibals
|
|
to rest in peace within their palisade.
|
|
|
|
That night the village warriors held a big palaver to
|
|
celebrate their victories, and to choose a new chief.
|
|
Since old Waziri's death Tarzan had been directing the
|
|
warriors in battle, and the temporary command had been
|
|
tacitly conceded to him. There had been no time to choose
|
|
a new chief from among their own number, and, in fact,
|
|
so remarkably successful had they been under the ape-man's
|
|
generalship that they had had no wish to delegate the supreme
|
|
authority to another for fear that what they already had
|
|
gained might be lost. They had so recently seen the results
|
|
of running counter to this savage white man's advice in the
|
|
disastrous charge ordered by Waziri, in which he himself
|
|
had died, that it had not been difficult for them to accept
|
|
Tarzan's authority as final.
|
|
|
|
The principal warriors sat in a circle about a small fire
|
|
to discuss the relative merits of whomever might be suggested
|
|
as old Waziri's successor. It was Busuli who spoke first:
|
|
|
|
"Since Waziri is dead, leaving no son, there is but one
|
|
among us whom we know from experience is fitted to make
|
|
us a good king. There is only one who has proved that he
|
|
can successfully lead us against the guns of the white man,
|
|
and bring us easy victory without the loss of a single life.
|
|
There is only one, and that is the white man who has led
|
|
us for the past few days," and Busuli sprang to his feet, and
|
|
with uplifted spear and half-bent, crouching body commenced
|
|
to dance slowly about Tarzan, chanting in time to his steps:
|
|
"Waziri, king of the Waziri; Waziri, killer of Arabs;
|
|
Waziri, king of the Waziri."
|
|
|
|
One by one the other warriors signified their acceptance
|
|
of Tarzan as their king by joining in the solemn dance.
|
|
The women came and squatted about the rim of the circle,
|
|
beating upon tom-toms, clapping their hands in time to
|
|
the steps of the dancers, and joining in the chant of
|
|
the warriors. In the center of the circle sat Tarzan
|
|
of the Apes--Waziri, king of the Waziri, for, like his
|
|
predecessor, he was to take the name of his tribe as his own.
|
|
|
|
Faster and faster grew the pace of the dancers, louder and
|
|
louder their wild and savage shouts. The women rose and
|
|
fell in unison, shrieking now at the tops of their voices.
|
|
The spears were brandishing fiercely, and as the dancers stooped
|
|
down and beat their shields upon the hard-tramped earth of
|
|
the village street the whole sight was as terribly primeval
|
|
and savage as though it were being staged in the dim dawn
|
|
of humanity, countless ages in the past.
|
|
|
|
As the excitement waxed the ape-man sprang to his feet
|
|
and joined in the wild ceremony. In the center of the
|
|
circle of glittering black bodies he leaped and roared and
|
|
shook his heavy spear in the same mad abandon that enthralled
|
|
his fellow savages. The last remnant of his civilization was
|
|
forgotten--he was a primitive man to the fullest now; reveling
|
|
in the freedom of the fierce, wild life he loved, gloating in
|
|
his kingship among these wild blacks.
|
|
|
|
Ah, if Olga de Coude had but seen him then--could she
|
|
have recognized the well-dressed, quiet young man whose
|
|
well-bred face and irreproachable manners had so captivated
|
|
her but a few short months ago? And Jane Porter! Would
|
|
she have still loved this savage warrior chieftain, dancing
|
|
naked among his naked savage subjects? And D'Arnot!
|
|
Could D'Arnot have believed that this was the same man he
|
|
had introduced into half a dozen of the most select clubs
|
|
of Paris? What would his fellow peers in the House of
|
|
Lords have said had one pointed to this dancing giant, with
|
|
his barbaric headdress and his metal ornaments, and said:
|
|
"There, my lords, is John Clayton, Lord Greystoke."
|
|
|
|
And so Tarzan of the Apes came into a real kingship
|
|
among men--slowly but surely was he following the evolution
|
|
of his ancestors, for had he not started at the very bottom?
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 18
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Lottery of Death
|
|
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter had been the first of those in the lifeboat
|
|
to awaken the morning after the wreck of the LADY ALICE.
|
|
The other members of the party were asleep upon the thwarts
|
|
or huddled in cramped positions in the bottom of the boat.
|
|
|
|
When the girl realized that they had become separated
|
|
from the other boats she was filled with alarm. The sense
|
|
of utter loneliness and helplessness which the vast expanse
|
|
of deserted ocean aroused in her was so depressing that,
|
|
from the first, contemplation of the future held not the
|
|
slightest ray of promise for her. She was confident that
|
|
they were lost--lost beyond possibility of succor.
|
|
|
|
Presently Clayton awoke. It was several minutes before he
|
|
could gather his senses sufficiently to realize where he was,
|
|
or recall the disaster of the previous night. Finally his
|
|
bewildered eyes fell upon the girl.
|
|
|
|
"Jane!" he cried. "Thank God that we are together!"
|
|
|
|
"Look," said the girl dully, indicating the horizon with an
|
|
apathetic gesture. "We are all alone."
|
|
|
|
Clayton scanned the water in every direction.
|
|
|
|
"Where can they be?" he cried. "They cannot have gone down,
|
|
for there has been no sea, and they were afloat after the
|
|
yacht sank--I saw them all."
|
|
|
|
He awoke the other members of the party, and explained their plight.
|
|
|
|
"It is just as well that the boats are scattered, sir," said
|
|
one of the sailors. "They are all provisioned, so that they
|
|
do not need each other on that score, and should a storm
|
|
blow up they could be of no service to one another even if
|
|
they were together, but scattered about the ocean there is a
|
|
much better chance that one at least will be picked up, and
|
|
then a search will be at once started for the others.
|
|
Were we together there would be but one chance of rescue,
|
|
where now there may be four."
|
|
|
|
They saw the wisdom of his philosophy, and were cheered
|
|
by it, but their joy was short-lived, for when it was
|
|
decided that they should row steadily toward the east and
|
|
the continent, it was discovered that the sailors who had
|
|
been at the only two oars with which the boat had been
|
|
provided had fallen asleep at their work, and allowed both
|
|
to slip into the sea, nor were they in sight anywhere upon
|
|
the water.
|
|
|
|
During the angry words and recriminations which followed
|
|
the sailors nearly came to blows, but Clayton succeeded in
|
|
quieting them; though a moment later Monsieur Thuran almost
|
|
precipitated another row by making a nasty remark about the
|
|
stupidity of all Englishmen, and especially English sailors.
|
|
|
|
"Come, come, mates," spoke up one of the men, Tompkins,
|
|
who had taken no part in the altercation, "shootin'
|
|
off our bloomin' mugs won't get us nothin'. As Spider 'ere
|
|
said afore, we'll all bloody well be picked up, anyway, sez
|
|
'e, so wot's the use o' squabblin'? Let's eat, sez I."
|
|
|
|
"That's not a bad idea," said Monsieur Thuran, and then,
|
|
turning to the third sailor, Wilson, he said: "Pass one of
|
|
those tins aft, my good man."
|
|
|
|
"Fetch it yerself," retorted Wilson sullenly. "I ain't a-takin'
|
|
no orders from no--furriner--you ain't captain o' this ship yet."
|
|
|
|
The result was that Clayton himself had to get the tin,
|
|
and then another angry altercation ensued when one of the
|
|
sailors accused Clayton and Monsieur Thuran of conspiring to
|
|
control the provisions so that they could have the lion's share.
|
|
|
|
"Some one should take command of this boat," spoke up Jane Porter,
|
|
thoroughly disgusted with the disgraceful wrangling that had
|
|
marked the very opening of a forced companionship that might
|
|
last for many days. "It is terrible enough to be alone
|
|
in a frail boat on the Atlantic, without having the added
|
|
misery and danger of constant bickering and brawling among
|
|
the members of our party. You men should elect a leader,
|
|
and then abide by his decisions in all matters. There is
|
|
greater need for strict discipline here than there is
|
|
upon a well-ordered ship."
|
|
|
|
She had hoped before she voiced her sentiments that it
|
|
would not be necessary for her to enter into the transaction
|
|
at all, for she believed that Clayton was amply able to cope
|
|
with every emergency, but she had to admit that so far at
|
|
least he had shown no greater promise of successfully handling
|
|
the situation than any of the others, though he had at least
|
|
refrained from adding in any way to the unpleasantness, even
|
|
going so far as to give up the tin to the sailors when they
|
|
objected to its being opened by him.
|
|
|
|
The girl's words temporarily quieted the men, and finally it
|
|
was decided that the two kegs of water and the four tins of
|
|
food should be divided into two parts, one-half going forward
|
|
to the three sailors to do with as they saw best, and the
|
|
balance aft to the three passengers.
|
|
|
|
Thus was the little company divided into two camps, and
|
|
when the provisions had been apportioned each immediately
|
|
set to work to open and distribute food and water. The sailors
|
|
were the first to get one of the tins of "food" open, and their
|
|
curses of rage and disappointment caused Clayton to ask
|
|
what the trouble might be.
|
|
|
|
"Trouble!" shrieked Spider. "Trouble! It's worse than
|
|
trouble--it's death! This --- tin is full of coal oil!"
|
|
|
|
Hastily now Clayton and Monsieur Thuran tore open one of
|
|
theirs, only to learn the hideous truth that it also contained,
|
|
not food, but coal oil. One after another the four tins on
|
|
board were opened. And as the contents of each became
|
|
known howls of anger announced the grim truth--there was
|
|
not an ounce of food upon the boat.
|
|
|
|
"Well, thank Gawd it wasn't the water," cried Thompkins.
|
|
"It's easier to get along without food than it is without water.
|
|
We can eat our shoes if worse comes to worst, but we
|
|
couldn't drink 'em."
|
|
|
|
As he spoke Wilson had been boring a hole in one of the water
|
|
kegs, and as Spider held a tin cup he tilted the keg to pour
|
|
a draft of the precious fluid. A thin stream of blackish,
|
|
dry particles filtered slowly through the tiny aperture into
|
|
the bottom of the cup. With a groan Wilson dropped the keg, and
|
|
sat staring at the dry stuff in the cup, speechless with horror.
|
|
|
|
"The kegs are filled with gunpowder," said Spider, in a low tone,
|
|
turning to those aft. And so it proved when the last had been opened.
|
|
|
|
"Coal oil and gunpowder!" cried Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
"SAPRISTI! What a diet for shipwrecked mariners!"
|
|
|
|
With the full knowledge that there was neither food nor
|
|
water on board, the pangs of hunger and thirst became
|
|
immediately aggravated, and so on the first day of their tragic
|
|
adventure real suffering commenced in grim earnest, and the
|
|
full horrors of shipwreck were upon them.
|
|
|
|
As the days passed conditions became horrible. Aching eyes
|
|
scanned the horizon day and night until the weak
|
|
and weary watchers would sink exhausted to the bottom of
|
|
the boat, and there wrest in dream-disturbed slumber a
|
|
moment's respite from the horrors of the waking reality.
|
|
|
|
The sailors, goaded by the remorseless pangs of hunger,
|
|
had eaten their leather belts, their shoes, the sweatbands
|
|
from their caps, although both Clayton and Monsieur
|
|
Thuran had done their best to convince them that these
|
|
would only add to the suffering they were enduring.
|
|
|
|
Weak and hopeless, the entire party lay beneath the pitiless
|
|
tropic sun, with parched lips and swollen tongues, waiting for
|
|
the death they were beginning to crave. The intense suffering
|
|
of the first few days had become deadened for the three
|
|
passengers who had eaten nothing, but the agony of the
|
|
sailors was pitiful, as their weak and impoverished stomachs
|
|
attempted to cope with the bits of leather with which they
|
|
had filled them. Tompkins was the first to succumb. Just a
|
|
week from the day the LADY ALICE went down the sailor died
|
|
horribly in frightful convulsions.
|
|
|
|
For hours his contorted and hideous features lay grinning
|
|
back at those in the stern of the little boat, until Jane
|
|
Porter could endure the sight no longer.
|
|
"Can you not drop his body overboard, William?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
Clayton rose and staggered toward the corpse. The two
|
|
remaining sailors eyed him with a strange, baleful light in
|
|
their sunken orbs. Futilely the Englishman tried to lift the
|
|
corpse over the side of the boat, but his strength was not
|
|
equal to the task.
|
|
|
|
"Lend me a hand here, please," he said to Wilson, who lay
|
|
nearest him.
|
|
|
|
"Wot do you want to throw 'im over for?" questioned the
|
|
sailor, in a querulous voice.
|
|
|
|
"We've got to before we're too weak to do it," replied Clayton.
|
|
"He'd be awful by tomorrow, after a day under that broiling sun."
|
|
|
|
"Better leave well enough alone," grumbled Wilson.
|
|
"We may need him before tomorrow."
|
|
|
|
Slowly the meaning of the man's words percolated into
|
|
Clayton's understanding. At last he realized the fellow's
|
|
reason for objecting to the disposal of the dead man.
|
|
|
|
"God!" whispered Clayton, in a horrified tone. "You don't mean--"
|
|
|
|
"W'y not?" growled Wilson. "Ain't we gotta live? He's dead,"
|
|
he added, jerking his thumb in the direction of the corpse.
|
|
"He won't care."
|
|
|
|
"Come here, Thuran," said Clayton, turning toward the Russian.
|
|
"We'll have something worse than death aboard us if we don't
|
|
get rid of this body before dark."
|
|
|
|
Wilson staggered up menacingly to prevent the contemplated act,
|
|
but when his comrade, Spider, took sides with Clayton and
|
|
Monsieur Thuran he gave up, and sat eying the corpse
|
|
hungrily as the three men, by combining their efforts,
|
|
succeeded in rolling it overboard.
|
|
|
|
All the balance of the day Wilson sat glaring at Clayton,
|
|
in his eyes the gleam of insanity. Toward evening, as the
|
|
sun was sinking into the sea, he commenced to chuckle and
|
|
mumble to himself, but his eyes never left Clayton.
|
|
|
|
After it became quite dark Clayton could still feel those terrible
|
|
eyes upon him. He dared not sleep, and yet so exhausted
|
|
was he that it was a constant fight to retain consciousness.
|
|
After what seemed an eternity of suffering his head dropped
|
|
upon a thwart, and he slept. How long he was unconscious
|
|
he did not know--he was awakened by a shuffling noise quite
|
|
close to him. The moon had risen, and as he opened his
|
|
startled eyes he saw Wilson creeping stealthily toward him,
|
|
his mouth open and his swollen tongue hanging out.
|
|
|
|
The slight noise had awakened Jane Porter at the same time,
|
|
and as she saw the hideous tableau she gave a shrill cry
|
|
of alarm, and at the same instant the sailor lurched forward
|
|
and fell upon Clayton. Like a wild beast his teeth sought
|
|
the throat of his intended prey, but Clayton, weak though he
|
|
was, still found sufficient strength to hold the maniac's
|
|
mouth from him.
|
|
|
|
At Jane Porter's scream Monsieur Thuran and Spider awoke.
|
|
On seeing the cause of her alarm, both men crawled to
|
|
Clayton's rescue, and between the three of them were able
|
|
to subdue Wilson and hurl him to the bottom of the boat.
|
|
For a few minutes he lay there chattering and laughing, and then,
|
|
with an awful scream, and before any of his companions
|
|
could prevent, he staggered to his feet and leaped overboard.
|
|
|
|
The reaction from the terrific strain of excitement left the
|
|
weak survivors trembling and prostrated. Spider broke down
|
|
and wept; Jane Porter prayed; Clayton swore softly to himself;
|
|
Monsieur Thuran sat with his head in his hands, thinking.
|
|
The result of his cogitation developed the following morning
|
|
in a proposition he made to Spider and Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"Gentlemen," said Monsieur Thuran, "you see the fate that
|
|
awaits us all unless we are picked up within a day or two.
|
|
That there is little hope of that is evidenced by the fact
|
|
that during all the days we have drifted we have seen no
|
|
sail, nor the faintest smudge of smoke upon the horizon.
|
|
|
|
"There might be a chance if we had food, but without food
|
|
there is none. There remains for us, then, but one of two
|
|
alternatives, and we must choose at once. Either we must
|
|
all die together within a few days, or one must be sacrificed
|
|
that the others may live. Do you quite clearly grasp my meaning?"
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter, who had overheard, was horrified. If the
|
|
proposition had come from the poor, ignorant sailor, she
|
|
might possibly have not been so surprised; but that it should
|
|
come from one who posed as a man of culture and refinement,
|
|
from a gentleman, she could scarcely credit.
|
|
|
|
"It is better that we die together, then," said Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"That is for the majority to decide," replied Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
"As only one of us three will be the object of sacrifice,
|
|
we shall decide. Miss Porter is not interested,
|
|
since she will be in no danger."
|
|
|
|
"How shall we know who is to be first?" asked Spider.
|
|
|
|
"It may be fairly fixed by lot," replied Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
"I have a number of franc pieces in my pocket. We can
|
|
choose a certain date from among them--the one to draw this
|
|
date first from beneath a piece of cloth will be the first."
|
|
|
|
"I shall have nothing to do with any such diabolical plan,"
|
|
muttered Clayton; "even yet land may be sighted or a ship
|
|
appear--in time."
|
|
|
|
"You will do as the majority decide, or you will be `the
|
|
first' without the formality of drawing lots," said Monsieur
|
|
Thuran threateningly. "Come, let us vote on the plan; I
|
|
for one am in favor of it. How about you, Spider?"
|
|
"And I," replied the sailor.
|
|
|
|
"It is the will of the majority," announced Monsieur
|
|
Thuran, "and now let us lose no time in drawing lots.
|
|
It is as fair for one as for another. That three may
|
|
live, one of us must die perhaps a few hours sooner
|
|
than otherwise."
|
|
|
|
Then he began his preparation for the lottery of death,
|
|
while Jane Porter sat wide-eyed and horrified at thought of
|
|
the thing that she was about to witness. Monsieur Thuran
|
|
spread his coat upon the bottom of the boat, and then from a
|
|
handful of money he selected six franc pieces. The other two
|
|
men bent close above him as he inspected them. Finally he
|
|
handed them all to Clayton.
|
|
|
|
"Look at them carefully," he said. "The oldest date is
|
|
eighteen-seventy-five, and there is only one of that year."
|
|
|
|
Clayton and the sailor inspected each coin. To them there
|
|
seemed not the slightest difference that could be detected
|
|
other than the dates. They were quite satisfied. Had they
|
|
known that Monsieur Thuran's past experience as a card
|
|
sharp had trained his sense of touch to so fine a point that
|
|
he could almost differentiate between cards by the mere feel
|
|
of them, they would scarcely have felt that the plan was so
|
|
entirely fair. The 1875 piece was a hair thinner than the
|
|
other coins, but neither Clayton nor Spider could have
|
|
detected it without the aid of a micrometer.
|
|
|
|
"In what order shall we draw?" asked Monsieur Thuran,
|
|
knowing from past experience that the majority of men
|
|
always prefer last chance in a lottery where the single prize
|
|
is some distasteful thing--there is always the chance and the
|
|
hope that another will draw it first. Monsieur Thuran, for
|
|
reasons of his own, preferred to draw first if the drawing
|
|
should happen to require a second adventure beneath the coat.
|
|
|
|
And so when Spider elected to draw last he graciously
|
|
offered to take the first chance himself. His hand was under
|
|
the coat for but a moment, yet those quick, deft fingers had
|
|
felt of each coin, and found and discarded the fatal piece.
|
|
When he brought forth his hand it contained an 1888 franc piece.
|
|
Then Clayton drew. Jane Porter leaned forward with a tense
|
|
and horrified expression on her face as the hand of the man
|
|
she was to marry groped about beneath the coat. Presently he
|
|
withdrew it, a franc piece lying in the palm. For an instant
|
|
he dared not look, but Monsieur Thuran, who had leaned
|
|
nearer to see the date, exclaimed that he was safe.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter sank weak and trembling against the side of
|
|
the boat. She felt sick and dizzy. And now, if Spider
|
|
should not draw the 1875 piece she must endure the whole
|
|
horrid thing again.
|
|
|
|
The sailor already had his hand beneath the coat. Great beads
|
|
of sweat were standing upon his brow. He trembled as though
|
|
with a fit of ague. Aloud he cursed himself for having
|
|
taken the last draw, for now his chances for escape were
|
|
but three to one, whereas Monsieur Thuran's had been five to
|
|
one, and Clayton's four to one.
|
|
|
|
The Russian was very patient, and did not hurry the man,
|
|
for he knew that he himself was quite safe whether the 1875
|
|
piece came out this time or not. When the sailor withdrew
|
|
his hand and looked at the piece of money within, he
|
|
dropped fainting to the bottom of the boat. Both Clayton
|
|
and Monsieur Thuran hastened weakly to examine the coin,
|
|
which had rolled from the man's hand and lay beside him.
|
|
It was not dated 1875. The reaction from the state of fear he
|
|
had been in had overcome Spider quite as effectually as
|
|
though he had drawn the fated piece.
|
|
|
|
But now the whole proceeding must be gone through again.
|
|
Once more the Russian drew forth a harmless coin. Jane
|
|
Porter closed her eyes as Clayton reached beneath the coat.
|
|
Spider bent, wide-eyed, toward the hand that was to decide
|
|
his fate, for whatever luck was Clayton's on this last draw,
|
|
the opposite would be Spider's.
|
|
Then William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke, removed his hand
|
|
from beneath the coat, and with a coin tight pressed within
|
|
his palm where none might see it, he looked at Jane Porter.
|
|
He did not dare open his hand.
|
|
|
|
"Quick!" hissed Spider. "My Gawd, let's see it."
|
|
|
|
Clayton opened his fingers. Spider was the first to see
|
|
the date, and ere any knew what his intention was he raised
|
|
himself to his feet, and lunged over the side of the boat,
|
|
to disappear forever into the green depths beneath--the coin
|
|
had not been the 1875 piece.
|
|
|
|
The strain had exhausted those who remained to such an
|
|
extent that they lay half unconscious for the balance of the
|
|
day, nor was the subject referred to again for several days.
|
|
Horrible days of increasing weakness and hopelessness.
|
|
At length Monsieur Thuran crawled to where Clayton lay.
|
|
|
|
"We must draw once more before we are too weak even to eat,"
|
|
he whispered.
|
|
|
|
Clayton was in such a state that he was scarcely master of
|
|
his own will. Jane Porter had not spoken for three days.
|
|
He knew that she was dying. Horrible as the thought was,
|
|
he hoped that the sacrifice of either Thuran or himself might
|
|
be the means of giving her renewed strength, and so he
|
|
immediately agreed to the Russian's proposal.
|
|
|
|
They drew under the same plan as before, but there
|
|
could be but one result--Clayton drew the 1875 piece.
|
|
|
|
"When shall it be?" he asked Thuran.
|
|
|
|
The Russian had already drawn a pocketknife from his trousers,
|
|
and was weakly attempting to open it.
|
|
|
|
"Now," he muttered, and his greedy eyes gloated upon the Englishman.
|
|
|
|
"Can't you wait until dark?" asked Clayton. "Miss Porter
|
|
must not see this thing done. We were to have been married,
|
|
you know."
|
|
|
|
A look of disappointment came over Monsieur Thuran's face.
|
|
|
|
"Very well," he replied hesitatingly. "It will not be long
|
|
until night. I have waited for many days--I can wait a few
|
|
hours longer."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, my friend," murmured Clayton. "Now I shall go
|
|
to her side and remain with her until it is time. I would
|
|
like to have an hour or two with her before I die."
|
|
|
|
When Clayton reached the girl's side she was unconscious
|
|
--he knew that she was dying, and he was glad that she
|
|
should not have to see or know the awful tragedy that was
|
|
shortly to be enacted. He took her hand and raised it to his
|
|
cracked and swollen lips. For a long time he lay caressing the
|
|
emaciated, clawlike thing that had once been the beautiful,
|
|
shapely white hand of the young Baltimore belle.
|
|
|
|
It was quite dark before he knew it, but he was recalled
|
|
to himself by a voice out of the night. It was the Russian
|
|
calling him to his doom.
|
|
|
|
"I am coming, Monsieur Thuran," he hastened to reply.
|
|
|
|
Thrice he attempted to turn himself upon his hands and
|
|
knees, that he might crawl back to his death, but in the
|
|
few hours that he had lain there he had become too
|
|
weak to return to Thuran's side.
|
|
|
|
"You will have to come to me, monsieur," he called weakly.
|
|
"I have not sufficient strength to gain my hands and knees."
|
|
|
|
"SAPRISTI!" muttered Monsieur Thuran. "You are attempting
|
|
to cheat me out of my winnings."
|
|
|
|
Clayton heard the man shuffling about in the bottom of
|
|
the boat. Finally there was a despairing groan. "I cannot
|
|
crawl," he heard the Russian wail. "It is too late. You have
|
|
tricked me, you dirty English dog."
|
|
|
|
"I have not tricked you, monsieur," replied Clayton.
|
|
"I have done my best to rise, but I shall try again,
|
|
and if you will try possibly each of us can crawl halfway,
|
|
and then you shall have your `winnings.'"
|
|
|
|
Again Clayton exerted his remaining strength to the utmost,
|
|
and he heard Thuran apparently doing the same. Nearly an hour
|
|
later the Englishman succeeded in raising himself to his
|
|
hands and knees, but at the first forward movement
|
|
he pitched upon his face.
|
|
|
|
A moment later he heard an exclamation of relief from
|
|
Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
|
|
"I am coming," whispered the Russian.
|
|
|
|
Again Clayton essayed to stagger on to meet his fate, but
|
|
once more he pitched headlong to the boat's bottom, nor,
|
|
try as he would, could he again rise. His last effort caused
|
|
him to roll over on his back, and there he lay looking up at
|
|
the stars, while behind him, coming ever nearer and nearer,
|
|
he could hear the laborious shuffling, and the stertorous
|
|
breathing of the Russian.
|
|
|
|
It seemed that he must have lain thus an hour waiting for the
|
|
thing to crawl out of the dark and end his misery. It was quite
|
|
close now, but there were longer and longer pauses between
|
|
its efforts to advance, and each forward movement seemed
|
|
to the waiting Englishman to be almost imperceptible.
|
|
|
|
Finally he knew that Thuran was quite close beside him.
|
|
He heard a cackling laugh, something touched his face, and
|
|
he lost consciousness.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 19
|
|
|
|
|
|
The City of Gold
|
|
|
|
|
|
The very night that Tarzan of the Apes became chief of
|
|
the Waziri the woman he loved lay dying in a tiny boat
|
|
two hundred miles west of him upon the Atlantic.
|
|
As he danced among his naked fellow savages, the firelight
|
|
gleaming against his great, rolling muscles, the
|
|
personification of physical perfection and strength,
|
|
the woman who loved him lay thin and emaciated in the
|
|
last coma that precedes death by thirst and starvation.
|
|
|
|
The week following the induction of Tarzan into the kingship
|
|
of the Waziri was occupied in escorting the Manyuema of
|
|
the Arab raiders to the northern boundary of Waziri in
|
|
accordance with the promise which Tarzan had made them.
|
|
Before he left them he exacted a pledge from them that they
|
|
would not lead any expeditions against the Waziri in the
|
|
future, nor was it a difficult promise to obtain. They had had
|
|
sufficient experience with the fighting tactics of the new
|
|
Waziri chief not to have the slightest desire to accompany
|
|
another predatory force within the boundaries of his domain.
|
|
|
|
Almost immediately upon his return to the village Tarzan
|
|
commenced making preparations for leading an expedition
|
|
in search of the ruined city of gold which old Waziri had
|
|
described to him. He selected fifty of the sturdiest
|
|
warriors of his tribe, choosing only men who seemed anxious
|
|
to accompany him on the arduous march, and share the dangers
|
|
of a new and hostile country.
|
|
|
|
The fabulous wealth of the fabled city had been almost
|
|
constantly in his mind since Waziri had recounted the
|
|
strange adventures of the former expedition which had
|
|
stumbled upon the vast ruins by chance. The lure of
|
|
adventure may have been quite as powerful a factor in urging
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes to undertake the journey as the lure of
|
|
gold, but the lure of gold was there, too, for he had learned
|
|
among civilized men something of the miracles that may
|
|
be wrought by the possessor of the magic yellow metal. What
|
|
he would do with a golden fortune in the heart of savage
|
|
Africa it had not occurred to him to consider--it would be
|
|
enough to possess the power to work wonders, even though he
|
|
never had an opportunity to employ it.
|
|
|
|
So one glorious tropical morning Waziri, chief of the Waziri,
|
|
set out at the head of fifty clean-limbed ebon warriors
|
|
in quest of adventure and of riches. They followed the course
|
|
which old Waziri had described to Tarzan. For days they
|
|
marched--up one river, across a low divide; down another
|
|
river; up a third, until at the end of the twenty-fifth day
|
|
they camped upon a mountainside, from the summit of
|
|
which they hoped to catch their first view of the marvelous
|
|
city of treasure.
|
|
|
|
Early the next morning they were climbing the almost
|
|
perpendicular crags which formed the last, but greatest,
|
|
natural barrier between them and their destination.
|
|
It was nearly noon before Tarzan, who headed the thin
|
|
line of climbing warriors, scrambled over the top of
|
|
the last cliff and stood upon the little flat table-land
|
|
of the mountaintop.
|
|
|
|
On either hand towered mighty peaks thousands of feet
|
|
higher than the pass through which they were entering the
|
|
forbidden valley. Behind him stretched the wooded valley
|
|
across which they had marched for many days, and at the
|
|
opposite side the low range which marked the boundary of
|
|
their own country.
|
|
|
|
But before him was the view that centered his attention.
|
|
Here lay a desolate valley--a shallow, narrow valley dotted
|
|
with stunted trees and covered with many great bowlders.
|
|
And on the far side of the valley lay what appeared to be
|
|
a mighty city, its great walls, its lofty spires, its turrets,
|
|
minarets, and domes showing red and yellow in the sunlight.
|
|
Tarzan was yet too far away to note the marks of ruin--to
|
|
him it appeared a wonderful city of magnificent beauty,
|
|
and in imagination he peopled its broad avenues and its huge
|
|
temples with a throng of happy, active people.
|
|
|
|
For an hour the little expedition rested upon the mountain-
|
|
top, and then Tarzan led them down into the valley below.
|
|
There was no trail, but the way was less arduous than the
|
|
ascent of the opposite face of the mountain had been.
|
|
Once in the valley their progress was rapid, so that it
|
|
was still light when they halted before the towering walls
|
|
of the ancient city.
|
|
|
|
The outer wall was fifty feet in height where it had not
|
|
fallen into ruin, but nowhere as far as they could see had
|
|
more than ten or twenty feet of the upper courses fallen away.
|
|
It was still a formidable defense. On several occasions
|
|
Tarzan had thought that he discerned things moving behind
|
|
the ruined portions of the wall near to them, as though
|
|
creatures were watching them from behind the bulwarks of
|
|
the ancient pile. And often he felt the sensation of unseen
|
|
eyes upon him, but not once could he be sure that it was more
|
|
than imagination.
|
|
|
|
That night they camped outside the city. Once, at midnight,
|
|
they were awakened by a shrill scream from beyond the great wall.
|
|
It was very high at first, descending gradually until it
|
|
ended in a series of dismal moans. It had a strange effect
|
|
upon the blacks, almost paralyzing them with terror while
|
|
it lasted, and it was an hour before the camp settled
|
|
down to sleep once more. In the morning the effects of it
|
|
were still visible in the fearful, sidelong glances that the
|
|
Waziri continually cast at the massive and forbidding structure
|
|
which loomed above them.
|
|
|
|
It required considerable encouragement and urging on
|
|
Tarzan's part to prevent the blacks from abandoning the
|
|
venture on the spot and hastening back across the valley
|
|
toward the cliffs they had scaled the day before. But at length,
|
|
by dint of commands, and threats that he would enter the
|
|
city alone, they agreed to accompany him.
|
|
|
|
For fifteen minutes they marched along the face of the
|
|
wall before they discovered a means of ingress. Then they
|
|
came to a narrow cleft about twenty inches wide. Within, a
|
|
flight of concrete steps, worn hollow by centuries of use,
|
|
rose before them, to disappear at a sharp turning of the
|
|
passage a few yards ahead.
|
|
|
|
Into this narrow alley Tarzan made his way, turning his
|
|
giant shoulders sideways that they might enter at all.
|
|
Behind him trailed his black warriors. At the turn in the
|
|
cleft the stairs ended, and the path was level; but it wound
|
|
and twisted in a serpentine fashion, until suddenly at a sharp
|
|
angle it debouched upon a narrow court, across which
|
|
loomed an inner wall equally as high as the outer. This inner
|
|
wall was set with little round towers alternating along its
|
|
entire summit with pointed monoliths. In places these had
|
|
fallen, and the wall was ruined, but it was in a much better
|
|
state of preservation than the outer wall.
|
|
|
|
Another narrow passage led through this wall, and at its
|
|
end Tarzan and his warriors found themselves in a broad avenue,
|
|
on the opposite side of which crumbling edifices of hewn granite
|
|
loomed dark and forbidding. Upon the crumbling debris along the
|
|
face of the buildings trees had grown, and vines wound in and
|
|
out of the hollow, staring windows; but the building directly
|
|
opposite them seemed less overgrown than the others, and in
|
|
a much better state of preservation. It was a massive pile,
|
|
surmounted by an enormous dome. At either side of its great
|
|
entrance stood rows of tall pillars, each capped by a huge,
|
|
grotesque bird carved from the solid rock of the monoliths.
|
|
|
|
As the ape-man and his companions stood gazing in varying
|
|
degrees of wonderment at this ancient city in the midst
|
|
of savage Africa, several of them became aware of
|
|
movement within the structure at which they were looking.
|
|
Dim, shadowy shapes appeared to be moving about in the
|
|
semi-darkness of the interior. There was nothing tangible
|
|
that the eye could grasp--only an uncanny suggestion of life
|
|
where it seemed that there should be no life, for living
|
|
things seemed out of place in this weird, dead city of the
|
|
long-dead past.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan recalled something that he had read in the library at
|
|
Paris of a lost race of white men that native legend described
|
|
as living in the heart of Africa. He wondered if he were not
|
|
looking upon the ruins of the civilization that this strange
|
|
people had wrought amid the savage surroundings of their
|
|
strange and savage home. Could it be possible that even now
|
|
a remnant of that lost race inhabited the ruined grandeur that
|
|
had once been their progenitor? Again he became conscious
|
|
of a stealthy movement within the great temple before him.
|
|
"Come!" he said, to his Waziri. "Let us have a look at what
|
|
lies behind those ruined walls."
|
|
|
|
His men were loath to follow him, but when they saw that
|
|
he was bravely entering the frowning portal they trailed a few
|
|
paces behind in a huddled group that seemed the personification
|
|
of nervous terror. A single shriek such as they had
|
|
heard the night before would have been sufficient to have
|
|
sent them all racing madly for the narrow cleft that led
|
|
through the great walls to the outer world.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan entered the building he was distinctly aware of
|
|
many eyes upon him. There was a rustling in the shadows
|
|
of a near-by corridor, and he could have sworn that he
|
|
saw a human hand withdrawn from an embrasure that
|
|
opened above him into the domelike rotunda in which he
|
|
found himself.
|
|
|
|
The floor of the chamber was of concrete, the walls of
|
|
smooth granite, upon which strange figures of men and beasts
|
|
were carved. In places tablets of yellow metal had been set
|
|
in the solid masonry of the walls.
|
|
|
|
When he approached closer to one of these tablets he saw
|
|
that it was of gold, and bore many hieroglyphics. Beyond this
|
|
first chamber there were others, and back of them the building
|
|
branched out into enormous wings. Tarzan passed through
|
|
several of these chambers, finding many evidences of the
|
|
fabulous wealth of the original builders. In one room were
|
|
seven pillars of solid gold, and in another the floor itself
|
|
was of the precious metal. And all the while that he explored,
|
|
his blacks huddled close together at his back, and
|
|
strange shapes hovered upon either hand and before them
|
|
and behind, yet never close enough that any might say that
|
|
they were not alone.
|
|
|
|
The strain, however, was telling upon the nerves of the Waziri.
|
|
They begged Tarzan to return to the sunlight. They said that
|
|
no good could come of such an expedition, for the ruins were
|
|
haunted by the spirits of the dead who had once inhabited them.
|
|
|
|
"They are watching us, O king," whispered Busuli. "They are
|
|
waiting until they have led us into the innermost recesses of
|
|
their stronghold, and then they will fall upon us and tear
|
|
us to pieces with their teeth. That is the way with spirits.
|
|
My mother's uncle, who is a great witch doctor, has
|
|
told me all about it many times."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan laughed. "Run back into the sunlight, my children,"
|
|
he said. "I will join you when I have searched this old ruin
|
|
from top to bottom, and found the gold, or found that there
|
|
is none. At least we may take the tablets from the walls,
|
|
though the pillars are too heavy for us to handle; but there
|
|
should be great storerooms filled with gold--gold that we
|
|
can carry away upon our backs with ease. Run on now, out
|
|
into the fresh air where you may breathe easier."
|
|
|
|
Some of the warriors started to obey their chief with alacrity,
|
|
but Busuli and several others hesitated to leave him--hesitated
|
|
between love and loyalty for their king, and superstitious fear
|
|
of the unknown. And then, quite unexpectedly, that occurred which
|
|
decided the question without the necessity for further discussion.
|
|
Out of the silence of the ruined temple there rang, close to
|
|
their ears, the same hideous shriek they had heard the previous
|
|
night, and with horrified cries the black warriors turned and
|
|
fled through the empty halls of the age-old edifice.
|
|
|
|
Behind them stood Tarzan of the Apes where they had left
|
|
him, a grim smile upon his lips--waiting for the enemy he
|
|
fully expected was about to pounce upon him. But again
|
|
silence reigned, except for the faint suggestion of the sound
|
|
of naked feet moving stealthily in near-by places.
|
|
|
|
Then Tarzan wheeled and passed on into the depths of the temple.
|
|
From room to room he went, until he came to one at which
|
|
a rude, barred door still stood, and as he put his shoulder
|
|
against it to push it in, again the shriek of warning
|
|
rang out almost beside him. It was evident that he was
|
|
being warned to refrain from desecrating this particular room.
|
|
Or could it be that within lay the secret to the treasure stores?
|
|
|
|
At any rate, the very fact that the strange, invisible
|
|
guardians of this weird place had some reason for wishing him
|
|
not to enter this particular chamber was sufficient to treble
|
|
Tarzan's desire to do so, and though the shrieking was repeated
|
|
continuously, he kept his shoulder to the door until it gave
|
|
before his giant strength to swing open upon creaking wooden hinges.
|
|
|
|
Within all was black as the tomb. There was no window
|
|
to let in the faintest ray of light, and as the corridor upon
|
|
which it opened was itself in semi-darkness, even the open door
|
|
shed no relieving rays within. Feeling before him upon the floor
|
|
with the butt of his spear, Tarzan entered the Stygian gloom.
|
|
Suddenly the door behind him closed, and at the same time
|
|
hands clutched him from every direction out of the darkness.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man fought with all the savage fury of self-
|
|
preservation backed by the herculean strength that was his.
|
|
But though he felt his blows land, and his teeth sink into soft
|
|
flesh, there seemed always two new hands to take the place
|
|
of those that he fought off. At last they dragged him down,
|
|
and slowly, very slowly, they overcame him by the mere
|
|
weight of their numbers. And then they bound him--his
|
|
hands behind his back and his feet trussed up to meet them.
|
|
He had heard no sound except the heavy breathing of his
|
|
antagonists, and the noise of the battle. He knew not what
|
|
manner of creatures had captured him, but that they were
|
|
human seemed evident from the fact that they had bound him.
|
|
|
|
Presently they lifted him from the floor, and half dragging,
|
|
half pushing him, they brought him out of the black
|
|
chamber through another doorway into an inner courtyard
|
|
of the temple. Here he saw his captors. There must have
|
|
been a hundred of them--short, stocky men, with great beards
|
|
that covered their faces and fell upon their hairy breasts.
|
|
|
|
The thick, matted hair upon their heads grew low over
|
|
their receding brows, and hung about their shoulders and
|
|
their backs. Their crooked legs were short and heavy, their
|
|
arms long and muscular. About their loins they wore the
|
|
skins of leopards and lions, and great necklaces of the
|
|
claws of these same animals depended upon their breasts.
|
|
Massive circlets of virgin gold adorned their arms and legs.
|
|
For weapons they carried heavy, knotted bludgeons, and in the
|
|
belts that confined their single garments each had a long,
|
|
wicked-looking knife.
|
|
|
|
But the feature of them that made the most startling
|
|
impression upon their prisoner was their white skins--neither
|
|
in color nor feature was there a trace of the negroid about them.
|
|
Yet, with their receding foreheads, wicked little close-set eyes,
|
|
and yellow fangs, they were far from prepossessing in appearance.
|
|
|
|
During the fight within the dark chamber, and while
|
|
they had been dragging Tarzan to the inner court, no word
|
|
had been spoken, but now several of them exchanged grunting,
|
|
monosyllabic conversation in a language unfamiliar to
|
|
the ape-man, and presently they left him lying upon the
|
|
concrete floor while they trooped off on their short legs into
|
|
another part of the temple beyond the court.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan lay there upon his back he saw that the temple
|
|
entirely surrounded the little inclosure, and that on all sides
|
|
its lofty walls rose high above him. At the top a little patch
|
|
of blue sky was visible, and, in one direction, through an
|
|
embrasure, he could see foliage, but whether it was beyond
|
|
or within the temple he did not know.
|
|
|
|
About the court, from the ground to the top of the temple,
|
|
were series of open galleries, and now and then the captive
|
|
caught glimpses of bright eyes gleaming from beneath masses
|
|
of tumbling hair, peering down upon him from above.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man gently tested the strength of the bonds that
|
|
held him, and while he could not be sure it seemed that they
|
|
were of insufficient strength to withstand the strain of his
|
|
mighty muscles when the time came to make a break for
|
|
freedom; but he did not dare to put them to the crucial test
|
|
until darkness had fallen, or he felt that no spying eyes were
|
|
upon him.
|
|
|
|
He had lain within the court for several hours before
|
|
the first rays of sunlight penetrated the vertical shaft;
|
|
almost simultaneously he heard the pattering of bare feet
|
|
in the corridors about him, and a moment later saw the
|
|
galleries above fill with crafty faces as a score or more
|
|
entered the courtyard.
|
|
|
|
For a moment every eye was bent upon the noonday sun,
|
|
and then in unison the people in the galleries and those in
|
|
the court below took up the refrain of a low, weird chant.
|
|
Presently those about Tarzan began to dance to the cadence
|
|
of their solemn song. They circled him slowly, resembling in
|
|
their manner of dancing a number of clumsy, shuffling bears;
|
|
but as yet they did not look at him, keeping their little eyes
|
|
fixed upon the sun.
|
|
|
|
For ten minutes or more they kept up their monotonous
|
|
chant and steps, and then suddenly, and in perfect unison,
|
|
they turned toward their victim with upraised bludgeons
|
|
and emitting fearful howls, the while they contorted their
|
|
features into the most diabolical expressions, they rushed
|
|
upon him.
|
|
|
|
At the same instant a female figure dashed into the midst
|
|
of the bloodthirsty horde, and, with a bludgeon similar to
|
|
their own, except that it was wrought from gold, beat back
|
|
the advancing men.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 20
|
|
|
|
|
|
La
|
|
|
|
|
|
For a moment Tarzan thought that by some strange freak
|
|
of fate a miracle had saved him, but when he realized the
|
|
ease with which the girl had, single-handed, beaten off
|
|
twenty gorilla-like males, and an instant later, as he saw
|
|
them again take up their dance about him while she addressed
|
|
them in a singsong monotone, which bore every evidence of
|
|
rote, he came to the conclusion that it was all but a part
|
|
of the ceremony of which he was the central figure.
|
|
|
|
After a moment or two the girl drew a knife from her girdle,
|
|
and, leaning over Tarzan, cut the bonds from his legs.
|
|
Then, as the men stopped their dance, and approached, she
|
|
motioned to him to rise. Placing the rope that had been
|
|
about his legs around his neck, she led him across the
|
|
courtyard, the men following in twos.
|
|
|
|
Through winding corridors she led, farther and farther
|
|
into the remoter precincts of the temple, until they came to a
|
|
great chamber in the center of which stood an altar. Then it
|
|
was that Tarzan translated the strange ceremony that had
|
|
preceded his introduction into this holy of holies.
|
|
|
|
He had fallen into the hands of descendants of the ancient
|
|
sun worshippers. His seeming rescue by a votaress of the
|
|
high priestess of the sun had been but a part of the mimicry
|
|
of their heathen ceremony--the sun looking down upon him
|
|
through the opening at the top of the court had claimed him
|
|
as his own, and the priestess had come from the inner
|
|
temple to save him from the polluting hands of worldlings--
|
|
to save him as a human offering to their flaming deity.
|
|
|
|
And had he needed further assurance as to the correctness
|
|
of his theory he had only to cast his eyes upon the brownish-
|
|
red stains that caked the stone altar and covered the floor
|
|
in its immediate vicinity, or to the human skulls which
|
|
grinned from countless niches in the towering walls.
|
|
|
|
The priestess led the victim to the altar steps. Again the
|
|
galleries above filled with watchers, while from an arched
|
|
doorway at the east end of the chamber a procession of females
|
|
filed slowly into the room. They wore, like the men,
|
|
only skins of wild animals caught about their waists with
|
|
rawhide belts or chains of gold; but the black masses of their
|
|
hair were incrusted with golden headgear composed of many
|
|
circular and oval pieces of gold ingeniously held together to
|
|
form a metal cap from which depended at each side of
|
|
the head, long strings of oval pieces falling to the waist.
|
|
|
|
The females were more symmetrically proportioned than
|
|
the males, their features were much more perfect, the shapes
|
|
of their heads and their large, soft, black eyes denoting far
|
|
greater intelligence and humanity than was possessed by
|
|
their lords and masters.
|
|
|
|
Each priestess bore two golden cups, and as they formed in
|
|
line along one side of the altar the men formed opposite them,
|
|
advancing and taking each a cup from the female opposite.
|
|
Then the chant began once more, and presently from
|
|
a dark passageway beyond the altar another female
|
|
emerged from the cavernous depths beneath the chamber.
|
|
|
|
The high priestess, thought Tarzan. She was a young woman
|
|
with a rather intelligent and shapely face. Her ornaments
|
|
were similar to those worn by her votaries, but much more
|
|
elaborate, many being set with diamonds. Her bare arms
|
|
and legs were almost concealed by the massive, bejeweled
|
|
ornaments which covered them, while her single leopard
|
|
skin was supported by a close-fitting girdle of golden rings
|
|
set in strange designs with innumerable small diamonds.
|
|
In the girdle she carried a long, jeweled knife, and in her
|
|
hand a slender wand in lieu of a bludgeon.
|
|
|
|
As she advanced to the opposite side of the altar she
|
|
halted, and the chanting ceased. The priests and priestesses
|
|
knelt before her, while with wand extended above them she
|
|
recited a long and tiresome prayer. Her voice was soft and
|
|
musical--Tarzan could scarce realize that its possessor
|
|
in a moment more would be transformed by the fanatical
|
|
ecstasy of religious zeal into a wild-eyed and bloodthirsty
|
|
executioner, who, with dripping knife, would be the first to
|
|
drink her victim's red, warm blood from the little golden cup
|
|
that stood upon the altar.
|
|
|
|
As she finished her prayer she let her eyes rest for the first
|
|
time upon Tarzan. With every indication of considerable
|
|
curiosity she examined him from head to foot. Then she
|
|
addressed him, and when she had finished stood waiting, as
|
|
though she expected a reply.
|
|
|
|
"I do not understand your language," said Tarzan.
|
|
"Possibly we may speak together in another tongue?"
|
|
But she could not understand him, though he tried French,
|
|
English, Arab, Waziri, and, as a last resort, the mongrel
|
|
tongue of the West Coast.
|
|
|
|
She shook her head, and it seemed that there was a note of
|
|
weariness in her voice as she motioned to the priests to
|
|
continue with the rites. These now circled in a repetition of
|
|
their idiotic dance, which was terminated finally at a command
|
|
from the priestess, who had stood throughout, still
|
|
looking intently upon Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
At her signal the priests rushed upon the ape-man, and,
|
|
lifting him bodily, laid him upon his back across the altar,
|
|
his head hanging over one edge, his legs over the opposite.
|
|
Then they and the priestesses formed in two lines, with
|
|
their little golden cups in readiness to capture a share of the
|
|
victim's lifeblood after the sacrificial knife had accomplished
|
|
its work.
|
|
|
|
In the line of priests an altercation arose as to who
|
|
should have first place. A burly brute with all the refined
|
|
intelligence of a gorilla stamped upon his bestial face was
|
|
attempting to push a smaller man to second place, but the
|
|
smaller one appealed to the high priestess, who in a cold
|
|
peremptory voice sent the larger to the extreme end of the line.
|
|
Tarzan could hear him growling and rumbling as he went
|
|
slowly to the inferior station.
|
|
|
|
Then the priestess, standing above him, began reciting
|
|
what Tarzan took to be an invocation, the while she slowly
|
|
raised her thin, sharp knife aloft. It seemed ages to the
|
|
ape-man before her arm ceased its upward progress and the
|
|
knife halted high above his unprotected breast.
|
|
|
|
Then it started downward, slowly at first, but as the
|
|
incantation increased in rapidity, with greater speed. At the
|
|
end of the line Tarzan could still hear the grumbling of the
|
|
disgruntled priest. The man's voice rose louder and louder.
|
|
A priestess near him spoke in sharp tones of rebuke. The knife
|
|
was quite near to Tarzan's breast now, but it halted for an
|
|
instant as the high priestess raised her eyes to shoot her swift
|
|
displeasure at the instigator of this sacrilegious interruption.
|
|
|
|
There was a sudden commotion in the direction of the
|
|
disputants, and Tarzan rolled his head in their direction
|
|
in time to see the burly brute of a priest leap upon the
|
|
woman opposite him, dashing out her brains with a single
|
|
blow of his heavy cudgel. Then that happened which Tarzan
|
|
had witnessed a hundred times before among the wild denizens
|
|
of his own savage jungle. He had seen the thing fall
|
|
upon Kerchak, and Tublat, and Terkoz; upon a dozen of the
|
|
other mighty bull apes of his tribe; and upon Tantor,
|
|
the elephant; there was scarce any of the males of the forest
|
|
that did not at times fall prey to it. The priest went mad,
|
|
and with his heavy bludgeon ran amuck among his fellows.
|
|
|
|
His screams of rage were frightful as he dashed hither
|
|
and thither, dealing terrific blows with his giant weapon, or
|
|
sinking his yellow fangs into the flesh of some luckless victim.
|
|
And during it the priestess stood with poised knife above
|
|
Tarzan, her eyes fixed in horror upon the maniacal thing
|
|
that was dealing out death and destruction to her votaries.
|
|
|
|
Presently the room was emptied except for the dead and
|
|
dying on the floor, the victim upon the altar, the high
|
|
priestess, and the madman. As the cunning eyes of the latter
|
|
fell upon the woman they lighted with a new and sudden lust.
|
|
Slowly he crept toward her, and now he spoke; but this
|
|
time there fell upon Tarzan's surprised ears a language he
|
|
could understand; the last one that he would ever have
|
|
thought of employing in attempting to converse with human
|
|
beings--the low guttural barking of the tribe of great
|
|
anthropoids--his own mother tongue. And the woman answered
|
|
the man in the same language.
|
|
|
|
He was threatening--she attempting to reason with him, for it
|
|
was quite evident that she saw that he was past her authority.
|
|
The brute was quite close now--creeping with clawlike hands
|
|
extended toward her around the end of the altar.
|
|
Tarzan strained at the bonds which held his arms pinioned
|
|
behind him. The woman did not see--she had forgotten
|
|
her prey in the horror of the danger that threatened herself.
|
|
As the brute leaped past Tarzan to clutch his victim, the
|
|
ape-man gave one superhuman wrench at the thongs that held him.
|
|
The effort sent him rolling from the altar to the stone
|
|
floor on the opposite side from that on which the priestess
|
|
stood; but as he sprang to his feet the thongs dropped from
|
|
his freed arms, and at the same time he realized that he
|
|
was alone in the inner temple--the high priestess and the
|
|
mad priest had disappeared.
|
|
|
|
And then a muffled scream came from the cavernous mouth
|
|
of the dark hole beyond the sacrificial altar through which the
|
|
priestess had entered the temple. Without even a thought for
|
|
his own safety, or the possibility for escape which this rapid
|
|
series of fortuitous circumstances had thrust upon him,
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes answered the call of the woman in danger.
|
|
With a little bound he was at the gaping entrance to the
|
|
subterranean chamber, and a moment later was running down
|
|
a flight of age-old concrete steps that led he knew not where.
|
|
|
|
The faint light that filtered in from above showed him
|
|
a large, low-ceiled vault from which several doorways led off
|
|
into inky darkness, but there was no need to thread an unknown
|
|
way, for there before him lay the objects of his search--the
|
|
mad brute had the girl upon the floor, and gorilla-like
|
|
fingers were clutching frantically at her throat as she
|
|
struggled to escape the fury of the awful thing upon her.
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan's heavy hand fell upon his shoulder the priest
|
|
dropped his victim, and turned upon her would-be rescuer.
|
|
With foam-flecked lips and bared fangs the mad sun-worshiper
|
|
battled with the tenfold power of the maniac. In the
|
|
blood lust of his fury the creature had undergone a sudden
|
|
reversion to type, which left him a wild beast, forgetful of
|
|
the dagger that projected from his belt--thinking only of
|
|
nature's weapons with which his brute prototype had battled.
|
|
|
|
But if he could use his teeth and hands to advantage, he
|
|
found one even better versed in the school of savage warfare
|
|
to which he had reverted, for Tarzan of the Apes closed
|
|
with him, and they fell to the floor tearing and rending at one
|
|
another like two bull apes; while the primitive priestess
|
|
stood flattened against the wall, watching with wide, fear-
|
|
fascinated eyes the growing, snapping beasts at her feet.
|
|
|
|
At last she saw the stranger close one mighty hand upon
|
|
the throat of his antagonist, and as he forced the bruteman's
|
|
head far back rain blow after blow upon the upturned face.
|
|
A moment later he threw the still thing from him, and,
|
|
arising, shook himself like a lion. He placed a foot
|
|
upon the carcass before him, and raised his head to give the
|
|
victory cry of his kind, but as his eyes fell upon the opening
|
|
above him leading into the temple of human sacrifice he
|
|
thought better of his intended act.
|
|
|
|
The girl, who had been half paralyzed by fear as the two
|
|
men fought, had just commenced to give thought to her
|
|
probable fate now that, though released from the clutches of
|
|
a madman, she had fallen into the hands of one whom but a
|
|
moment before she had been upon the point of killing.
|
|
She looked about for some means of escape. The black mouth
|
|
of a diverging corridor was near at hand, but as she
|
|
turned to dart into it the ape-man's eyes fell upon her, and
|
|
with a quick leap he was at her side, and a restraining hand
|
|
was laid upon her arm.
|
|
|
|
"Wait!" said Tarzan of the Apes, in the language of the
|
|
tribe of Kerchak.
|
|
|
|
The girl looked at him in astonishment.
|
|
|
|
"Who are you," she whispered, "who speaks the language
|
|
of the first man?"
|
|
|
|
"I am Tarzan of the Apes," he answered in the vernacular
|
|
of the anthropoids.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want of me?" she continued. "For what
|
|
purpose did you save me from Tha?"
|
|
|
|
"I could not see a woman murdered?" It was a half question
|
|
that answered her.
|
|
|
|
"But what do you intend to do with me now?" she continued.
|
|
|
|
"Nothing," he replied, "but you can do something for me--you
|
|
can lead me out of this place to freedom." He made the
|
|
suggestion without the slightest thought that she would accede.
|
|
He felt quite sure that the sacrifice would go on from the
|
|
point where it had been interrupted if the high priestess
|
|
had her way, though he was equally positive that they would
|
|
find Tarzan of the Apes unbound and with a long dagger
|
|
in his hand a much less tractable victim than Tarzan
|
|
disarmed and bound.
|
|
|
|
The girl stood looking at him for a long moment before
|
|
she spoke.
|
|
|
|
"You are a very wonderful man," she said. "You are
|
|
such a man as I have seen in my daydreams ever since I
|
|
was a little girl. You are such a man as I imagine the
|
|
forbears of my people must have been--the great race of people
|
|
who built this mighty city in the heart of a savage world that
|
|
they might wrest from the bowels of the earth the fabulous
|
|
wealth for which they had sacrificed their far-distant civilization.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot understand why you came to my rescue in the
|
|
first place, and now I cannot understand why, having me
|
|
within your power, you do not wish to be revenged upon
|
|
me for having sentenced you to death--for having almost
|
|
put you to death with my own hand."
|
|
|
|
"I presume," replied the ape-man, "that you but followed
|
|
the teachings of your religion. I cannot blame YOU for that,
|
|
no matter what I may think of your creed. But who are you
|
|
--what people have I fallen among?"
|
|
|
|
"I am La, high priestess of the Temple of the Sun, in the
|
|
city of Opar. We are descendants of a people who came to
|
|
this savage world more than ten thousand years ago in search
|
|
of gold. Their cities stretched from a great sea under the
|
|
rising sun to a great sea into which the sun descends at night
|
|
to cool his flaming brow. They were very rich and very
|
|
powerful, but they lived only a few months of the year in
|
|
their magnificent palaces here; the rest of the time they
|
|
spent in their native land, far, far to the north.
|
|
|
|
"Many ships went back and forth between this new world
|
|
and the old. During the rainy season there were but few
|
|
of the inhabitants remained here, only those who
|
|
superintended the working of the mines by the black slaves,
|
|
and the merchants who had to stay to supply their wants,
|
|
and the soldiers who guarded the cities and the mines.
|
|
|
|
"It was at one of these times that the great calamity occurred.
|
|
When the time came for the teeming thousands to return none came.
|
|
For weeks the people waited. Then they sent out a great galley
|
|
to learn why no one came from the mother country, but though
|
|
they sailed about for many months, they were unable to find
|
|
any trace of the mighty land that had for countless ages
|
|
borne their ancient civilization--it had sunk into the sea.
|
|
|
|
"From that day dated the downfall of my people.
|
|
Disheartened and unhappy, they soon became a prey to the
|
|
black hordes of the north and the black hordes of the south.
|
|
One by one the cities were deserted or overcome. The last
|
|
remnant was finally forced to take shelter within this mighty
|
|
mountain fortress. Slowly we have dwindled in power, in
|
|
civilization, in intellect, in numbers, until now we are no
|
|
more than a small tribe of savage apes.
|
|
|
|
"In fact, the apes live with us, and have for many ages.
|
|
We call them the first men--we speak their language quite
|
|
as much as we do our own; only in the rituals of the temple
|
|
do we make any attempt to retain our mother tongue. In time
|
|
it will be forgotten, and we will speak only the language
|
|
of the apes; in time we will no longer banish those of our
|
|
people who mate with apes, and so in time we shall descend
|
|
to the very beasts from which ages ago our progenitors may
|
|
have sprung."
|
|
|
|
"But why are you more human than the others?" asked
|
|
the man.
|
|
|
|
"For some reason the women have not reverted to savagery
|
|
so rapidly as the men. It may be because only the
|
|
lower types of men remained here at the time of the great
|
|
catastrophe, while the temples were filled with the noblest
|
|
daughters of the race. My strain has remained clearer
|
|
than the rest because for countless ages my foremothers were
|
|
high priestesses--the sacred office descends from mother
|
|
to daughter. Our husbands are chosen for us from the noblest
|
|
in the land. The most perfect man, mentally and physically,
|
|
is selected to be the husband of the high priestess."
|
|
|
|
"From what I saw of the gentlemen above," said Tarzan,
|
|
with a grin, "there should be little trouble in choosing from
|
|
among them."
|
|
|
|
The girl looked at him quizzically for a moment.
|
|
|
|
"Do not be sacrilegious," she said. "They are very holy
|
|
men--they are priests."
|
|
|
|
"Then there are others who are better to look upon?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"The others are all more ugly than the priests," she replied.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan shuddered at her fate, for even in the dim light of
|
|
the vault he was impressed by her beauty.
|
|
|
|
"But how about myself?" he asked suddenly. "Are you
|
|
going to lead me to liberty?"
|
|
|
|
"You have been chosen by The Flaming God as his own,"
|
|
she answered solemnly. "Not even I have the power to
|
|
save you--should they find you again. But I do not intend
|
|
that they shall find you. You risked your life to save mine.
|
|
I may do no less for you. It will be no easy matter--it may
|
|
require days; but in the end I think that I can lead you beyond
|
|
the walls. Come, they will look here for me presently, and
|
|
if they find us together we shall both be lost--they would
|
|
kill me did they think that I had proved false to my god."
|
|
|
|
"You must not take the risk, then," he said quickly. "I will
|
|
return to the temple, and if I can fight my way to freedom
|
|
there will be no suspicion thrown upon you."
|
|
|
|
But she would not have it so, and finally persuaded him
|
|
to follow her, saying that they had already remained in the
|
|
vault too long to prevent suspicion from falling upon her
|
|
even if they returned to the temple.
|
|
|
|
"I will hide you, and then return alone," she said, "telling
|
|
them that I was long unconscious after you killed Tha, and
|
|
that I do not know whither you escaped."
|
|
|
|
And so she led him through winding corridors of gloom,
|
|
until finally they came to a small chamber into which a little
|
|
light filtered through a stone grating in the ceiling.
|
|
|
|
"This is the Chamber of the Dead," she said. "None will
|
|
think of searching here for you--they would not dare. I will
|
|
return after it is dark. By that time I may have found a
|
|
plan to effect your escape."
|
|
|
|
She was gone, and Tarzan of the Apes was left alone in
|
|
the Chamber of the Dead, beneath the long-dead city of Opar.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 21
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Castaways
|
|
|
|
|
|
Clayton dreamed that he was drinking his fill of water,
|
|
pure, delightful drafts of fresh water. With a start he
|
|
gained consciousness to find himself wet through by
|
|
torrents of rain that were falling upon his body and his
|
|
upturned face. A heavy tropical shower was beating down
|
|
upon them. He opened his mouth and drank. Presently he
|
|
was so revived and strengthened that he was enabled to
|
|
raise himself upon his hands. Across his legs lay
|
|
Monsieur Thuran. A few feet aft Jane Porter was huddled
|
|
in a pitiful little heap in the bottom of the boat--she
|
|
was quite still. Clayton knew that she was dead.
|
|
|
|
After infinite labor he released himself from Thuran's
|
|
pinioning body, and with renewed strength crawled toward the girl.
|
|
He raised her head from the rough boards of the boat's bottom.
|
|
There might be life in that poor, starved frame even yet.
|
|
He could not quite abandon all hope, and so he seized a
|
|
water-soaked rag and squeezed the precious drops between
|
|
the swollen lips of the hideous thing that had but a few
|
|
short days before glowed with the resplendent life of
|
|
happy youth and glorious beauty.
|
|
|
|
For some time there was no sign of returning animation,
|
|
but at last his efforts were rewarded by a slight tremor of
|
|
the half-closed lids. He chafed the thin hands, and forced a
|
|
few more drops of water into the parched throat. The girl
|
|
opened her eyes, looking up at him for a long time before
|
|
she could recall her surroundings.
|
|
|
|
"Water?" she whispered. "Are we saved?"
|
|
|
|
"It is raining," he explained. "We may at least drink.
|
|
Already it has revived us both."
|
|
|
|
"Monsieur Thuran?" she asked. "He did not kill you. Is he dead?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know," replied Clayton. "If he lives and this
|
|
rain revives him--" But he stopped there, remembering too
|
|
late that he must not add further to the horrors which the
|
|
girl already had endured.
|
|
|
|
But she guessed what he would have said.
|
|
|
|
"Where is he?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
Clayton nodded his head toward the prostrate form of
|
|
the Russian. For a time neither spoke.
|
|
|
|
"I will see if I can revive him," said Clayton at length.
|
|
|
|
"No," she whispered, extending a detaining hand toward him.
|
|
"Do not do that--he will kill you when the water has
|
|
given him strength. If he is dying, let him die. Do not leave
|
|
me alone in this boat with that beast."
|
|
|
|
Clayton hesitated. His honor demanded that he attempt
|
|
to revive Thuran, and there was the possibility, too, that the
|
|
Russian was beyond human aid. It was not dishonorable to
|
|
hope so. As he sat fighting out his battle he presently raised
|
|
his eyes from the body of the man, and as they passed above
|
|
the gunwale of the boat he staggered weakly to his feet with
|
|
a little cry of joy.
|
|
|
|
"Land, Jane!" he almost shouted through his cracked lips.
|
|
"Thank God, land!"
|
|
|
|
The girl looked, too, and there, not a hundred yards away,
|
|
she saw a yellow beach, and, beyond, the luxurious foliage
|
|
of a tropical jungle.
|
|
|
|
"Now you may revive him," said Jane Porter, for she, too,
|
|
had been haunted with the pangs of conscience which had
|
|
resulted from her decision to prevent Clayton from offering
|
|
succor to their companion.
|
|
|
|
It required the better part of half an hour before the
|
|
Russian evinced sufficient symptoms of returning consciousness
|
|
to open his eyes, and it was some time later before
|
|
they could bring him to a realization of their good fortune.
|
|
By this time the boat was scraping gently upon the sandy bottom.
|
|
|
|
Between the refreshing water that he had drunk and the
|
|
stimulus of renewed hope, Clayton found strength to stagger
|
|
through the shallow water to the shore with a line made
|
|
fast to the boat's bow. This he fastened to a small tree which
|
|
grew at the top of a low bank, for the tide was at flood, and
|
|
he feared that the boat might carry them all out to sea again
|
|
with the ebb, since it was quite likely that it would be beyond
|
|
his strength to get Jane Porter to the shore for several hours.
|
|
Next he managed to stagger and crawl toward the near-
|
|
by jungle, where he had seen evidences of profusion of
|
|
tropical fruit. His former experience in the jungle of
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes had taught him which of the many growing
|
|
things were edible, and after nearly an hour of absence he
|
|
returned to the beach with a little armful of food.
|
|
|
|
The rain had ceased, and the hot sun was beating down so
|
|
mercilessly upon her that Jane Porter insisted on making an
|
|
immediate attempt to gain the land. Still further invigorated
|
|
by the food Clayton had brought, the three were able to reach
|
|
the half shade of the small tree to which their boat was moored.
|
|
Here, thoroughly exhausted, they threw themselves down to rest,
|
|
sleeping until dark.
|
|
|
|
For a month they lived upon the beach in comparative safety.
|
|
As their strength returned the two men constructed a rude
|
|
shelter in the branches of a tree, high enough from the
|
|
ground to insure safety from the larger beasts of prey.
|
|
By day they gathered fruits and trapped small rodents; at night
|
|
they lay cowering within their frail shelter while savage
|
|
denizens of the jungle made hideous the hours of darkness.
|
|
|
|
They slept upon litters of jungle grasses, and for covering
|
|
at night Jane Porter had only an old ulster that belonged
|
|
to Clayton, the same garment that he had worn upon that
|
|
memorable trip to the Wisconsin woods. Clayton had erected
|
|
a frail partition of boughs to divide their arboreal shelter
|
|
into two rooms--one for the girl and the other for Monsieur
|
|
Thuran and himself.
|
|
|
|
From the first the Russian had exhibited every trait of his
|
|
true character--selfishness, boorishness, arrogance,
|
|
cowardice, and lust. Twice had he and Clayton come to
|
|
blows because of Thuran's attitude toward the girl.
|
|
Clayton dared not leave her alone with him for an instant.
|
|
The existence of the Englishman and his fiancee was one
|
|
continual nightmare of horror, and yet they lived on in
|
|
hope of ultimate rescue.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter's thoughts often reverted to her other experience
|
|
on this savage shore. Ah, if the invincible forest god
|
|
of that dead past were but with them now. No longer would
|
|
there be aught to fear from prowling beasts, or from the
|
|
bestial Russian. She could not well refrain from comparing
|
|
the scant protection afforded her by Clayton with what she
|
|
might have expected had Tarzan of the Apes been for a
|
|
single instant confronted by the sinister and menacing
|
|
attitude of Monsieur Thuran. Once, when Clayton had gone
|
|
to the little stream for water, and Thuran had spoken coarsely
|
|
to her, she voiced her thoughts.
|
|
|
|
"It is well for you, Monsieur Thuran," she said, "that the
|
|
poor Monsieur Tarzan who was lost from the ship that brought
|
|
you and Miss Strong to Cape Town is not here now."
|
|
|
|
"You knew the pig?" asked Thuran, with a sneer.
|
|
|
|
"I knew the man," she replied. "The only real man, I
|
|
think, that I have ever known."
|
|
|
|
There was something in her tone of voice that led the Russian
|
|
to attribute to her a deeper feeling for his enemy than
|
|
friendship, and he grasped at the suggestion to be further
|
|
revenged upon the man whom he supposed dead by besmirching
|
|
his memory to the girl.
|
|
|
|
"He was worse than a pig," he cried. "He was a poltroon
|
|
and a coward. To save himself from the righteous wrath of
|
|
the husband of a woman he had wronged, he perjured his
|
|
soul in an attempt to place the blame entirely upon her.
|
|
Not succeeding in this, he ran away from France to escape
|
|
meeting the husband upon the field of honor. That is why
|
|
he was on board the ship that bore Miss Strong and myself to
|
|
Cape Town. I know whereof I speak, for the woman in the
|
|
case is my sister. Something more I know that I have never
|
|
told another--your brave Monsieur Tarzan leaped overboard
|
|
in an agony of fear because I recognized him, and insisted
|
|
that he make reparation to me the following morning--we
|
|
could have fought with knives in my stateroom."
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter laughed. "You do not for a moment imagine
|
|
that one who has known both Monsieur Tarzan and you
|
|
could ever believe such an impossible tale?"
|
|
|
|
"Then why did he travel under an assumed name?" asked
|
|
Monsieur Thuran.
|
|
|
|
"I do not believe you," she cried, but nevertheless the
|
|
seed of suspicion was sown, for she knew that Hazel Strong
|
|
had known her forest god only as John Caldwell, of London.
|
|
|
|
A scant five miles north of their rude shelter, all unknown
|
|
to them, and practically as remote as though separated by
|
|
thousands of miles of impenetrable jungle, lay the snug
|
|
little cabin of Tarzan of the Apes. While farther up the
|
|
coast, a few miles beyond the cabin, in crude but well-built
|
|
shelters, lived a little party of eighteen souls--the occupants
|
|
of the three boats from the LADY ALICE from which Clayton's
|
|
boat had become separated.
|
|
|
|
Over a smooth sea they had rowed to the mainland in less
|
|
than three days. None of the horrors of shipwreck had been
|
|
theirs, and though depressed by sorrow, and suffering from
|
|
the shock of the catastrophe and the unaccustomed hardships
|
|
of their new existence there was none much the worse
|
|
for the experience.
|
|
|
|
All were buoyed by the hope that the fourth boat had
|
|
been picked up, and that a thorough search of the coast
|
|
would be quickly made. As all the firearms and ammunition
|
|
on the yacht had been placed in Lord Tennington's boat,
|
|
the party was well equipped for defense, and for hunting
|
|
the larger game for food.
|
|
|
|
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter was their only immediate anxiety.
|
|
Fully assured in his own mind that his daughter had been
|
|
picked up by a passing steamer, he gave over the last
|
|
vestige of apprehension concerning her welfare, and
|
|
devoted his giant intellect solely to the consideration of
|
|
those momentous and abstruse scientific problems which he
|
|
considered the only proper food for thought in one of
|
|
his erudition. His mind appeared blank to the influence
|
|
of all extraneous matters.
|
|
|
|
"Never," said the exhausted Mr. Samuel T. Philander, to
|
|
Lord Tennington, "never has Professor Porter been more
|
|
difficult--er--I might say, impossible. Why, only this
|
|
morning, after I had been forced to relinquish my surveillance
|
|
for a brief half hour he was entirely missing upon my return.
|
|
And, bless me, sir, where do you imagine I discovered him?
|
|
A half mile out in the ocean, sir, in one of the lifeboats,
|
|
rowing away for dear life. I do not know how he attained
|
|
even that magnificent distance from shore, for he had but a
|
|
single oar, with which he was blissfully rowing about in circles.
|
|
|
|
"When one of the sailors had taken me out to him in
|
|
another boat the professor became quite indignant at my
|
|
suggestion that we return at once to land. `Why, Mr. Philander,'
|
|
he said, `I am surprised that you, sir, a man of letters
|
|
yourself, should have the temerity so to interrupt the
|
|
progress of science. I had about deduced from certain astronomic
|
|
phenomena I have had under minute observation during the
|
|
past several tropic nights an entirely new nebular hypothesis
|
|
which will unquestionably startle the scientific world. I wish
|
|
to consult a very excellent monograph on Laplace's hypothesis,
|
|
which I understand is in a certain private collection in
|
|
New York City. Your interference, Mr. Philander, will result
|
|
in an irreparable delay, for I was just rowing over to obtain
|
|
this pamphlet.' And it was with the greatest difficulty that I
|
|
persuaded him to return to shore, without resorting to force,"
|
|
concluded Mr. Philander.
|
|
|
|
Miss Strong and her mother were very brave under the
|
|
strain of almost constant apprehension of the attacks of
|
|
savage beasts. Nor were they quite able to accept so readily
|
|
as the others the theory that Jane, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran
|
|
had been picked up safely.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter's Esmeralda was in a constant state of tears at the
|
|
cruel fate which had separated her from her "po, li'le honey."
|
|
|
|
Lord Tennington's great-hearted good nature never deserted
|
|
him for a moment. He was still the jovial host, seeking
|
|
always for the comfort and pleasure of his guests. With the
|
|
men of his yacht he remained the just but firm commander
|
|
--there was never any more question in the jungle than there
|
|
had been on board the LADY ALICE as to who was the final
|
|
authority in all questions of importance, and in all
|
|
emergencies requiring cool and intelligent leadership.
|
|
|
|
Could this well-organized and comparatively secure party
|
|
of castaways have seen the ragged, fear-haunted trio a few
|
|
miles south of them they would scarcely have recognized in
|
|
them the formerly immaculate members of the little company
|
|
that had laughed and played upon the LADY ALICE.
|
|
Clayton and Monsieur Thuran were almost naked, so torn
|
|
had their clothes been by the thorn bushes and tangled
|
|
vegetation of the matted jungle through which they had been
|
|
compelled to force their way in search of their ever more
|
|
difficult food supply.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter had of course not been subjected to these
|
|
strenuous expeditions, but her apparel was, nevertheless,
|
|
in a sad state of disrepair.
|
|
|
|
Clayton, for lack of any better occupation, had carefully
|
|
saved the skin of every animal they had killed. By stretching
|
|
them upon the stems of trees, and diligently scraping them,
|
|
he had managed to save them in a fair condition, and now
|
|
that his clothes were threatening to cover his nakedness no
|
|
longer, he commenced to fashion a rude garment of them,
|
|
using a sharp thorn for a needle, and bits of tough grass and
|
|
animal tendons in lieu of thread.
|
|
|
|
The result when completed was a sleeveless garment which
|
|
fell nearly to his knees. As it was made up of numerous
|
|
small pelts of different species of rodents, it presented a
|
|
rather strange and wonderful appearance, which, together
|
|
with the vile stench which permeated it, rendered it anything
|
|
other than a desirable addition to a wardrobe. But the time
|
|
came when for the sake of decency he was compelled to don
|
|
it, and even the misery of their condition could not prevent
|
|
Jane Porter from laughing heartily at sight of him.
|
|
|
|
Later, Thuran also found it necessary to construct a similar
|
|
primitive garment, so that, with their bare legs and heavily
|
|
bearded faces, they looked not unlike reincarnations of two
|
|
prehistoric progenitors of the human race. Thuran acted like one.
|
|
|
|
Nearly two months of this existence had passed when the
|
|
first great calamity befell them. It was prefaced by an
|
|
adventure which came near terminating abruptly the sufferings
|
|
of two of them--terminating them in the grim and horrible
|
|
manner of the jungle, forever.
|
|
|
|
Thuran, down with an attack of jungle fever, lay in the
|
|
shelter among the branches of their tree of refuge.
|
|
Clayton had been into the jungle a few hundred yards
|
|
in search of food. As he returned Jane Porter walked
|
|
to meet him. Behind the man, cunning and crafty,
|
|
crept an old and mangy lion. For three days his ancient
|
|
thews and sinews had proved insufficient for the task of
|
|
providing his cavernous belly with meat. For months he
|
|
had eaten less and less frequently, and farther and farther
|
|
had he roamed from his accustomed haunts in search of
|
|
easier prey. At last he had found nature's weakest and
|
|
most defenseless creature--in a moment more Numa would dine.
|
|
|
|
Clayton, all unconscious of the lurking death behind him,
|
|
strode out into the open toward Jane. He had reached her
|
|
side, a hundred feet from the tangled edge of jungle when
|
|
past his shoulder the girl saw the tawny head and the
|
|
wicked yellow eyes as the grasses parted, and the huge
|
|
beast, nose to ground, stepped softly into view.
|
|
|
|
So frozen with horror was she that she could utter no
|
|
sound, but the fixed and terrified gaze of her fear-widened
|
|
eyes spoke as plainly to Clayton as words. A quick glance
|
|
behind him revealed the hopelessness of their situation.
|
|
The lion was scarce thirty paces from them, and they were
|
|
equally as far from the shelter. The man was armed with
|
|
a stout stick--as efficacious against a hungry lion,
|
|
he realized, as a toy pop-gun charged with a tethered cork.
|
|
|
|
Numa, ravenous with hunger, had long since learned the
|
|
futility of roaring and moaning as he searched for prey,
|
|
but now that it was as surely his as though already he had
|
|
felt the soft flesh beneath his still mighty paw, he opened his
|
|
huge jaws, and gave vent to his long-pent rage in a series of
|
|
deafening roars that made the air tremble.
|
|
|
|
"Run, Jane!" cried Clayton. "Quick! Run for the shelter!"
|
|
But her paralyzed muscles refused to respond, and she stood
|
|
mute and rigid, staring with ghastly countenance at the
|
|
living death creeping toward them.
|
|
|
|
Thuran, at the sound of that awful roar, had come to
|
|
the opening of the shelter, and as he saw the tableau below
|
|
him he hopped up and down, shrieking to them in Russian.
|
|
|
|
"Run! Run!" he cried. "Run, or I shall be left all alone in
|
|
this horrible place," and then he broke down and commenced to weep.
|
|
For a moment this new voice distracted the attention of the
|
|
lion, who halted to cast an inquiring glance in the direction
|
|
of the tree. Clayton could endure the strain no longer.
|
|
Turning his back upon the beast, he buried his head in
|
|
his arms and waited.
|
|
|
|
The girl looked at him in horror. Why did he not do
|
|
something? If he must die, why not die like a man--bravely;
|
|
beating at that terrible face with his puny stick, no matter how
|
|
futile it might be. Would Tarzan of the Apes have done thus?
|
|
Would he not at least have gone down to his death fighting
|
|
heroically to the last?
|
|
|
|
Now the lion was crouching for the spring that would end
|
|
their young lives beneath cruel, rending, yellow fangs.
|
|
Jane Porter sank to her knees in prayer, closing her eyes
|
|
to shut out the last hideous instant. Thuran, weak
|
|
from fever, fainted.
|
|
|
|
Seconds dragged into minutes, long minutes into an eternity,
|
|
and yet the beast did not spring. Clayton was almost
|
|
unconscious from the prolonged agony of fright--his
|
|
knees trembled--a moment more and he would collapse.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter could endure it no longer. She opened her eyes.
|
|
Could she be dreaming?
|
|
|
|
"William," she whispered; "look!"
|
|
|
|
Clayton mastered himself sufficiently to raise his head and
|
|
turn toward the lion. An ejaculation of surprise burst from
|
|
his lips. At their very feet the beast lay crumpled in death.
|
|
A heavy war spear protruded from the tawny hide. It had
|
|
entered the great back above the right shoulder, and, passing
|
|
entirely through the body, had pierced the savage heart.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter had risen to her feet; as Clayton turned back
|
|
to her she staggered in weakness. He put out his arms to
|
|
save her from falling, and then drew her close to
|
|
him--pressing her head against his shoulder, he stooped
|
|
to kiss her in thanksgiving.
|
|
|
|
Gently the girl pushed him away.
|
|
|
|
"Please do not do that, William," she said. "I have lived a
|
|
thousand years in the past brief moments. I have learned in
|
|
the face of death how to live. I do not wish to hurt you more
|
|
than is necessary; but I can no longer bear to live out the
|
|
impossible position I have attempted because of a false sense
|
|
of loyalty to an impulsive promise I made you.
|
|
|
|
"The last few seconds of my life have taught me that it
|
|
would be hideous to attempt further to deceive myself and
|
|
you, or to entertain for an instant longer the possibility of
|
|
ever becoming your wife, should we regain civilization."
|
|
|
|
"Why, Jane," he cried, "what do you mean? What has our
|
|
providential rescue to do with altering your feelings toward me?
|
|
You are but unstrung--tomorrow you will be yourself again."
|
|
|
|
"I am more nearly myself this minute than I have been for
|
|
over a year," she replied. "The thing that has just happened
|
|
has again forced to my memory the fact that the bravest man
|
|
that ever lived honored me with his love. Until it was too
|
|
late I did not realize that I returned it, and so I sent him away.
|
|
He is dead now, and I shall never marry. I certainly could
|
|
not wed another less brave than he without harboring constantly
|
|
a feeling of contempt for the relative cowardice of my husband.
|
|
Do you understand me?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he answered, with bowed head, his face mantling
|
|
with the flush of shame.
|
|
|
|
And it was the next day that the great calamity befell.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 22
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Treasure Vaults of Opar
|
|
|
|
|
|
It was quite dark before La, the high priestess, returned to
|
|
the Chamber of the Dead with food and drink for Tarzan.
|
|
She bore no light, feeling with her hands along the
|
|
crumbling walls until she gained the chamber. Through the
|
|
stone grating above, a tropic moon served dimly to illuminate
|
|
the interior.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan, crouching in the shadows at the far side of the
|
|
room as the first sound of approaching footsteps reached him,
|
|
came forth to meet the girl as he recognized that it was she.
|
|
|
|
"They are furious," were her first words. "Never before
|
|
has a human sacrifice escaped the altar. Already fifty have
|
|
gone forth to track you down. They have searched the
|
|
temple--all save this single room."
|
|
|
|
"Why do they fear to come here?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"It is the Chamber of the Dead. Here the dead return to worship.
|
|
See this ancient altar? It is here that the dead sacrifice the
|
|
living--if they find a victim here. That is the reason
|
|
our people shun this chamber. Were one to enter he knows
|
|
that the waiting dead would seize him for their sacrifice."
|
|
|
|
"But you?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"I am high priestess--I alone am safe from the dead.
|
|
It is I who at rare intervals bring them a human sacrifice
|
|
from the world above. I alone may enter here in safety."
|
|
|
|
"Why have they not seized me?" he asked, humoring her
|
|
grotesque belief.
|
|
|
|
She looked at him quizzically for a moment. Then she replied:
|
|
|
|
"It is the duty of a high priestess to instruct, to interpret--
|
|
according to the creed that others, wiser than herself, have
|
|
laid down; but there is nothing in the creed which says that
|
|
she must believe. The more one knows of one's religion the
|
|
less one believes--no one living knows more of mine than I."
|
|
|
|
"Then your only fear in aiding me to escape is that your
|
|
fellow mortals may discover your duplicity?"
|
|
|
|
"That is all--the dead are dead; they cannot harm--or help.
|
|
We must therefore depend entirely upon ourselves, and the
|
|
sooner we act the better it will be. I had difficulty in
|
|
eluding their vigilance but now in bringing you this morsel
|
|
of food. To attempt to repeat the thing daily would be the
|
|
height of folly. Come, let us see how far we may go toward
|
|
liberty before I must return."
|
|
|
|
She led him back to the chamber beneath the altar room.
|
|
Here she turned into one of the several corridors leading
|
|
from it. In the darkness Tarzan could not see which one.
|
|
For ten minutes they groped slowly along a winding passage,
|
|
until at length they came to a closed door. Here he heard
|
|
her fumbling with a key, and presently came the sound of a
|
|
metal bolt grating against metal. The door swung in on
|
|
scraping hinges, and they entered.
|
|
|
|
"You will be safe here until tomorrow night," she said.
|
|
|
|
Then she went out, and, closing the door, locked it behind her.
|
|
|
|
Where Tarzan stood it was dark as Erebus. Not even his
|
|
trained eyes could penetrate the utter blackness.
|
|
Cautiously he moved forward until his out-stretched hand
|
|
touched a wall, then very slowly he traveled around the
|
|
four walls of the chamber.
|
|
|
|
Apparently it was about twenty feet square. The floor
|
|
was of concrete, the walls of the dry masonry that marked
|
|
the method of construction above ground. Small pieces of
|
|
granite of various sizes were ingeniously laid together
|
|
without mortar to construct these ancient foundations.
|
|
|
|
The first time around the walls Tarzan thought he detected
|
|
a strange phenomenon for a room with no windows but a
|
|
single door. Again he crept carefully around close to
|
|
the wall. No, he could not be mistaken! He paused before
|
|
the center of the wall opposite the door. For a moment he
|
|
stood quite motionless, then he moved a few feet to one side.
|
|
Again he returned, only to move a few feet to the other side.
|
|
|
|
Once more he made the entire circuit of the room, feeling
|
|
carefully every foot of the walls. Finally he stopped again
|
|
before the particular section that had aroused his curiosity.
|
|
There was no doubt of it! A distinct draft of fresh air was
|
|
blowing into the chamber through the intersection of the
|
|
masonry at that particular point--and nowhere else.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan tested several pieces of the granite which made up
|
|
the wall at this spot, and finally was rewarded by finding
|
|
one which lifted out readily. It was about ten inches wide,
|
|
with a face some three by six inches showing within the chamber.
|
|
One by one the ape-man lifted out similarly shaped stones.
|
|
The wall at this point was constructed entirely, it seemed,
|
|
of these almost perfect slabs. In a short time he had
|
|
removed some dozen, when he reached in to test the next
|
|
layer of masonry. To his surprise, he felt nothing behind the
|
|
masonry he had removed as far as his long arm could reach.
|
|
|
|
It was a matter of but a few minutes to remove enough
|
|
of the wall to permit his body to pass through the aperture.
|
|
Directly ahead of him he thought he discerned a faint glow
|
|
--scarcely more than a less impenetrable darkness.
|
|
Cautiously he moved forward on hands and knees, until at about
|
|
fifteen feet, or the average thickness of the foundation
|
|
walls, the floor ended abruptly in a sudden drop. As far out
|
|
as he could reach he felt nothing, nor could he find the
|
|
bottom of the black abyss that yawned before him, though,
|
|
clinging to the edge of the floor, he lowered his body into
|
|
the darkness to its full length.
|
|
Finally it occurred to him to look up, and there above him
|
|
he saw through a round opening a tiny circular patch of
|
|
starry sky. Feeling up along the sides of the shaft as far
|
|
as he could reach, the ape-man discovered that so much of
|
|
the wall as he could feel converged toward the center of
|
|
the shaft as it rose. This fact precluded possibility of
|
|
escape in that direction.
|
|
|
|
As he sat speculating on the nature and uses of this
|
|
strange passage and its terminal shaft, the moon topped
|
|
the opening above, letting a flood of soft, silvery light into
|
|
the shadowy place. Instantly the nature of the shaft became
|
|
apparent to Tarzan, for far below him he saw the shimmering
|
|
surface of water. He had come upon an ancient well--but
|
|
what was the purpose of the connection between the well
|
|
and the dungeon in which he had been hidden?
|
|
|
|
As the moon crossed the opening of the shaft its light
|
|
flooded the whole interior, and then Tarzan saw directly
|
|
across from him another opening in the opposite wall.
|
|
He wondered if this might not be the mouth of a passage
|
|
leading to possible escape. It would be worth investigating,
|
|
at least, and this he determined to do.
|
|
|
|
Quickly returning to the wall he had demolished to
|
|
explore what lay beyond it, he carried the stones into the
|
|
passageway and replaced them from that side. The deep deposit
|
|
of dust which he had noticed upon the blocks as he
|
|
had first removed them from the wall had convinced him
|
|
that even if the present occupants of the ancient pile had
|
|
knowledge of this hidden passage they had made no use of
|
|
it for perhaps generations.
|
|
|
|
The wall replaced, Tarzan turned to the shaft, which was
|
|
some fifteen feet wide at this point. To leap across the
|
|
intervening space was a small matter to the ape-man, and a
|
|
moment later he was proceeding along a narrow tunnel,
|
|
moving cautiously for fear of being precipitated into another
|
|
shaft such as he had just crossed.
|
|
|
|
He had advanced some hundred feet when he came to a
|
|
flight of steps leading downward into Stygian gloom.
|
|
Some twenty feet below, the level floor of the tunnel
|
|
recommenced, and shortly afterward his progress was stopped
|
|
by a heavy wooden door which was secured by massive wooden
|
|
bars upon the side of Tarzan's approach. This fact suggested
|
|
to the ape-man that he might surely be in a passageway
|
|
leading to the outer world, for the bolts, barring progress
|
|
from the opposite side, tended to substantiate this hypothesis,
|
|
unless it were merely a prison to which it led.
|
|
|
|
Along the tops of the bars were deep layers of dust--a further
|
|
indication that the passage had lain long unused. As he
|
|
pushed the massive obstacle aside, its great hinges shrieked
|
|
out in weird protest against this unaccustomed disturbance.
|
|
For a moment Tarzan paused to listen for any responsive
|
|
note which might indicate that the unusual night
|
|
noise had alarmed the inmates of the temple; but as he heard
|
|
nothing he advanced beyond the doorway.
|
|
|
|
Carefully feeling about, he found himself within a large
|
|
chamber, along the walls of which, and down the length of
|
|
the floor, were piled many tiers of metal ingots of an odd
|
|
though uniform shape. To his groping hands they felt not
|
|
unlike double-headed bootjacks. The ingots were quite
|
|
heavy, and but for the enormous number of them he would
|
|
have been positive that they were gold; but the thought of
|
|
the fabulous wealth these thousands of pounds of metal
|
|
would have represented were they in reality gold, almost
|
|
convinced him that they must be of some baser metal.
|
|
|
|
At the far end of the chamber he discovered another
|
|
barred door, and again the bars upon the inside renewed
|
|
the hope that he was traversing an ancient and forgotten
|
|
passageway to liberty. Beyond the door the passage ran
|
|
straight as a war spear, and it soon became evident to
|
|
the ape-man that it had already led him beyond the outer
|
|
walls of the temple. If he but knew the direction it was
|
|
leading him! If toward the west, then he must also be
|
|
beyond the city's outer walls.
|
|
|
|
With increasing hopes he forged ahead as rapidly as he
|
|
dared, until at the end of half an hour he came to another
|
|
flight of steps leading upward. At the bottom this
|
|
flight was of concrete, but as he ascended his naked feet
|
|
felt a sudden change in the substance they were treading.
|
|
The steps of concrete had given place to steps of granite.
|
|
Feeling with his hands, the ape-man discovered that these
|
|
latter were evidently hewed from rock, for there was no
|
|
crack to indicate a joint.
|
|
|
|
For a hundred feet the steps wound spirally up, until at a
|
|
sudden turning Tarzan came into a narrow cleft between
|
|
two rocky walls. Above him shone the starry sky, and before
|
|
him a steep incline replaced the steps that had terminated
|
|
at its foot. Up this pathway Tarzan hastened, and at
|
|
its upper end came out upon the rough top of a huge
|
|
granite bowlder.
|
|
|
|
A mile away lay the ruined city of Opar, its domes and
|
|
turrets bathed in the soft light of the equatorial moon.
|
|
Tarzan dropped his eyes to the ingot he had brought away
|
|
with him. For a moment he examined it by the moon's bright
|
|
rays, then he raised his head to look out upon the ancient
|
|
piles of crumbling grandeur in the distance.
|
|
|
|
"Opar," he mused, "Opar, the enchanted city of a dead
|
|
and forgotten past. The city of the beauties and the beasts.
|
|
City of horrors and death; but--city of fabulous riches."
|
|
The ingot was of virgin gold.
|
|
|
|
The bowlder on which Tarzan found himself lay well out
|
|
in the plain between the city and the distant cliffs he and his
|
|
black warriors had scaled the morning previous. To descend
|
|
its rough and precipitous face was a task of infinite labor
|
|
and considerable peril even to the ape-man; but at last he
|
|
felt the soft soil of the valley beneath his feet, and without
|
|
a backward glance at Opar he turned his face toward the
|
|
guardian cliffs, and at a rapid trot set off across the valley.
|
|
|
|
The sun was just rising as he gained the summit of the
|
|
flat mountain at the valley's western boundary. Far beneath
|
|
him he saw smoke arising above the tree-tops of the forest
|
|
at the base of the foothills.
|
|
|
|
"Man," he murmured. "And there were fifty who went
|
|
forth to track me down. Can it be they?"
|
|
|
|
Swiftly he descended the face of the cliff, and, dropping
|
|
into a narrow ravine which led down to the far forest, he
|
|
hastened onward in the direction of the smoke. Striking the
|
|
forest's edge about a quarter of a mile from the point at
|
|
which the slender column arose into the still air, he took to
|
|
the trees. Cautiously he approached until there suddenly
|
|
burst upon his view a rude BOMA, in the center of which,
|
|
squatted about their tiny fires, sat his fifty black Waziri.
|
|
He called to them in their own tongue:
|
|
|
|
"Arise, my children, and greet thy king!"
|
|
|
|
With exclamations of surprise and fear the warriors leaped
|
|
to their feet, scarcely knowing whether to flee or not.
|
|
Then Tarzan dropped lightly from an overhanging branch into
|
|
their midst. When they realized that it was indeed their
|
|
chief in the flesh, and no materialized spirit, they went mad
|
|
with joy.
|
|
|
|
"We were cowards, oh, Waziri," cried Busuli. "We ran
|
|
away and left you to your fate; but when our panic was
|
|
over we swore to return and save you, or at least take
|
|
revenge upon your murderers. We were but now preparing to
|
|
scale the heights once more and cross the desolate valley to
|
|
the terrible city."
|
|
|
|
"Have you seen fifty frightful men pass down from the
|
|
cliffs into this forest, my children?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Waziri," replied Busuli. "They passed us late yesterday,
|
|
as we were about to turn back after you. They had no woodcraft.
|
|
We heard them coming for a mile before we saw them, and as we
|
|
had other business in hand we withdrew into the forest and let
|
|
them pass. They were waddling rapidly along upon short legs,
|
|
and now and then one would go upon all fours like Bolgani,
|
|
the gorilla. They were indeed fifty frightful men, Waziri."
|
|
|
|
When Tarzan had related his adventures and told them
|
|
of the yellow metal he had found, not one demurred when
|
|
he outlined a plan to return by night and bring away what
|
|
they could carry of the vast treasure; and so it was that as
|
|
dusk fell across the desolate valley of Opar fifty ebon
|
|
warriors trailed at a smart trot over the dry and dusty
|
|
ground toward the giant bowlder that loomed before the city.
|
|
|
|
If it had seemed a difficult task to descend the face of
|
|
the bowlder, Tarzan soon found that it would be next to
|
|
impossible to get his fifty warriors to the summit. Finally the
|
|
feat was accomplished by dint of herculean efforts upon the
|
|
part of the ape-man. Ten spears were fastened end to end,
|
|
and with one end of this remarkable chain attached to his
|
|
waist, Tarzan at last succeeded in reaching the summit.
|
|
|
|
Once there, he drew up one of his blacks, and in this way
|
|
the entire party was finally landed in safety upon the
|
|
bowlder's top. Immediately Tarzan led them to the
|
|
treasure chamber, where to each was allotted a load of
|
|
two ingots, for each about eighty pounds.
|
|
|
|
By midnight the entire party stood once more at the
|
|
foot of the bowlder, but with their heavy loads it was mid-
|
|
forenoon ere they reached the summit of the cliffs.
|
|
From there on the homeward journey was slow, as these proud
|
|
fighting men were unaccustomed to the duties of porters.
|
|
But they bore their burdens uncomplainingly, and at the end
|
|
of thirty days entered their own country.
|
|
|
|
Here, instead of continuing on toward the northwest and
|
|
their village, Tarzan guided them almost directly west, until
|
|
on the morning of the thirty-third day he bade them break
|
|
camp and return to their own village, leaving the gold where
|
|
they had stacked it the previous night.
|
|
|
|
"And you, Waziri?" they asked.
|
|
|
|
"I shall remain here for a few days, my children," he replied.
|
|
"Now hasten back to thy wives and children."
|
|
|
|
When they had gone Tarzan gathered up two of the ingots
|
|
and, springing into a tree, ran lightly above the tangled and
|
|
impenetrable mass of undergrowth for a couple of hundred yards,
|
|
to emerge suddenly upon a circular clearing about which the
|
|
giants of the jungle forest towered like a guardian host.
|
|
In the center of this natural amphitheater, was a little
|
|
flat-topped mound of hard earth.
|
|
|
|
Hundreds of times before had Tarzan been to this secluded
|
|
spot, which was so densely surrounded by thorn bushes
|
|
and tangled vines and creepers of huge girth that
|
|
not even Sheeta, the leopard, could worm his sinuous way
|
|
within, nor Tantor, with his giant strength, force the
|
|
barriers which protected the council chamber of the great
|
|
apes from all but the harmless denizens of the savage jungle.
|
|
|
|
Fifty trips Tarzan made before he had deposited all the
|
|
ingots within the precincts of the amphitheater. Then from
|
|
the hollow of an ancient, lightning-blasted tree he produced
|
|
the very spade with which he had uncovered the chest of
|
|
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter which he had once, apelike,
|
|
buried in this selfsame spot. With this he dug a long trench,
|
|
into which he laid the fortune that his blacks had carried
|
|
from the forgotten treasure vaults of the city of Opar.
|
|
|
|
That night he slept within the amphitheater, and early the
|
|
next morning set out to revisit his cabin before returning to
|
|
his Waziri. Finding things as he had left them, he went
|
|
forth into the jungle to hunt, intending to bring his prey to
|
|
the cabin where he might feast in comfort, spending the
|
|
night upon a comfortable couch.
|
|
|
|
For five miles toward the south he roamed, toward the
|
|
banks of a fair-sized river that flowed into the sea about six
|
|
miles from his cabin. He had gone inland about half a mile
|
|
when there came suddenly to his trained nostrils the one
|
|
scent that sets the whole savage jungle aquiver--Tarzan
|
|
smelled man.
|
|
|
|
The wind was blowing off the ocean, so Tarzan knew that
|
|
the authors of the scent were west of him. Mixed with the
|
|
man scent was the scent of Numa. Man and lion.
|
|
"I had better hasten," thought the ape-man, for he had
|
|
recognized the scent of whites. "Numa may be a-hunting."
|
|
|
|
When he came through the trees to the edge of the jungle
|
|
he saw a woman kneeling in prayer, and before her stood a
|
|
wild, primitive-looking white man, his face buried in his arms.
|
|
Behind the man a mangy lion was advancing slowly toward this
|
|
easy prey. The man's face was averted; the woman's bowed
|
|
in prayer. He could not see the features of either.
|
|
|
|
Already Numa was about to spring. There was not a
|
|
second to spare. Tarzan could not even unsling his bow and
|
|
fit an arrow in time to send one of his deadly poisoned
|
|
shafts into the yellow hide. He was too far away to reach
|
|
the beast in time with his knife. There was but a single
|
|
hope--a lone alternative. And with the quickness of thought
|
|
the ape-man acted.
|
|
|
|
A brawny arm flew back--for the briefest fraction of an
|
|
instant a huge spear poised above the giant's shoulder--and
|
|
then the mighty arm shot out, and swift death tore through
|
|
the intervening leaves to bury itself in the heart of the
|
|
leaping lion. Without a sound he rolled over at the very
|
|
feet of his intended victims--dead.
|
|
|
|
For a moment neither the man nor the woman moved. Then the
|
|
latter opened her eyes to look with wonder upon the dead
|
|
beast behind her companion. As that beautiful head went
|
|
up Tarzan of the Apes gave a gasp of incredulous astonishment.
|
|
Was he mad? It could not be the woman he loved!
|
|
But, indeed, it was none other.
|
|
|
|
And the woman rose, and the man took her in his arms
|
|
to kiss her, and of a sudden the ape-man saw red through
|
|
a bloody mist of murder, and the old scar upon his
|
|
forehead burned scarlet against his brown hide.
|
|
|
|
There was a terrible expression upon his savage face as he
|
|
fitted a poisoned shaft to his bow. An ugly light gleamed
|
|
in those gray eyes as he sighted full at the back of the
|
|
unsuspecting man beneath him.
|
|
|
|
For an instant he glanced along the polished shaft,
|
|
drawing the bowstring far back, that the arrow might pierce
|
|
through the heart for which it was aimed.
|
|
|
|
But he did not release the fatal messenger. Slowly the
|
|
point of the arrow drooped; the scar upon the brown
|
|
forehead faded; the bowstring relaxed; and Tarzan of the Apes,
|
|
with bowed head, turned sadly into the jungle toward the
|
|
village of the Waziri.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 23
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Fifty Frightful Men
|
|
|
|
|
|
For several long minutes Jane Porter and William Cecil
|
|
Clayton stood silently looking at the dead body of the
|
|
beast whose prey they had so narrowly escaped becoming.
|
|
|
|
The girl was the first to speak again after her outbreak
|
|
of impulsive avowal.
|
|
|
|
"Who could it have been?" she whispered.
|
|
|
|
"God knows!" was the man's only reply.
|
|
|
|
"If it is a friend, why does he not show himself?"
|
|
continued Jane. "Wouldn't it be well to call out to him,
|
|
and at least thank him?"
|
|
|
|
Mechanically Clayton did her bidding, but there was no response.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter shuddered. "The mysterious jungle," she murmured.
|
|
"The terrible jungle. It renders even the manifestations of
|
|
friendship terrifying."
|
|
|
|
"We had best return to the shelter," said Clayton. "You
|
|
will be at least a little safer there. I am no protection
|
|
whatever," he added bitterly.
|
|
|
|
"Do not say that, William," she hastened to urge, acutely
|
|
sorry for the wound her words had caused. "You have
|
|
done the best you could. You have been noble, and self-
|
|
sacrificing, and brave. It is no fault of yours that you are
|
|
not a superman. There is only one other man I have ever
|
|
known who could have done more than you. My words were
|
|
ill chosen in the excitement of the reaction--I did not wish
|
|
to wound you. All that I wish is that we may both understand
|
|
once and for all that I can never marry you--that such a
|
|
marriage would be wicked."
|
|
|
|
"I think I understand," he replied. "Let us not speak of
|
|
it again--at least until we are back in civilization."
|
|
|
|
The next day Thuran was worse. Almost constantly he was in
|
|
a state of delirium. They could do nothing to relieve him,
|
|
nor was Clayton over-anxious to attempt anything. On the
|
|
girl's account he feared the Russian--in the bottom
|
|
of his heart he hoped the man would die. The thought
|
|
that something might befall him that would leave her
|
|
entirely at the mercy of this beast caused him greater
|
|
anxiety than the probability that almost certain death
|
|
awaited her should she be left entirely alone upon the
|
|
outskirts of the cruel forest.
|
|
|
|
The Englishman had extracted the heavy spear from the body
|
|
of the lion, so that when he went into the forest to hunt
|
|
that morning he had a feeling of much greater security than
|
|
at any time since they had been cast upon the savage shore.
|
|
The result was that he penetrated farther from the shelter
|
|
than ever before.
|
|
|
|
To escape as far as possible from the mad ravings of the
|
|
fever-stricken Russian, Jane Porter had descended from the
|
|
shelter to the foot of the tree--she dared not venture farther.
|
|
Here, beside the crude ladder Clayton had constructed for her,
|
|
she sat looking out to sea, in the always surviving hope
|
|
that a vessel might be sighted.
|
|
|
|
Her back was toward the jungle, and so she did not see
|
|
the grasses part, or the savage face that peered from between.
|
|
Little, bloodshot, close-set eyes scanned her intently,
|
|
roving from time to time about the open beach for indications
|
|
of the presence of others than herself. Presently another
|
|
head appeared, and then another and another. The man in
|
|
the shelter commenced to rave again, and the heads
|
|
disappeared as silently and as suddenly as they had come.
|
|
But soon they were thrust forth once more, as the girl
|
|
gave no sign of perturbation at the continued wailing
|
|
of the man above.
|
|
|
|
One by one grotesque forms emerged from the jungle to
|
|
creep stealthily upon the unsuspecting woman. A faint
|
|
rustling of the grasses attracted her attention. She turned,
|
|
and at the sight that confronted her staggered to her
|
|
feet with a little shriek of fear. Then they closed upon her
|
|
with a rush. Lifting her bodily in his long, gorilla-like arms,
|
|
one of the creatures turned and bore her into the jungle.
|
|
A filthy paw covered her mouth to stifle her screams.
|
|
Added to the weeks of torture she had already undergone,
|
|
the shock was more than she could withstand. Shattered nerves
|
|
collapsed, and she lost consciousness.
|
|
When she regained her senses she found herself in the
|
|
thick of the primeval forest. It was night. A huge fire burned
|
|
brightly in the little clearing in which she lay. About it
|
|
squatted fifty frightful men. Their heads and faces were
|
|
covered with matted hair. Their long arms rested upon the bent
|
|
knees of their short, crooked legs. They were gnawing, like
|
|
beasts, upon unclean food. A pot boiled upon the edge of the
|
|
fire, and out of it one of the creatures would occasionally
|
|
drag a hunk of meat with a sharpened stick.
|
|
|
|
When they discovered that their captive had regained
|
|
consciousness, a piece of this repulsive stew was tossed to her
|
|
from the foul hand of a nearby feaster. It rolled close to her
|
|
side, but she only closed her eyes as a qualm of nausea
|
|
surged through her.
|
|
|
|
For many days they traveled through the dense forest. The girl,
|
|
footsore and exhausted, was half dragged, half pushed through
|
|
the long, hot, tedious days. Occasionally, when she would
|
|
stumble and fall, she was cuffed and kicked by the nearest
|
|
of the frightful men. Long before they reached their
|
|
journey's end her shoes had been discarded--the soles
|
|
entirely gone. Her clothes were torn to mere shreds and
|
|
tatters, and through the pitiful rags her once white and
|
|
tender skin showed raw and bleeding from contact with the
|
|
thousand pitiless thorns and brambles through which she
|
|
had been dragged.
|
|
|
|
The last two days of the journey found her in such utter
|
|
exhaustion that no amount of kicking and abuse could force
|
|
her to her poor, bleeding feet. Outraged nature had reached
|
|
the limit of endurance, and the girl was physically powerless
|
|
to raise herself even to her knees.
|
|
|
|
As the beasts surrounded her, chattering threateningly the
|
|
while they goaded her with their cudgels and beat and kicked
|
|
her with their fists and feet, she lay with closed eyes,
|
|
praying for the merciful death that she knew alone could
|
|
give her surcease from suffering; but it did not come, and
|
|
presently the fifty frightful men realized that their victim
|
|
was no longer able to walk, and so they picked her up and
|
|
carried her the balance of the journey.
|
|
|
|
Late one afternoon she saw the ruined walls of a mighty
|
|
city looming before them, but so weak and sick was she
|
|
that it inspired not the faintest shadow of interest.
|
|
Wherever they were bearing her, there could be but one
|
|
end to her captivity among these fierce half brutes.
|
|
|
|
At last they passed through two great walls and came
|
|
to the ruined city within. Into a crumbling pile they bore
|
|
her, and here she was surrounded by hundreds more of the
|
|
same creatures that had brought her; but among them were
|
|
females who looked less horrible. At sight of them the
|
|
first faint hope that she had entertained came to mitigate
|
|
her misery. But it was short-lived, for the women offered
|
|
her no sympathy, though, on the other hand, neither did
|
|
they abuse her.
|
|
|
|
After she had been inspected to the entire satisfaction
|
|
of the inmates of the building she was borne to a dark
|
|
chamber in the vaults beneath, and here upon the bare floor
|
|
she was left, with a metal bowl of water and another of food.
|
|
|
|
For a week she saw only some of the women whose duty
|
|
it was to bring her food and water. Slowly her strength was
|
|
returning--soon she would be in fit condition to offer as
|
|
a sacrifice to The Flaming God. Fortunate indeed it was that
|
|
she could not know the fate for which she was destined.
|
|
|
|
|
|
As Tarzan of the Apes moved slowly through the jungle
|
|
after casting the spear that saved Clayton and Jane Porter
|
|
from the fangs of Numa, his mind was filled with all the
|
|
sorrow that belongs to a freshly opened heart wound.
|
|
|
|
He was glad that he had stayed his hand in time to
|
|
prevent the consummation of the thing that in the first mad
|
|
wave of jealous wrath he had contemplated. Only the fraction
|
|
of a second had stood between Clayton and death at the
|
|
hands of the ape-man. In the short moment that had
|
|
elapsed after he had recognized the girl and her companion
|
|
and the relaxing of the taut muscles that held the poisoned
|
|
shaft directed at the Englishman's heart, Tarzan had been
|
|
swayed by the swift and savage impulses of brute life.
|
|
|
|
He had seen the woman he craved--his woman--his mate
|
|
--in the arms of another. There had been but one course
|
|
open to him, according to the fierce jungle code that guided
|
|
him in this other existence; but just before it had become
|
|
too late the softer sentiments of his inherent chivalry had
|
|
risen above the flaming fires of his passion and saved him.
|
|
A thousand times he gave thanks that they had triumphed
|
|
before his fingers had released that polished arrow.
|
|
|
|
As he contemplated his return to the Waziri the idea became
|
|
repugnant. He did not wish to see a human being again.
|
|
At least he would range alone through the jungle for a time,
|
|
until the sharp edge of his sorrow had become blunted. Like his
|
|
fellow beasts, he preferred to suffer in silence and alone.
|
|
|
|
That night he slept again in the amphitheater of the apes,
|
|
and for several days he hunted from there, returning at night.
|
|
On the afternoon of the third day he returned early.
|
|
He had lain stretched upon the soft grass of the circular
|
|
clearing for but a few moments when he heard far to the
|
|
south a familiar sound. It was the passing through the
|
|
jungle of a band of great apes--he could not mistake that.
|
|
For several minutes he lay listening. They were coming
|
|
in the direction of the amphitheater.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan arose lazily and stretched himself. His keen ears
|
|
followed every movement of the advancing tribe. They were
|
|
upwind, and presently he caught their scent, though he had
|
|
not needed this added evidence to assure him that he was right.
|
|
|
|
As they came closer to the amphitheater Tarzan of the Apes
|
|
melted into the branches upon the other side of the arena.
|
|
There he waited to inspect the newcomers. Nor had he long
|
|
to wait.
|
|
|
|
Presently a fierce, hairy face appeared among the lower
|
|
branches opposite him. The cruel little eyes took in the
|
|
clearing at a glance, then there was a chattered report
|
|
returned to those behind. Tarzan could hear the words.
|
|
The scout was telling the other members of the tribe that the
|
|
coast was clear and that they might enter the amphitheater
|
|
in safety.
|
|
|
|
First the leader dropped lightly upon the soft carpet of
|
|
the grassy floor, and then, one by one, nearly a hundred
|
|
anthropoids followed him. There were the huge adults and
|
|
several young. A few nursing babes clung close to the
|
|
shaggy necks of their savage mothers.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan recognized many members of the tribe. It was
|
|
the same into which he had come as a tiny babe. Many of
|
|
the adults had been little apes during his boyhood. He had
|
|
frolicked and played about this very jungle with them
|
|
during their brief childhood. He wondered if they would
|
|
remember him--the memory of some apes is not overlong, and
|
|
two years may be an eternity to them.
|
|
|
|
From the talk which he overheard he learned that they
|
|
had come to choose a new king--their late chief had fallen a
|
|
hundred feet beneath a broken limb to an untimely end.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan walked to the end of an overhanging limb in
|
|
plain view of them. The quick eyes of a female caught
|
|
sight of him first. With a barking guttural she called
|
|
the attention of the others. Several huge bulls stood
|
|
erect to get a better view of the intruder. With bared
|
|
fangs and bristling necks they advanced slowly toward him,
|
|
with deep-throated, ominous growls.
|
|
|
|
"Karnath, I am Tarzan of the Apes," said the ape-man in
|
|
the vernacular of the tribe. "You remember me. Together we
|
|
teased Numa when we were still little apes, throwing sticks
|
|
and nuts at him from the safety of high branches."
|
|
|
|
The brute he had addressed stopped with a look of half-
|
|
comprehending, dull wonderment upon his savage face.
|
|
|
|
"And Magor," continued Tarzan, addressing another, "do you
|
|
not recall your former king--he who slew the mighty Kerchak?
|
|
Look at me! Am I not the same Tarzan--mighty hunter--invincible
|
|
fighter--that you all knew for many seasons?"
|
|
|
|
The apes all crowded forward now, but more in curiosity
|
|
than threatening. They muttered among themselves for
|
|
a few moments.
|
|
|
|
"What do you want among us now?" asked Karnath.
|
|
|
|
"Only peace," answered the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
Again the apes conferred. At length Karnath spoke again.
|
|
|
|
"Come in peace, then, Tarzan of the Apes," he said.
|
|
|
|
And so Tarzan of the Apes dropped lightly to the turf
|
|
into the midst of the fierce and hideous horde--he had
|
|
completed the cycle of evolution, and had returned to be once
|
|
again a brute among brutes.
|
|
|
|
There were no greetings such as would have taken place
|
|
among men after a separation of two years. The majority
|
|
of the apes went on about the little activities that the
|
|
advent of the ape-man had interrupted, paying no further
|
|
attention to him than as though he had not been gone from
|
|
the tribe at all.
|
|
|
|
One or two young bulls who had not been old enough
|
|
to remember him sidled up on all fours to sniff at him, and
|
|
one bared his fangs and growled threateningly--he wished
|
|
to put Tarzan immediately into his proper place. Had Tarzan
|
|
backed off, growling, the young bull would quite probably
|
|
have been satisfied, but always after Tarzan's station among
|
|
his fellow apes would have been beneath that of the bull
|
|
which had made him step aside.
|
|
|
|
But Tarzan of the Apes did not back off. Instead, he swung
|
|
his giant palm with all the force of his mighty muscles, and,
|
|
catching the young bull alongside the head, sent him
|
|
sprawling across the turf. The ape was up and at him again
|
|
in a second, and this time they closed with tearing fingers
|
|
and rending fangs--or at least that had been the intention of
|
|
the young bull; but scarcely had they gone down, growling
|
|
and snapping, than the ape-man's fingers found the throat
|
|
of his antagonist.
|
|
|
|
Presently the young bull ceased to struggle, and lay quite still.
|
|
Then Tarzan released his hold and arose--he did not wish to kill,
|
|
only to teach the young ape, and others who might be watching,
|
|
that Tarzan of the Apes was still master.
|
|
|
|
The lesson served its purpose--the young apes kept out
|
|
of his way, as young apes should when their betters were
|
|
about, and the old bulls made no attempt to encroach upon
|
|
his prerogatives. For several days the she-apes with young
|
|
remained suspicious of him, and when he ventured too near
|
|
rushed upon him with wide mouths and hideous roars.
|
|
Then Tarzan discreetly skipped out of harm's way, for
|
|
that also is a custom among the apes--only mad bulls will
|
|
attack a mother. But after a while even they became
|
|
accustomed to him.
|
|
|
|
He hunted with them as in days gone by, and when they
|
|
found that his superior reason guided him to the best food
|
|
sources, and that his cunning rope ensnared toothsome game
|
|
that they seldom if ever tasted, they came again to look up
|
|
to him as they had in the past after he had become their king.
|
|
And so it was that before they left the amphitheater to return
|
|
to their wanderings they had once more chosen him as their leader.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man felt quite contented with his new lot. He was
|
|
not happy--that he never could be again, but he was at
|
|
least as far from everything that might remind him of his
|
|
past misery as he could be. Long since he had given up every
|
|
intention of returning to civilization, and now he had decided
|
|
to see no more his black friends of the Waziri. He had
|
|
foresworn humanity forever. He had started life an ape--as
|
|
an ape he would die.
|
|
|
|
He could not, however, erase from his memory the fact
|
|
that the woman he loved was within a short journey of the
|
|
stamping-ground of his tribe; nor could he banish the
|
|
haunting fear that she might be constantly in danger.
|
|
That she was illy protected he had seen in the brief
|
|
instant that had witnessed Clayton's inefficiency.
|
|
The more Tarzan thought of it, the more keenly his
|
|
conscience pricked him.
|
|
|
|
Finally he came to loathe himself for permitting his own selfish
|
|
sorrow and jealousy to stand between Jane Porter and safety.
|
|
As the days passed the thing preyed more and more upon
|
|
his mind, and he had about determined to return to the
|
|
coast and place himself on guard over Jane Porter and
|
|
Clayton, when news reached him that altered all his plans
|
|
and sent him dashing madly toward the east in reckless
|
|
disregard of accident and death.
|
|
|
|
Before Tarzan had returned to the tribe, a certain young
|
|
bull, not being able to secure a mate from among his own
|
|
people, had, according to custom, fared forth through the
|
|
wild jungle, like some knight-errant of old, to win a fair
|
|
lady from some neighboring community.
|
|
|
|
He had but just returned with his bride, and was narrating his
|
|
adventures quickly before he should forget them. Among other
|
|
things he told of seeing a great tribe of strange-looking apes.
|
|
|
|
"They were all hairy-faced bulls but one," he said, "and
|
|
that one was a she, lighter in color even than this stranger,"
|
|
and he chucked a thumb at Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
The ape-man was all attention in an instant. He asked
|
|
questions as rapidly as the slow-witted anthropoid could
|
|
answer them.
|
|
|
|
"Were the bulls short, with crooked legs?"
|
|
|
|
"They were."
|
|
|
|
"Did they wear the skins of Numa and Sheeta about their
|
|
loins, and carry sticks and knives?"
|
|
|
|
"They did."
|
|
|
|
"And were there many yellow rings about their arms and legs?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"And the she one--was she small and slender, and very white?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"Did she seem to be one of the tribe, or was she a prisoner?"
|
|
|
|
"They dragged her along--sometimes by an arm--sometimes
|
|
by the long hair that grew upon her head; and always they
|
|
kicked and beat her. Oh, but it was great fun to watch them."
|
|
|
|
"God!" muttered Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"Where were they when you saw them, and which way
|
|
were they going?" continued the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
"They were beside the second water back there," and he
|
|
pointed to the south. "When they passed me they were going
|
|
toward the morning, upward along the edge of the water."
|
|
|
|
"When was this?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"Half a moon since."
|
|
|
|
Without another word the ape-man sprang into the trees
|
|
and fled like a disembodied spirit eastward in the direction
|
|
of the forgotten city of Opar.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 24
|
|
|
|
|
|
How Tarzan Came Again to Opar
|
|
|
|
|
|
When Clayton returned to the shelter and found Jane Porter
|
|
was missing, he became frantic with fear and grief.
|
|
He found Monsieur Thuran quite rational, the fever having
|
|
left him with the surprising suddenness which is one
|
|
of its peculiarities. The Russian, weak and exhausted,
|
|
still lay upon his bed of grasses within the shelter.
|
|
|
|
When Clayton asked him about the girl he seemed surprised
|
|
to know that she was not there.
|
|
|
|
"I have heard nothing unusual," he said. "But then I have
|
|
been unconscious much of the time."
|
|
|
|
Had it not been for the man's very evident weakness,
|
|
Clayton should have suspected him of having sinister
|
|
knowledge of the girl's whereabouts; but he could see that
|
|
Thuran lacked sufficient vitality even to descend, unaided,
|
|
from the shelter. He could not, in his present physical
|
|
condition, have harmed the girl, nor could he have climbed
|
|
the rude ladder back to the shelter.
|
|
|
|
Until dark the Englishman searched the nearby jungle for a
|
|
trace of the missing one or a sign of the trail of her abductor.
|
|
But though the spoor left by the fifty frightful men,
|
|
unversed in woodcraft as they were, would have been
|
|
as plain to the densest denizen of the jungle as a city street
|
|
to the Englishman, yet he crossed and recrossed it twenty
|
|
times without observing the slightest indication that many
|
|
men had passed that way but a few short hours since.
|
|
|
|
As he searched, Clayton continued to call the girl's name
|
|
aloud, but the only result of this was to attract Numa,
|
|
the lion. Fortunately the man saw the shadowy form worming
|
|
its way toward him in time to climb into the branches of a tree
|
|
before the beast was close enough to reach him. This put an
|
|
end to his search for the balance of the afternoon, as the
|
|
lion paced back and forth beneath him until dark.
|
|
|
|
Even after the beast had left, Clayton dared not descend
|
|
into the awful blackness beneath him, and so he spent a
|
|
terrifying and hideous night in the tree. The next morning
|
|
he returned to the beach, relinquishing the last hope of
|
|
succoring Jane Porter.
|
|
|
|
During the week that followed, Monsieur Thuran rapidly
|
|
regained his strength, lying in the shelter while Clayton
|
|
hunted food for both. The men never spoke except as
|
|
necessity demanded. Clayton now occupied the section of
|
|
the shelter which had been reserved for Jane Porter, and
|
|
only saw the Russian when he took food or water to him, or
|
|
performed the other kindly offices which common humanity required.
|
|
|
|
When Thuran was again able to descend in search of food,
|
|
Clayton was stricken with fever. For days he lay tossing
|
|
in delirium and suffering, but not once did the Russian
|
|
come near him. Food the Englishman could not have eaten,
|
|
but his craving for water amounted practically to torture.
|
|
Between the recurrent attacks of delirium, weak though he
|
|
was, he managed to reach the brook once a day and fill a tiny
|
|
can that had been among the few appointments of the lifeboat.
|
|
|
|
Thuran watched him on these occasions with an expression
|
|
of malignant pleasure--he seemed really to enjoy the
|
|
suffering of the man who, despite the just contempt in which
|
|
he held him, had ministered to him to the best of his
|
|
ability while he lay suffering the same agonies.
|
|
At last Clayton became so weak that he was no longer
|
|
able to descend from the shelter. For a day he suffered for
|
|
water without appealing to the Russian, but finally, unable
|
|
to endure it longer, he asked Thuran to fetch him a drink.
|
|
The Russian came to the entrance to Clayton's room, a
|
|
dish of water in his hand. A nasty grin contorted his features.
|
|
|
|
"Here is water," he said. "But first let me remind you that
|
|
you maligned me before the girl--that you kept her to
|
|
yourself, and would not share her with me--"
|
|
|
|
Clayton interrupted him. "Stop!" he cried. Stop!
|
|
What manner of cur are you that you traduce the character
|
|
of a good woman whom we believe dead! God! I was a fool
|
|
ever to let you live--you are not fit to live even in
|
|
this vile land."
|
|
|
|
"Here is your water," said the Russian. "All you will
|
|
get," and he raised the basin to his lips and drank; what
|
|
was left he threw out upon the ground below. Then he turned
|
|
and left the sick man.
|
|
|
|
Clayton rolled over, and, burying his face in his arms, gave
|
|
up the battle.
|
|
|
|
The next day Thuran determined to set out toward the
|
|
north along the coast, for he knew that eventually he must
|
|
come to the habitations of civilized men--at least he could
|
|
be no worse off than he was here, and, furthermore, the
|
|
ravings of the dying Englishman were getting on his nerves.
|
|
So he stole Clayton's spear and set off upon his journey.
|
|
He would have killed the sick man before he left had it not
|
|
occurred to him that it would really have been a kindness
|
|
to do so.
|
|
|
|
That same day he came to a little cabin by the beach,
|
|
and his heart filled with renewed hope as he saw this
|
|
evidence of the proximity of civilization, for he thought it
|
|
but the outpost of a nearby settlement. Had he known to
|
|
whom it belonged, and that its owner was at that very moment
|
|
but a few miles inland, Nikolas Rokoff would have
|
|
fled the place as he would a pestilence. But he did not
|
|
know, and so he remained for a few days to enjoy the
|
|
security and comparative comforts of the cabin. Then he
|
|
took up his northward journey once more.
|
|
|
|
In Lord Tennington's camp preparations were going forward
|
|
to build permanent quarters, and then to send out an
|
|
expedition of a few men to the north in search of relief.
|
|
|
|
As the days had passed without bringing the longed-for
|
|
succor, hope that Jane Porter, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran
|
|
had been rescued began to die. No one spoke of the matter
|
|
longer to Professor Porter, and he was so immersed in his
|
|
scientific dreaming that he was not aware of the elapse of time.
|
|
|
|
Occasionally he would remark that within a few days
|
|
they should certainly see a steamer drop anchor off their
|
|
shore, and that then they should all be reunited happily.
|
|
Sometimes he spoke of it as a train, and wondered if it were
|
|
being delayed by snowstorms.
|
|
|
|
"If I didn't know the dear old fellow so well by now,"
|
|
Tennington remarked to Miss Strong, "I should be quite
|
|
certain that he was--er--not quite right, don't you know."
|
|
"If it were not so pathetic it would be ridiculous," said
|
|
the girl, sadly. "I, who have known him all my life, know
|
|
how he worships Jane; but to others it must seem that he is
|
|
perfectly callous to her fate. It is only that he is so
|
|
absolutely impractical that he cannot conceive of so real a
|
|
thing as death unless nearly certain proof of it is thrust
|
|
upon him."
|
|
|
|
"You'd never guess what he was about yesterday,"
|
|
continued Tennington. "I was coming in alone from
|
|
a little hunt when I met him walking rapidly along the
|
|
game trail that I was following back to camp. His hands
|
|
were clasped beneath the tails of his long black coat,
|
|
and his top hat was set firmly down upon his head,
|
|
as with eyes bent upon the ground he hastened on,
|
|
probably to some sudden death had I not intercepted him.
|
|
|
|
"`Why, where in the world are you bound, professor?' I
|
|
asked him. `I am going into town, Lord Tennington,' he said,
|
|
as seriously as possible, `to complain to the postmaster about
|
|
the rural free delivery service we are suffering from here.
|
|
Why, sir, I haven't had a piece of mail in weeks. There should
|
|
be several letters for me from Jane. The matter must be
|
|
reported to Washington at once.'
|
|
|
|
"And would you believe it, Miss Strong," continued Tennington,
|
|
"I had the very deuce of a job to convince the old
|
|
fellow that there was not only no rural free delivery, but
|
|
no town, and that he was not even on the same continent as
|
|
Washington, nor in the same hemisphere.
|
|
|
|
"When he did realize he commenced to worry about his
|
|
daughter--I think it is the first time that he really
|
|
has appreciated our position here, or the fact that Miss
|
|
Porter may not have been rescued."
|
|
|
|
"I hate to think about it," said the girl, "and yet I can
|
|
think of nothing else than the absent members of our party."
|
|
|
|
"Let us hope for the best," replied Tennington. "You yourself
|
|
have set us each a splendid example of bravery, for in a
|
|
way your loss has been the greatest."
|
|
|
|
"Yes," she replied; "I could have loved Jane Porter no more
|
|
had she been my own sister."
|
|
|
|
Tennington did not show the surprise he felt. That was not
|
|
at all what he meant. He had been much with this fair
|
|
daughter of Maryland since the wreck of the LADY ALICE,
|
|
and it had recently come to him that he had grown much more
|
|
fond of her than would prove good for the peace of his mind,
|
|
for he recalled almost constantly now the confidence which
|
|
Monsieur Thuran had imparted to him that he and Miss Strong
|
|
were engaged. He wondered if, after all, Thuran had been
|
|
quite accurate in his statement. He had never seen the slightest
|
|
indication on the girl's part of more than ordinary friendship.
|
|
|
|
"And then in Monsieur Thuran's loss, if they are lost, you
|
|
would suffer a severe bereavement," he ventured.
|
|
|
|
She looked up at him quickly. "Monsieur Thuran had become
|
|
a very dear friend," she said. "I liked him very much,
|
|
though I have known him but a short time."
|
|
|
|
"Then you were not engaged to marry him?" he blurted out.
|
|
"Heavens, nol!" she cried. "I did not care for him at all
|
|
in that way."
|
|
|
|
There was something that Lord Tennington wanted to say
|
|
to Hazel Strong--he wanted very badly to say it, and to
|
|
say it at once; but somehow the words stuck in his throat.
|
|
He started lamely a couple of times, cleared his throat,
|
|
became red in the face, and finally ended by remarking
|
|
that he hoped the cabins would be finished before the
|
|
rainy season commenced.
|
|
|
|
But, though he did not know it, he had conveyed to the
|
|
girl the very message he intended, and it left her happy--
|
|
happier than she had ever before been in all her life.
|
|
|
|
Just then further conversation was interrupted by the sight
|
|
of a strange and terrible-looking figure which emerged from
|
|
the jungle just south of the camp. Tennington and the girl
|
|
saw it at the same time. The Englishman reached for his
|
|
revolver, but when the half-naked, bearded creature called
|
|
his name aloud and came running toward them he dropped
|
|
his hand and advanced to meet it.
|
|
|
|
None would have recognized in the filthy, emaciated creature,
|
|
covered by a single garment of small skins, the immaculate
|
|
Monsieur Thuran the party had last seen upon the deck
|
|
of the LADY ALICE.
|
|
|
|
Before the other members of the little community were apprised
|
|
of his presence Tennington and Miss Strong questioned him
|
|
regarding the other occupants of the missing boat.
|
|
|
|
"They are all dead," replied Thuran. "The three sailors
|
|
died before we made land. Miss Porter was carried off into
|
|
the jungle by some wild animal while I was lying delirious
|
|
with fever. Clayton died of the same fever but a few days since.
|
|
And to think that all this time we have been separated by
|
|
but a few miles--scarcely a day's march. It is terrible!"
|
|
|
|
|
|
How long Jane Porter lay in the darkness of the vault beneath
|
|
the temple in the ancient city of Opar she did not know.
|
|
For a time she was delirious with fever, but after this
|
|
passed she commenced slowly to regain her strength.
|
|
Every day the woman who brought her food beckoned to her
|
|
to arise, but for many days the girl could only shake her
|
|
head to indicate that she was too weak.
|
|
|
|
But eventually she was able to gain her feet, and then to
|
|
stagger a few steps by supporting herself with one hand
|
|
upon the wall. Her captors now watched her with
|
|
increasing interest. The day was approaching, and the
|
|
victim was gaining in strength.
|
|
|
|
Presently the day came, and a young woman whom Jane Porter
|
|
had not seen before came with several others to her dungeon.
|
|
Here some sort of ceremony was performed--that it was of
|
|
a religious nature the girl was sure, and so she took
|
|
new heart, and rejoiced that she had fallen among people
|
|
upon whom the refining and softening influences of religion
|
|
evidently had fallen. They would treat her humanely--of
|
|
that she was now quite sure.
|
|
|
|
And so when they led her from her dungeon, through long,
|
|
dark corridors, and up a flight of concrete steps to a brilliant
|
|
courtyard, she went willingly, even gladly--for was she not
|
|
among the servants of God? It might be, of course, that their
|
|
interpretation of the supreme being differed from her own,
|
|
but that they owned a god was sufficient evidence to her that
|
|
they were kind and good.
|
|
|
|
But when she saw a stone altar in the center of the courtyard,
|
|
and dark-brown stains upon it and the nearby concrete of
|
|
the floor, she began to wonder and to doubt. And as they
|
|
stooped and bound her ankles, and secured her wrists
|
|
behind her, her doubts were turned to fear. A moment later,
|
|
as she was lifted and placed supine across the altar's top,
|
|
hope left her entirely, and she trembled in an agony of fright.
|
|
|
|
During the grotesque dance of the votaries which followed,
|
|
she lay frozen in horror, nor did she require the sight
|
|
of the thin blade in the hands of the high priestess as it
|
|
rose slowly above her to enlighten her further as to her doom.
|
|
|
|
As the hand began its descent, Jane Porter closed her eyes
|
|
and sent up a silent prayer to the Maker she was so soon to
|
|
face--then she succumbed to the strain upon her tired
|
|
nerves, and swooned.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Day and night Tarzan of the Apes raced through the primeval
|
|
forest toward the ruined city in which he was positive
|
|
the woman he loved lay either a prisoner or dead.
|
|
|
|
In a day and a night he covered the same distance that
|
|
the fifty frightful men had taken the better part of a week to
|
|
traverse, for Tarzan of the Apes traveled along the middle
|
|
terrace high above the tangled obstacles that impede
|
|
progress upon the ground.
|
|
|
|
The story the young bull ape had told made it clear to him
|
|
that the girl captive had been Jane Porter, for there was not
|
|
another small white "she" in all the jungle. The "bulls" he
|
|
had recognized from the ape's crude description as the
|
|
grotesque parodies upon humanity who inhabit the ruins of Opar.
|
|
And the girl's fate he could picture as plainly as though
|
|
he were an eyewitness to it. When they would lay her across
|
|
that trim altar he could not guess, but that her dear, frail
|
|
body would eventually find its way there he was confident.
|
|
|
|
But, finally, after what seemed long ages to the impatient
|
|
ape-man, he topped the barrier cliffs that hemmed the desolate
|
|
valley, and below him lay the grim and awful ruins of
|
|
the now hideous city of Opar. At a rapid trot he started
|
|
across the dry and dusty, bowlder-strewn ground toward the
|
|
goal of his desires.
|
|
|
|
Would he be in time to rescue? He hoped against hope.
|
|
At least he could be revenged, and in his wrath it seemed
|
|
to him that he was equal to the task of wiping out the entire
|
|
population of that terrible city. It was nearly noon when he
|
|
reached the great bowlder at the top of which terminated the
|
|
secret passage to the pits beneath the city. Like a cat he scaled
|
|
the precipitous sides of the frowning granite KOPJE.
|
|
A moment later he was running through the darkness of the
|
|
long, straight tunnel that led to the treasure vault.
|
|
Through this he passed, then on and on until at last he
|
|
came to the well-like shaft upon the opposite side of which
|
|
lay the dungeon with the false wall.
|
|
|
|
As he paused a moment upon the brink of the well a faint
|
|
sound came to him through the opening above. His quick
|
|
ears caught and translated it--it was the dance of death that
|
|
preceded a sacrifice, and the singsong ritual of the
|
|
high priestess. He could even recognize the woman's voice.
|
|
Could it be that the ceremony marked the very thing he
|
|
had so hastened to prevent? A wave of horror swept over him.
|
|
Was he, after all, to be just a moment too late? Like a
|
|
frightened deer he leaped across the narrow chasm to the
|
|
continuation of the passage beyond. At the false wall he
|
|
tore like one possessed to demolish the barrier that
|
|
confronted him--with giant muscles he forced the opening,
|
|
thrusting his head and shoulders through the first small
|
|
hole he made, and carrying the balance of the wall with him,
|
|
to clatter resoundingly upon the cement floor of the dungeon.
|
|
|
|
With a single leap he cleared the length of the chamber and
|
|
threw himself against the ancient door. But here he stopped.
|
|
The mighty bars upon the other side were proof even against
|
|
such muscles as his. It needed but a moment's effort to
|
|
convince him of the futility of endeavoring to force that
|
|
impregnable barrier. There was but one other way, and that
|
|
led back through the long tunnels to the bowlder a mile
|
|
beyond the city's walls, and then back across the open as
|
|
he had come to the city first with his Waziri.
|
|
|
|
He realized that to retrace his steps and enter the city
|
|
from above ground would mean that he would be too late to
|
|
save the girl, if it were indeed she who lay upon the sacrificial
|
|
altar above him. But there seemed no other way, and so he
|
|
turned and ran swiftly back into the passageway beyond the
|
|
broken wall. At the well he heard again the monotonous
|
|
voice of the high priestess, and, as he glanced aloft, the
|
|
opening, twenty feet above, seemed so near that he was
|
|
tempted to leap for it in a mad endeavor to reach the inner
|
|
courtyard that lay so near.
|
|
|
|
If he could but get one end of his grass rope caught upon
|
|
some projection at the top of that tantalizing aperture!
|
|
In the instant's pause and thought an idea occurred to him.
|
|
He would attempt it. Turning back to the tumbled wall,
|
|
he seized one of the large, flat slabs that had composed it.
|
|
Hastily making one end of his rope fast to the piece of granite,
|
|
he returned to the shaft, and, coiling the balance of the rope on
|
|
the floor beside him, the ape-man took the heavy slab in both
|
|
hands, and, swinging it several times to get the distance and
|
|
the direction fixed, he let the weight fly up at a slight angle,
|
|
so that, instead of falling straight back into the shaft again,
|
|
it grazed the far edge, tumbling over into the court beyond.
|
|
|
|
Tarzan dragged for a moment upon the slack end of the
|
|
rope until he felt that the stone was lodged with fair
|
|
security at the shaft's top, then he swung out over the black
|
|
depths beneath. The moment his full weight came upon the
|
|
rope he felt it slip from above. He waited there in awful
|
|
suspense as it dropped in little jerks, inch by inch.
|
|
The stone was being dragged up the outside of the masonry
|
|
surrounding the top of the shaft--would it catch at the very edge,
|
|
or would his weight drag it over to fall upon him as he hurtled
|
|
into the unknown depths below?
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 25
|
|
|
|
|
|
Through the Forest Primeval
|
|
|
|
For a brief, sickening moment Tarzan felt the slipping of
|
|
the rope to which he clung, and heard the scraping of
|
|
the block of stone against the masonry above.
|
|
|
|
Then of a sudden the rope was still--the stone had caught at
|
|
the very edge. Gingerly the ape-man clambered up the frail rope.
|
|
In a moment his head was above the edge of the shaft.
|
|
The court was empty. The inhabitants of Opar were viewing
|
|
the sacrifice. Tarzan could hear the voice of La from the
|
|
nearby sacrificial court. The dance had ceased. It must be
|
|
almost time for the knife to fall; but even as he thought these
|
|
things he was running rapidly toward the sound of the high
|
|
priestess' voice.
|
|
|
|
Fate guided him to the very doorway of the great roofless chamber.
|
|
Between him and the altar was the long row of priests and
|
|
priestesses, awaiting with their golden cups the spilling
|
|
of the warm blood of their victim. La's hand was descending
|
|
slowly toward the bosom of the frail, quiet figure that lay
|
|
stretched upon the hard stone. Tarzan gave a gasp that was
|
|
almost a sob as he recognized the features of the girl he loved.
|
|
And then the scar upon his forehead turned to a flaming band of
|
|
scarlet, a red mist floated before his eyes, and, with the
|
|
awful roar of the bull ape gone mad, he sprang like a huge
|
|
lion into the midst of the votaries.
|
|
|
|
Seizing a cudgel from the nearest priest, he laid about him like
|
|
a veritable demon as he forged his rapid way toward the altar.
|
|
The hand of La had paused at the first noise of interruption.
|
|
When she saw who the author of it was she went white.
|
|
She had never been able to fathom the secret of the
|
|
strange white man's escape from the dungeon in which she
|
|
had locked him. She had not intended that he should ever
|
|
leave Opar, for she had looked upon his giant frame and
|
|
handsome face with the eyes of a woman and not those
|
|
of a priestess.
|
|
|
|
In her clever mind she had concocted a story of wonderful
|
|
revelation from the lips of the flaming god himself,
|
|
in which she had been ordered to receive this white
|
|
stranger as a messenger from him to his people on earth.
|
|
That would satisfy the people of Opar, she knew. The man
|
|
would be satisfied, she felt quite sure, to remain and be her
|
|
husband rather than to return to the sacrificial altar.
|
|
|
|
But when she had gone to explain her plan to him he
|
|
had disappeared, though the door had been tightly locked
|
|
as she had left it. And now he had returned--materialized
|
|
from thin air--and was killing her priests as though they
|
|
had been sheep. For the moment she forgot her victim,
|
|
and before she could gather her wits together again the
|
|
huge white man was standing before her, the woman who had
|
|
lain upon the altar in his arms.
|
|
|
|
"One side, La," he cried. "You saved me once, and so I
|
|
would not harm you; but do not interfere or attempt to
|
|
follow, or I shall have to kill you also."
|
|
|
|
As he spoke he stepped past her toward the entrance to the
|
|
subterranean vaults.
|
|
|
|
"Who is she?" asked the high priestess, pointing at
|
|
the unconscious woman.
|
|
|
|
"She is mine," said Tarzan of the Apes.
|
|
|
|
For a moment the girl of Opar stood wide-eyed and staring.
|
|
Then a look of hopeless misery suffused her eyes--
|
|
tears welled into them, and with a little cry she sank to
|
|
the cold floor, just as a swarm of frightful men dashed past
|
|
her to leap upon the ape-man.
|
|
|
|
But Tarzan of the Apes was not there when they reached
|
|
out to seize him. With a light bound he had disappeared
|
|
into the passage leading to the pits below, and when his
|
|
pursuers came more cautiously after they found the chamber
|
|
empty, they but laughed and jabbered to one another, for
|
|
they knew that there was no exit from the pits other than the
|
|
one through which he had entered. If he came out at all he
|
|
must come this way, and they would wait and watch for him above.
|
|
|
|
And so Tarzan of the Apes, carrying the unconscious Jane
|
|
Porter, came through the pits of Opar beneath the temple of
|
|
The Flaming God without pursuit. But when the men of
|
|
Opar had talked further about the matter, they recalled to
|
|
mind that this very man had escaped once before into the
|
|
pits, and, though they had watched the entrance he had
|
|
not come forth; and yet today he had come upon them from
|
|
the outside. They would again send fifty men out into the
|
|
valley to find and capture this desecrater of their temple.
|
|
|
|
After Tarzan reached the shaft beyond the broken wall,
|
|
he felt so positive of the successful issue of his flight that
|
|
he stopped to replace the tumbled stones, for he was not
|
|
anxious that any of the inmates should discover this
|
|
forgotten passage, and through it come upon the treasure chamber.
|
|
It was in his mind to return again to Opar and bear away
|
|
a still greater fortune than he had already buried in the
|
|
amphitheater of the apes.
|
|
|
|
On through the passageways he trotted, past the first door
|
|
and through the treasure vault; past the second door and
|
|
into the long, straight tunnel that led to the lofty hidden
|
|
exit beyond the city. Jane Porter was still unconscious.
|
|
|
|
At the crest of the great bowlder he halted to cast a
|
|
backward glance toward the city. Coming across the plain
|
|
he saw a band of the hideous men of Opar. For a moment
|
|
he hesitated. Should he descend and make a race for the distant
|
|
cliffs, or should he hide here until night? And then a glance at
|
|
the girl's white face determined him. He could not keep her
|
|
here and permit her enemies to get between them and liberty.
|
|
For aught he knew they might have been followed
|
|
through the tunnels, and to have foes before and behind
|
|
would result in almost certain capture, since he could not
|
|
fight his way through the enemy burdened as he was with
|
|
the unconscious girl.
|
|
|
|
To descend the steep face of the bowlder with Jane
|
|
Porter was no easy task, but by binding her across his
|
|
shoulders with the grass rope he succeeded in reaching the
|
|
ground in safety before the Oparians arrived at the great rock.
|
|
As the descent had been made upon the side away from the city,
|
|
the searching party saw nothing of it, nor did they dream
|
|
that their prey was so close before them.
|
|
|
|
By keeping the KOPJE between them and their pursuers,
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes managed to cover nearly a mile before
|
|
the men of Opar rounded the granite sentinel and saw
|
|
the fugitive before them. With loud cries of savage delight,
|
|
they broke into a mad run, thinking doubtless that they
|
|
would soon overhaul the burdened runner; but they both
|
|
underestimated the powers of the ape-man and overestimated
|
|
the possibilities of their own short, crooked legs.
|
|
|
|
By maintaining an easy trot, Tarzan kept the distance
|
|
between them always the same. Occasionally he would glance
|
|
at the face so near his own. Had it not been for the faint
|
|
beating of the heart pressed so close against his own, he
|
|
would not have known that she was alive, so white and drawn
|
|
was the poor, tired face.
|
|
|
|
And thus they came to the flat-topped mountain and the
|
|
barrier cliffs. During the last mile Tarzan had let himself out,
|
|
running like a deer that he might have ample time to descend
|
|
the face of the cliffs before the Oparians could reach the
|
|
summit and hurl rocks down upon them. And so it was that
|
|
he was half a mile down the mountainside ere the fierce little
|
|
men came panting to the edge.
|
|
|
|
With cries of rage and disappointment they ranged along
|
|
the cliff top shaking their cudgels, and dancing up and
|
|
down in a perfect passion of anger. But this time they did
|
|
not pursue beyond the boundary of their own country.
|
|
Whether it was because they recalled the futility of their
|
|
former long and irksome search, or after witnessing the ease
|
|
with which the ape-man swung along before them, and the
|
|
last burst of speed, they realized the utter hopelessness of
|
|
further pursuit, it is difficult to say; but as Tarzan reached
|
|
the woods that began at the base of the foothills which
|
|
skirted the barrier cliffs they turned their faces once more
|
|
toward Opar.
|
|
|
|
Just within the forest's edge, where he could yet watch the
|
|
cliff tops, Tarzan laid his burden upon the grass, and going to
|
|
the near-by rivulet brought water with which he bathed
|
|
her face and hands; but even this did not revive her, and,
|
|
greatly worried, he gathered the girl into his strong arms once
|
|
more and hurried on toward the west.
|
|
|
|
Late in the afternoon Jane Porter regained consciousness.
|
|
She did not open her eyes at once--she was trying to recall
|
|
the scenes that she had last witnessed. Ah, she remembered now.
|
|
The altar, the terrible priestess, the descending knife.
|
|
She gave a little shudder, for she thought that either this was
|
|
death or that the knife had buried itself in her heart and
|
|
she was experiencing the brief delirium preceding death.
|
|
And when finally she mustered courage to open her eyes,
|
|
the sight that met them confirmed her fears, for she saw that
|
|
she was being borne through a leafy paradise in the arms
|
|
of her dead love. "If this be death," she murmured, "thank
|
|
God that I am dead."
|
|
|
|
"You spoke, Jane!" cried Tarzan. "You are regaining consciousness!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Tarzan of the Apes," she replied, and for the first
|
|
time in months a smile of peace and happiness lighted her face.
|
|
|
|
"Thank God!" cried the ape-man, coming to the ground in
|
|
a little grassy clearing beside the stream. "I was in time,
|
|
after all."
|
|
|
|
"In time? What do you mean?" she questioned.
|
|
|
|
"In time to save you from death upon the altar, dear,"
|
|
he replied. "Do you not remember?"
|
|
"Save me from death?" she asked, in a puzzled tone.
|
|
"Are we not both dead, my Tarzan?"
|
|
|
|
He had placed her upon the grass by now, her back resting
|
|
against the stem of a huge tree. At her question he
|
|
stepped back where he could the better see her face.
|
|
|
|
"Dead!" he repeated, and then he laughed. "You are not,
|
|
Jane; and if you will return to the city of Opar and ask
|
|
them who dwell there they will tell you that I was not dead
|
|
a few short hours ago. No, dear, we are both very much alive."
|
|
|
|
"But both Hazel and Monsieur Thuran told me that you
|
|
had fallen into the ocean many miles from land," she urged,
|
|
as though trying to convince him that he must indeed
|
|
be dead. "They said that there was no question but that
|
|
it must have been you, and less that you could have survived
|
|
or been picked up."
|
|
|
|
"How can I convince you that I am no spirit?" he asked,
|
|
with a laugh. "It was I whom the delightful Monsieur Thuran
|
|
pushed overboard, but I did not drown--I will tell you all
|
|
about it after a while--and here I am very much the same
|
|
wild man you first knew, Jane Porter."
|
|
|
|
The girl rose slowly to her feet and came toward him.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot even yet believe it," she murmured. "It cannot
|
|
be that such happiness can be true after all the hideous
|
|
things that I have passed through these awful months since
|
|
the LADY ALICE went down."
|
|
|
|
She came close to him and laid a hand, soft and trembling,
|
|
upon his arm.
|
|
|
|
"It must be that I am dreaming, and that I shall awaken
|
|
in a moment to see that awful knife descending toward my
|
|
heart--kiss me, dear, just once before I lose my dream forever."
|
|
|
|
Tarzan of the Apes needed no second invitation. He took
|
|
the girl he loved in his strong arms, and kissed her not once,
|
|
but a hundred times, until she lay there panting for breath;
|
|
yet when he stopped she put her arms about his neck and
|
|
drew his lips down to hers once more.
|
|
|
|
"Am I alive and a reality, or am I but a dream?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"If you are not alive, my man," she answered, "I pray
|
|
that I may die thus before I awaken to the terrible
|
|
realities of my last waking moments."
|
|
|
|
For a while both were silent--gazing into each others'
|
|
eyes as though each still questioned the reality of the
|
|
wonderful happiness that had come to them. The past, with all
|
|
its hideous disappointments and horrors, was forgotten--the
|
|
future did not belong to them; but the present--ah, it was
|
|
theirs; none could take it from them. It was the girl who
|
|
first broke the sweet silence.
|
|
|
|
"Where are we going, dear?" she asked. "What are we
|
|
going to do?"
|
|
|
|
"Where would you like best to go?" he asked. "What would
|
|
you like best to do?"
|
|
|
|
"To go where you go, my man; to do whatever seems
|
|
best to you," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"But Clayton?" he asked. For a moment he had forgotten
|
|
that there existed upon the earth other than they two.
|
|
"We have forgotten your husband."
|
|
|
|
"I am not married, Tarzan of the Apes," she cried.
|
|
"Nor am I longer promised in marriage. The day before those
|
|
awful creatures captured me I spoke to Mr. Clayton of my
|
|
love for you, and he understood then that I could not keep
|
|
the wicked promise that I had made. It was after we had
|
|
been miraculously saved from an attacking lion." She paused
|
|
suddenly and looked up at him, a questioning light in her eyes.
|
|
"Tarzan of the Apes," she cried, "it was you who did
|
|
that thing? It could have been no other."
|
|
|
|
He dropped his eyes, for he was ashamed.
|
|
|
|
"How could you have gone away and left me?" she cried reproachfully.
|
|
|
|
"Don't, Jane!" he pleaded. "Please don't! You cannot
|
|
know how I have suffered since for the cruelty of that act,
|
|
or how I suffered then, first in jealous rage, and then in
|
|
bitter resentment against the fate that I had not deserved.
|
|
I went back to the apes after that, Jane, intending never
|
|
again to see a human being." He told her then of his life
|
|
since he had returned to the jungle--of how he had dropped
|
|
like a plummet from a civilized Parisian to a savage Waziri
|
|
warrior, and from there back to the brute that he had been raised.
|
|
|
|
She asked him many questions, and at last fearfully of the
|
|
things that Monsieur Thuran had told her--of the woman in Paris.
|
|
He narrated every detail of his civilized life to her,
|
|
omitting nothing, for he felt no shame, since his heart always
|
|
had been true to her. When he had finished he sat looking at
|
|
her, as though waiting for her judgment, and his sentence.
|
|
|
|
"I knew that he was not speaking the truth," she said.
|
|
"Oh, what a horrible creature he is!"
|
|
|
|
"You are not angry with me, then?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
And her reply, though apparently most irrelevant, was
|
|
truly feminine.
|
|
|
|
"Is Olga de Coude very beautiful?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
And Tarzan laughed and kissed her again. "Not one-tenth
|
|
so beautiful as you, dear," he said.
|
|
|
|
She gave a contented little sigh, and let her head rest
|
|
against his shoulder. He knew that he was forgiven.
|
|
|
|
That night Tarzan built a snug little bower high among
|
|
the swaying branches of a giant tree, and there the tired
|
|
girl slept, while in a crotch beneath her the ape-man curled,
|
|
ready, even in sleep, to protect her.
|
|
|
|
It took them many days to make the long journey to
|
|
the coast. Where the way was easy they walked hand in hand
|
|
beneath the arching boughs of the mighty forest, as might
|
|
in a far-gone past have walked their primeval forbears.
|
|
When the underbrush was tangled he took her in his great arms,
|
|
and bore her lightly through the trees, and the days were all
|
|
too short, for they were very happy. Had it not been for
|
|
their anxiety to reach and succor Clayton they would have drawn
|
|
out the sweet pleasure of that wonderful journey indefinitely.
|
|
|
|
On the last day before they reached the coast Tarzan caught
|
|
the scent of men ahead of them--the scent of black men.
|
|
He told the girl, and cautioned her to maintain silence.
|
|
"There are few friends in the jungle," he remarked dryly.
|
|
|
|
In half an hour they came stealthily upon a small party of
|
|
black warriors filing toward the west. As Tarzan saw them
|
|
he gave a cry of delight--it was a band of his own Waziri.
|
|
Busuli was there, and others who had accompanied him to Opar.
|
|
At sight of him they danced and cried out in exuberant joy.
|
|
For weeks they had been searching for him, they told him.
|
|
|
|
The blacks exhibited considerable wonderment at the
|
|
presence of the white girl with him, and when they found that
|
|
she was to be his woman they vied with one another to do
|
|
her honor. With the happy Waziri laughing and dancing
|
|
about them they came to the rude shelter by the shore.
|
|
|
|
There was no sign of life, and no response to their calls.
|
|
Tarzan clambered quickly to the interior of the little tree
|
|
hut, only to emerge a moment later with an empty tin.
|
|
Throwing it down to Busuli, he told him to fetch water, and
|
|
then he beckoned Jane Porter to come up.
|
|
|
|
Together they leaned over the emaciated thing that once
|
|
had been an English nobleman. Tears came to the girl's eyes
|
|
as she saw the poor, sunken cheeks and hollow eyes, and the
|
|
lines of suffering upon the once young and handsome face.
|
|
|
|
"He still lives," said Tarzan. "We will do all that can be
|
|
done for him, but I fear that we are too late."
|
|
|
|
When Busuli had brought the water Tarzan forced a few
|
|
drops between the cracked and swollen lips. He wetted the
|
|
hot forehead and bathed the pitiful limbs.
|
|
|
|
Presently Clayton opened his eyes. A faint, shadowy smile
|
|
lighted his countenance as he saw the girl leaning over him.
|
|
At sight of Tarzan the expression changed to one of wonderment.
|
|
|
|
"It's all right, old fellow," said the ape-man. "We've found
|
|
you in time. Everything will be all right now, and we'll
|
|
have you on your feet again before you know it."
|
|
|
|
The Englishman shook his head weakly. "It's too late,"
|
|
he whispered. "But it's just as well. I'd rather die."
|
|
|
|
"Where is Monsieur Thuran?" asked the girl.
|
|
|
|
"He left me after the fever got bad. He is a devil.
|
|
When I begged for the water that I was too weak to get he drank
|
|
before me, threw the rest out, and laughed in my face."
|
|
At the thought of it the man was suddenly animated by a spark
|
|
of vitality. He raised himself upon one elbow. "Yes," he
|
|
almost shouted; "I will live. I will live long enough to find
|
|
and kill that beast!" But the brief effort left him weaker than
|
|
before, and he sank back again upon the rotting grasses that,
|
|
with his old ulster, had been the bed of Jane Porter.
|
|
|
|
"Don't worry about Thuran," said Tarzan of the Apes,
|
|
laying a reassuring hand on Clayton's forehead. "He belongs
|
|
to me, and I shall get him in the end, never fear."
|
|
|
|
For a long time Clayton lay very still. Several times
|
|
Tarzan had to put his ear quite close to the sunken chest
|
|
to catch the faint beating of the wornout heart.
|
|
Toward evening he aroused again for a brief moment.
|
|
|
|
"Jane," he whispered. The girl bent her head closer to catch
|
|
the faint message. "I have wronged you--and him," he nodded
|
|
weakly toward the ape-man. "I loved you so--it is a poor
|
|
excuse to offer for injuring you; but I could not bear to
|
|
think of giving you up. I do not ask your forgiveness. I only
|
|
wish to do now the thing I should have done over a year ago."
|
|
He fumbled in the pocket of the ulster beneath him
|
|
for something that he had discovered there while he lay
|
|
between the paroxysms of fever. Presently he found it--a
|
|
crumpled bit of yellow paper. He handed it to the girl,
|
|
and as she took it his arm fell limply across his chest, his
|
|
head dropped back, and with a little gasp he stiffened and
|
|
was still. Then Tarzan of the Apes drew a fold of the ulster
|
|
across the upturned face.
|
|
|
|
For a moment they remained kneeling there, the girl's
|
|
lips moving in silent prayer, and as they rose and stood on
|
|
either side of the now peaceful form, tears came to the ape-
|
|
man's eyes, for through the anguish that his own heart had
|
|
suffered he had learned compassion for the suffering of others.
|
|
|
|
Through her own tears the girl read the message upon
|
|
the bit of faded yellow paper, and as she read her eyes went
|
|
very wide. Twice she read those startling words before she
|
|
could fully comprehend their meaning.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Finger prints prove you Greystoke. Congratulations.
|
|
D'ARNOT.
|
|
|
|
|
|
She handed the paper to Tarzan. "And he has known it all
|
|
this time," she said, "and did not tell you?"
|
|
|
|
"I knew it first, Jane," replied the man. "I did not know
|
|
that he knew it at all. I must have dropped this message
|
|
that night in the waiting room. It was there that I received it."
|
|
|
|
"And afterward you told us that your mother was a she-ape,
|
|
and that you had never known your father?" she asked incredulously.
|
|
|
|
"The title and the estates meant nothing to me without you,
|
|
dear," he replied. "And if I had taken them away
|
|
from him I should have been robbing the woman I love--
|
|
don't you understand, Jane?" It was as though he attempted
|
|
to excuse a fault.
|
|
|
|
She extended her arms toward him across the body of the
|
|
dead man, and took his hands in hers.
|
|
|
|
"And I would have thrown away a love like that!" she said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter 26
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Passing of the Ape-Man
|
|
|
|
|
|
The next morning they set out upon the short journey to
|
|
Tarzan's cabin. Four Waziri bore the body of the dead Englishman.
|
|
It had been the ape-man's suggestion that Clayton be buried
|
|
beside the former Lord Greystoke near the edge of the
|
|
jungle against the cabin that the older man had built.
|
|
|
|
Jane Porter was glad that it was to be so, and in her
|
|
heart of hearts she wondered at the marvelous fineness of
|
|
character of this wondrous man, who, though raised by brutes
|
|
and among brutes, had the true chivalry and tenderness which
|
|
only associates with the refinements of the highest civilization.
|
|
|
|
They had proceeded some three miles of the five that
|
|
had separated them from Tarzan's own beach when the
|
|
Waziri who were ahead stopped suddenly, pointing in
|
|
amazement at a strange figure approaching them along the beach.
|
|
It was a man with a shiny silk hat, who walked slowly with
|
|
bent head, and hands clasped behind him underneath the
|
|
tails of his long, black coat.
|
|
|
|
At sight of him Jane Porter uttered a little cry of surprise
|
|
and joy, and ran quickly ahead to meet him. At the sound of
|
|
her voice the old man looked up, and when he saw who it was
|
|
confronting him he, too, cried out in relief and happiness.
|
|
As Professor Archimedes Q. Porter folded his daughter in his
|
|
arms tears streamed down his seamed old face, and it was several
|
|
minutes before he could control himself sufficiently to speak.
|
|
|
|
When a moment later he recognized Tarzan it was with
|
|
difficulty that they could convince him that his sorrow had
|
|
not unbalanced his mind, for with the other members of the
|
|
party he had been so thoroughly convinced that the ape-man
|
|
was dead it was a problem to reconcile the conviction with
|
|
the very lifelike appearance of Jane's "forest god." The old
|
|
man was deeply touched at the news of Clayton's death.
|
|
|
|
"I cannot understand it," he said. "Monsieur Thuran
|
|
assured us that Clayton passed away many days ago."
|
|
|
|
"Thuran is with you?" asked Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; he but recently found us and led us to your cabin.
|
|
We were camped but a short distance north of it. Bless me,
|
|
but he will be delighted to see you both."
|
|
|
|
"And surprised," commented Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
A short time later the strange party came to the clearing
|
|
in which stood the ape-man's cabin. It was filled with people
|
|
coming and going, and almost the first whom Tarzan saw
|
|
was D'Arnot.
|
|
|
|
"Paul!" he cried. "In the name of sanity what are you
|
|
doing here? Or are we all insane?"
|
|
|
|
It was quickly explained, however, as were many other
|
|
seemingly strange things. D'Arnot's ship had been cruising
|
|
along the coast, on patrol duty, when at the lieutenant's
|
|
suggestion they had anchored off the little landlocked harbor
|
|
to have another look at the cabin and the jungle in which
|
|
many of the officers and men had taken part in exciting
|
|
adventures two years before. On landing they had found Lord
|
|
Tennington's party, and arrangements were being made to
|
|
take them all on board the following morning, and carry
|
|
them back to civilization.
|
|
|
|
Hazel Strong and her mother, Esmeralda, and Mr. Samuel
|
|
T. Philander were almost overcome by happiness at Jane
|
|
Porter's safe return. Her escape seemed to them little short
|
|
of miraculous, and it was the consensus of opinion that it
|
|
could have been achieved by no other man than Tarzan of
|
|
the Apes. They loaded the uncomfortable ape-man with
|
|
eulogies and attentions until he wished himself back in the
|
|
amphitheater of the apes.
|
|
|
|
All were interested in his savage Waziri, and many were
|
|
the gifts the black men received from these friends of their
|
|
king, but when they learned that he might sail away from
|
|
them upon the great canoe that lay at anchor a mile off
|
|
shore they became very sad.
|
|
|
|
As yet the newcomers had seen nothing of Lord Tennington
|
|
and Monsieur Thuran. They had gone out for fresh
|
|
meat early in the day, and had not yet returned.
|
|
|
|
"How surprised this man, whose name you say is Rokoff,
|
|
will be to see you," said Jane Porter to Tarzan.
|
|
|
|
"His surprise will be short-lived," replied the ape-man
|
|
grimly, and there was that in his tone that made her look up
|
|
into his face in alarm. What she read there evidently
|
|
confirmed her fears, for she put her hand upon his arm, and
|
|
pleaded with him to leave the Russian to the laws of France.
|
|
|
|
"In the heart of the jungle, dear," she said, "with no
|
|
other form of right or justice to appeal to other than your
|
|
own mighty muscles, you would be warranted in executing
|
|
upon this man the sentence he deserves; but with the strong
|
|
arm of a civilized government at your disposal it would be
|
|
murder to kill him now. Even your friends would have to
|
|
submit to your arrest, or if you resisted it would plunge
|
|
us all into misery and unhappiness again. I cannot bear to
|
|
lose you again, my Tarzan. Promise me that you will but
|
|
turn him over to Captain Dufranne, and let the law take its
|
|
course--the beast is not worth risking our happiness for."
|
|
|
|
He saw the wisdom of her appeal, and promised. A half
|
|
hour later Rokoff and Tennington emerged from the jungle.
|
|
They were walking side by side. Tennington was the first to
|
|
note the presence of strangers in the camp. He saw the
|
|
black warriors palavering with the sailors from the cruiser,
|
|
and then he saw a lithe, brown giant talking with Lieutenant
|
|
D'Arnot and Captain Dufranne.
|
|
|
|
"Who is that, I wonder," said Tennington to Rokoff, and
|
|
as the Russian raised his eyes and met those of the ape-man
|
|
full upon him, he staggered and went white.
|
|
|
|
"SAPRISTI!" he cried, and before Tennington realized what
|
|
he intended he had thrown his gun to his shoulder, and
|
|
aiming point-blank at Tarzan pulled the trigger. But the
|
|
Englishman was close to him--so close that his hand reached
|
|
the leveled barrel a fraction of a second before the hammer
|
|
fell upon the cartridge, and the bullet that was intended for
|
|
Tarzan's heart whirred harmlessly above his head.
|
|
|
|
Before the Russian could fire again the ape-man was
|
|
upon him and had wrested the firearm from his grasp.
|
|
Captain Dufranne, Lieutenant D'Arnot, and a dozen sailors had
|
|
rushed up at the sound of the shot, and now Tarzan turned
|
|
the Russian over to them without a word. He had explained
|
|
the matter to the French commander before Rokoff arrived,
|
|
and the officer gave immediate orders to place the Russian
|
|
in irons and confine him on board the cruiser.
|
|
|
|
Just before the guard escorted the prisoner into the small
|
|
boat that was to transport him to his temporary prison
|
|
Tarzan asked permission to search him, and to his delight
|
|
found the stolen papers concealed upon his person.
|
|
|
|
The shot had brought Jane Porter and the others from
|
|
the cabin, and a moment after the excitement had died
|
|
down she greeted the surprised Lord Tennington. Tarzan joined
|
|
them after he had taken the papers from Rokoff, and, as he
|
|
approached, Jane Porter introduced him to Tennington.
|
|
|
|
"John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, my lord," she said.
|
|
|
|
The Englishman looked his astonishment in spite of his
|
|
most herculean efforts to appear courteous, and it required
|
|
many repetitions of the strange story of the ape-man as told
|
|
by himself, Jane Porter, and Lieutenant D'Arnot to convince
|
|
Lord Tennington that they were not all quite mad.
|
|
|
|
At sunset they buried William Cecil Clayton beside the
|
|
jungle graves of his uncle and his aunt, the former Lord
|
|
and Lady Greystoke. And it was at Tarzan's request that
|
|
three volleys were fired over the last resting place of
|
|
"a brave man, who met his death bravely."
|
|
|
|
Professor Porter, who in his younger days had been ordained
|
|
a minister, conducted the simple services for the dead.
|
|
About the grave, with bowed heads, stood as strange
|
|
a company of mourners as the sun ever looked down upon.
|
|
There were French officers and sailors, two English lords,
|
|
Americans, and a score of savage African braves.
|
|
|
|
Following the funeral Tarzan asked Captain Dufranne to
|
|
delay the sailing of the cruiser a couple of days while he
|
|
went inland a few miles to fetch his "belongings," and the
|
|
officer gladly granted the favor.
|
|
|
|
Late the next afternoon Tarzan and his Waziri returned
|
|
with the first load of "belongings," and when the party saw
|
|
the ancient ingots of virgin gold they swarmed upon the ape-
|
|
man with a thousand questions; but he was smilingly obdurate
|
|
to their appeals--he declined to give them the slightest
|
|
clew as to the source of his immense treasure. "There are a
|
|
thousand that I left behind," he explained, "for every one
|
|
that I brought away, and when these are spent I may wish
|
|
to return for more."
|
|
|
|
The next day he returned to camp with the balance of
|
|
his ingots, and when they were stored on board the cruiser
|
|
Captain Dufranne said he felt like the commander of an old-
|
|
time Spanish galleon returning from the treasure cities of
|
|
the Aztecs. "I don't know what minute my crew will cut my
|
|
throat, and take over the ship," he added.
|
|
|
|
The next morning, as they were preparing to embark upon
|
|
the cruiser, Tarzan ventured a suggestion to Jane Porter.
|
|
|
|
"Wild beasts are supposed to be devoid of sentiment," he
|
|
said, "but nevertheless I should like to be married in the
|
|
cabin where I was born, beside the graves of my mother and
|
|
my father, and surrounded by the savage jungle that always
|
|
has been my home."
|
|
|
|
"Would it be quite regular, dear?" she asked. "For if it
|
|
would I know of no other place in which I should rather be
|
|
married to my forest god than beneath the shade of his
|
|
primeval forest."
|
|
|
|
And when they spoke of it to the others they were assured
|
|
that it would be quite regular, and a most splendid
|
|
termination of a remarkable romance. So the entire party
|
|
assembled within the little cabin and about the door to
|
|
witness the second ceremony that Professor Porter was to
|
|
solemnize within three days.
|
|
|
|
D'Arnot was to be best man, and Hazel Strong bridesmaid,
|
|
until Tennington upset all the arrangements by another
|
|
of his marvelous "ideas."
|
|
|
|
"If Mrs. Strong is agreeable," he said, taking the bridesmaid's
|
|
hand in his, "Hazel and I think it would be ripping to make it
|
|
a double wedding."
|
|
|
|
The next day they sailed, and as the cruiser steamed slowly
|
|
out to sea a tall man, immaculate in white flannel, and a
|
|
graceful girl leaned against her rail to watch the receding
|
|
shore line upon which danced twenty naked, black warriors
|
|
of the Waziri, waving their war spears above their savage
|
|
heads, and shouting farewells to their departing king.
|
|
|
|
"I should hate to think that I am looking upon the jungle
|
|
for the last time, dear," he said, "were it not that I know
|
|
that I am going to a new world of happiness with you forever,"
|
|
and, bending down, Tarzan of the Apes kissed his
|
|
mate upon her lips.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The end of Project Gutenberg etext of "The Return of Tarzan"
|
|
|
|
|
|
|